This is a modern-English version of A fighting man of Mars, originally written by Burroughs, Edgar Rice.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

A FIGHTING MAN OF MARS
EDGAR RICE BURROUGHS

ACE BOOKS, INC.
1120 Avenue of the Americas
New York 36, N.Y.
ACE BOOKS, INC.
1120 Avenue of the Americas
New York 36, NY.
A FIGHTING MAN OF MARS
A WARRIOR FROM MARS
This Ace edition follows the text of the first
hard-cover book edition, originally published in 1931.
This Ace edition follows the text of the first
hardcover book edition, originally published in 1931.
Cover art and title page illustration by Roy Krenkel, Jr.
Cover art and title page illustration by Roy Krenkel, Jr.
Printed in U.S.A.
Printed in the USA.
AN UNSEEN FOE STRIKES AGAINST JOHN CARTER
AN UNSEEN ENEMY ATTACKS JOHN CARTER AGAIN
Under the double moons of Barsoom, an invisible flier sped to the mysterious city of Jahar where Sanoma Tora, the kidnapped princess of Helium had been taken. Hadron of Hastor was at the controls, hatching a rescue plan that required unusual daring and great ingenuity. For invisibility alone was not a great enough weapon against "The Death."
Under the double moons of Barsoom, an invisible ship raced toward the mysterious city of Jahar, where Sanoma Tora, the kidnapped princess of Helium, had been taken. Hadron of Hastor was at the controls, coming up with a rescue plan that needed boldness and clever thinking. For invisibility alone wasn't enough to fight against "The Death."
And should Hadron succeed, what fate would await him at the hands of the madman whose very genius had created the means of that rescue?
And if Hadron succeeds, what fate would he face at the hands of the madman whose genius had created the means for that rescue?
A FIGHTING MAN OF MARS is the exciting story of Martian adventure as transmitted by Ulysses Paxton on Mars to Edgar Rice Burroughs in Tarzana, by means of Pellucidar's Gridley Wave.
A FIGHTING MAN OF MARS is the thrilling tale of a Martian adventure relayed by Ulysses Paxton on Mars to Edgar Rice Burroughs in Tarzana, using Pellucidar's Gridley Wave.
CONTENTS
CONTENTS
A FIGHTING MAN OF MARS
A WARRIOR FROM MARS
FOREWORD
Foreword
To Jason Gridley of Tarzana, discoverer of the Gridley Wave, belonged the credit of establishing radio communication between Pellucidar and the outer world.
To Jason Gridley of Tarzana, the inventor of the Gridley Wave, goes the credit for creating radio communication between Pellucidar and the outside world.
It was my good fortune to be much in his laboratory while he was carrying on his experiments and to be, also, the recipient of his confidences, so that I was fully aware that while he hoped to establish communication with Pellucidar he was also reaching out toward an even more stupendous accomplishment—he was groping through space for contact with another planet; nor did he attempt to deny that the present goal of his ambition was radio communication with Mars.
It was my luck to spend a lot of time in his lab while he was conducting his experiments and to be the one he confided in, so I was fully aware that while he aimed to establish communication with Pellucidar, he was also striving for an even more incredible achievement—he was searching through space to make contact with another planet; he didn’t even try to hide that his current ambition was to achieve radio communication with Mars.
Gridley had constructed a simple, automatic device for broadcasting signals intermittently and for recording whatever might be received during his absence.
Gridley had built a straightforward, automatic device to broadcast signals at intervals and to record anything that might be received while he was away.
For a period of five minutes the Gridley Wave carried a simple code signal consisting of two letters, "J.G.," out into the ether, following which there was a pause of ten minutes. Hour after hour, day after day, week after week, these silent, invisible messengers sped out to the uttermost reaches of infinite space, and after Jason Gridley left Tarzana to embark upon his expedition to Pellucidar, I found myself drawn to his laboratory by the lure of the tantalizing possibilities of his dream, as well as by the promise I had made him that I would look in occasionally to see that the device was functioning properly and to examine the recording instruments for any indication that the signals had been received and answered.
For five minutes, the Gridley Wave sent out a simple code signal made up of the two letters "J.G." into the ether, followed by a ten-minute pause. Hour after hour, day after day, week after week, these silent, invisible signals traveled to the farthest corners of infinite space. After Jason Gridley left Tarzana to start his journey to Pellucidar, I found myself drawn to his lab by the exciting possibilities of his vision and by the promise I had made him to check in regularly to ensure the device was working correctly and to review the recording instruments for any signs that the signals had been received and responded to.
My considerable association with Gridley had given me a fair working knowledge of his devices and sufficient knowledge of the Morse Code to enable me to receive with moderate accuracy and speed.
My extensive experience with Gridley had provided me with a good understanding of his devices and enough knowledge of the Morse Code to let me receive messages with reasonable accuracy and speed.
Months passed; dust accumulated thickly upon everything except the working parts of Gridley's device, and the white ribbon of ticker tape that was to receive an answering signal retained its virgin purity; then I went away for a short trip into Arizona.
Months went by; dust built up heavily on everything except the functional parts of Gridley's device, and the white ticker tape meant to receive a response stayed perfectly clean; then I took a quick trip to Arizona.
I was absent for about ten days and upon my return one of the first things with which I concerned myself was an inspection of Gridley's laboratory and the instruments he had left in my care. As I entered the familiar room and switched on the lights it was with the expectation of meeting with the same blank unresponsiveness to which I was by now quite accustomed.
I was away for about ten days, and when I got back, one of the first things I wanted to do was check out Gridley's lab and the equipment he had left with me. As I walked into the familiar room and turned on the lights, I expected to find the same empty silence I had grown used to by now.
As a matter of fact, hope of success had never been raised to any considerable degree in my breast, nor had Gridley been over sanguine—his was merely an experiment. He considered it well worth while to make it, and I considered it equally worth while to lend him what small assistance I might.
As a matter of fact, I had never felt much hope for success, nor had Gridley been overly optimistic—his was just an experiment. He thought it was worth trying, and I also felt it was worth offering him whatever little help I could.
It was, therefore, with feelings of astonishment that assumed the magnitude of a distinct shock that I saw upon the ticker tape the familiar tracings which stand for the dots and dashes of code.
It was, therefore, with feelings of astonishment that reached the level of a distinct shock that I saw on the ticker tape the familiar symbols that represent the dots and dashes of code.
Of course I realized that some other researcher might have duplicated Jason's discovery of the Gridley Wave and that the message might have originated upon earth, or, again, it might be a message from Jason himself in Pellucidar, but when I had deciphered it, all doubts were quickly put to rest. It was from Ulysses Paxton, one time captain, —th U.S. Infantry, who, miraculously transported from a battlefield in France to the bosom of the great Red Planet, had become the right hand man of Ras Thavas, the master mind of Mars, and later the husband of Valla Dia, daughter of Kor San, Jeddak of Duhor.
Of course, I understood that another researcher might have rediscovered Jason's finding of the Gridley Wave and that the message could have originated on Earth. Or, it might even be a message from Jason himself in Pellucidar. But once I figured it out, all doubts disappeared quickly. It was from Ulysses Paxton, a former captain of the U.S. Infantry, who had inexplicably been transported from a battlefield in France to the surface of the great Red Planet. He had become the right-hand man of Ras Thavas, the mastermind of Mars, and later the husband of Valla Dia, daughter of Kor San, Jeddak of Duhor.
In brief, the message explained that for months mysterious signals had been received at Helium, and while they were unable to interpret them, they felt that they came from Jasoom, the name by which the planet Earth is known upon Mars.
In short, the message explained that for months, strange signals had been received at Helium, and although they couldn't interpret them, they believed that they came from Jasoom, which is how Mars refers to the planet Earth.
John Carter being absent from Helium, a fast flier had been dispatched to Duhor bearing an urgent request to Paxton to come at once to the twin cities and endeavor to determine if in truth the signals they were receiving actually originated upon the planet of his birth.
John Carter was not in Helium, so a fast flyer was sent to Duhor carrying an urgent request for Paxton to come immediately to the twin cities and try to find out if the signals they were receiving actually came from the planet where he was born.
Upon his arrival at Helium, Paxton immediately recognized the Morse Code signals and no doubt was left in the minds of the Martian scientists that at last something tangible had been accomplished toward the solution of inter-communication between Jasoom and Barsoom.
Upon arriving at Helium, Paxton immediately recognized the Morse Code signals, and there was no doubt in the minds of the Martian scientists that they had finally made real progress toward solving the problem of communication between Jasoom and Barsoom.
Repeated attempts to transmit answering signals to Earth proved fruitless and then the best minds of Helium settled down to the task of analyzing and reproducing the Gridley Wave.
Repeated attempts to send answering signals to Earth were unsuccessful, so the smartest people of Helium focused on analyzing and recreating the Gridley Wave.
They felt that at last they had succeeded. Paxton had sent his message and they were eagerly awaiting an acknowledgment.
They felt that they had finally succeeded. Paxton had sent his message, and they were eagerly waiting for a response.
I have since been in almost constant communication with Mars, but out of loyalty to Jason Gridley, to whom all the credit and honor are due, I have made no official announcement, nor shall I give out any important information, leaving all that for his return to the outer world; but I believe that I am betraying no confidence if I narrate to you the interesting story of Hadron of Hastor, which Paxton told me one evening not long since.
I’ve been in almost constant contact with Mars since then, but out of loyalty to Jason Gridley, who deserves all the credit and recognition, I haven’t made any official announcements and won’t share any important information, leaving that for when he returns to the outer world. However, I don’t think I’m breaking any trust by sharing the fascinating story of Hadron of Hastor, which Paxton told me one evening not too long ago.
I hope that you will enjoy it as much as I did.
I hope you enjoy it as much as I did.
But before I go on with the story a brief description of the principal races of Mars, their political and military organization and some of their customs may prove of interest to many of my readers. The dominant race in whose hands rest the progress and civilization—yes, the very life of Mars—differ but little in physical appearance from ourselves. The fact that their skins are a light reddish copper color and that they are oviparous constitute the two most marked divergences from Anglo-Saxon standards. No, there is another—their longevity. A thousand years is the natural span of life of a Martian, although, because of their war-like activities and the prevalence of assassination among them, few live their allotted span.
But before I continue with the story, a quick overview of the main races of Mars, their political and military structure, and some of their customs might be interesting to many of my readers. The dominant race, which holds the key to progress and civilization—indeed, the very survival of Mars—aren’t much different in appearance from us. Their skin is a light reddish copper color, and they lay eggs, which are the two most notable differences from Anglo-Saxon traits. Actually, there's another difference—their lifespan. A Martian typically lives for about a thousand years, although due to their frequent warfare and the common practice of assassination, few actually reach this age.
Their general political organization has changed little in countless ages, the unit still being the tribe, at the head of which is a chief or jed, corresponding in modern times to our king. The princes are known as lesser jeds, while the chief of chiefs, or the head of consolidated tribes, is the jeddak, or emperor, whose consort is a jeddara.
Their overall political organization hasn't changed much over the ages; the tribe is still the main unit, led by a chief or jed, similar to a king today. The princes are referred to as lesser jeds, while the chief of chiefs, or leader of united tribes, is the jeddak, or emperor, whose partner is a jeddara.
The majority of red Martians live in walled cities, though there are many who reside in isolated, though well walled and defended, farm homes along those rich irrigated ribbons of land that we of earth know as the Canals of Mars.
The majority of red Martians live in walled cities, though many also live in isolated, well-protected farm homes along the fertile, irrigated strips of land that we on Earth know as the Canals of Mars.
In the far south, that is in the south polar region, dwells a race of very handsome and highly intelligent black men. There, also, is the remnant of a white race; while the north polar regions are dominated by a race of yellow men.
In the far south, in the south polar region, there lives a group of very attractive and highly intelligent Black individuals. There is also a remaining population of white individuals; meanwhile, the north polar regions are inhabited by a group of Asian individuals.
In between the two poles and scattered over all the arid waste lands of the dead sea bottoms, often inhabiting the ruined cities of another age, are the feared green hordes of Mars.
In the space between the two poles and spread across all the dry wastelands of the dead sea bottoms, often living in the ruins of ancient cities, are the dreaded green hordes of Mars.
The terrible green warriors of Barsoom are the hereditary enemies of all the other races of this martial planet. They are of heroic size and in addition to being equipped with two legs and two arms apiece, they have an intermediary pair of limbs, which may be used at will either as arms or legs. Their eyes are set at the extreme sides of their heads, a trifle above the center, and protrude in such a manner that they may be directed either forward or back and also independently of each other, thus permitting these remarkable creatures to look in any direction, or in two directions at once without the necessity of turning their heads.
The fearsome green warriors of Barsoom are the long-standing enemies of all the other races on this combative planet. They are impressively large and, in addition to having two legs and two arms, they also possess a third pair of limbs that they can use as either arms or legs at will. Their eyes are positioned at the far sides of their heads, slightly above the center, and they protrude in such a way that they can be directed both forward and backward, and independently of each other. This allows these extraordinary beings to look in any direction or even in two directions at once without needing to turn their heads.
Their ears, which are slightly above the eyes and closer together, are small cupped shape antennae, protruding several inches from the head, while their noses are but longitudinal slits in the center of their faces, midway between their mouths and ears.
Their ears, located just above the eyes and spaced closely together, are small, cup-shaped antennas that stick out several inches from the head, while their noses are just long slits in the center of their faces, positioned between their mouths and ears.
They have no hair on their bodies, which are of a very light yellowish-green color in infancy, deepening to an olive green toward maturity, the adult males being darker in color than the females.
They have no hair on their bodies, which are a very light yellowish-green color when they’re young, deepening to an olive green as they grow up, with adult males being darker than females.
The iris of the eyes is blood red, as an Albino's while the pupil is dark. The eyeball itself is very white, as are the teeth and it is these latter which add a most ferocious appearance to an otherwise fearsome and terrible countenance, as the lower tusks curve upward to sharp points which end about where the eyes of earthly human beings are located. The whiteness of the teeth is not that of ivory, but of the snowiest and most gleaming of china. Against the dark background of their olive skins their tusks stand out in a most striking manner, causing these weapons to present a singularly formidable appearance.
The iris of the eyes is blood red, like that of an albino, while the pupil is dark. The eyeball itself is very white, as are the teeth, and it’s these teeth that give a most fierce look to an otherwise intimidating and dreadful face, as the lower tusks curve upward to sharp points that end about where the eyes of ordinary humans are. The whiteness of the teeth isn’t like ivory, but more like the snowiest and most polished china. Against the dark backdrop of their olive skin, their tusks stand out in a striking way, making these weapons look particularly daunting.
They are a cruel and taciturn race, entirely devoid of love, sympathy or pity.
They are a harsh and silent people, completely lacking love, compassion, or empathy.
They are an equestrian race, never walking other than to move about their camps.
They are a horse-riding group, only walking when they need to get around their camps.
Their mounts, called thoats, are great savage beasts, whose proportions harmonize with those of their giant masters. They have eight legs and broad flat tails larger at the tips than at the roots. They hold these tails straight out while running. Their mouths are enormous, splitting their heads from their snouts to their long, massive necks. Like their masters, they are entirely devoid of hair, their skins being a dark slate color and exceedingly smooth and glossy, with the exception of the belly, which is white, and the legs, which shade from the slate of the shoulders and hips to a vivid yellow at the feet. The feet are heavily padded and nailless.
Their mounts, called thoats, are massive, fierce creatures that match the size of their giant riders. They have eight legs and wide, flat tails that are larger at the tips than at the base. They hold these tails straight out while they run. Their mouths are huge, stretching from their snouts to their long, thick necks. Like their riders, they have no hair; their skin is a dark slate color that is extremely smooth and shiny, except for their bellies, which are white, and their legs, which transition from slate at the shoulders and hips to a bright yellow at the feet. Their feet are thickly padded and have no nails.
Like the red men, the green hordes are ruled by jeds and jeddaks, but their military organization is not carried to the same detail of perfection as is that of the red men.
Like the red people, the green hordes are led by jeds and jeddaks, but their military organization isn't as refined or detailed as that of the red people.
The military forces of the red men are highly organized, the principal arm of the service being the navy, an enormous air force of battleships, cruisers and an infinite variety of lesser craft down to one-man scout fliers. Next in size and importance is the infantry branch of the service, while the cavalry, mounted on a breed of small thoats, similar to those used by the green Martian giants, is utilized principally in patrolling the avenues of the cities and the rural districts that border the irrigating systems.
The military forces of the red men are highly organized, with the main branch being the navy, which includes a massive air force of battleships, cruisers, and countless smaller craft, all the way down to one-man scout fliers. The next largest and most important branch is the infantry, while the cavalry, riding a type of small thoats similar to those used by the green Martian giants, mainly patrols the city streets and rural areas near the irrigation systems.
The principal basic unit, although not the smallest one of the military organization, is a utan, consisting of one hundred men, which is commanded by a dwar with several padwars or lieutenants junior to him. An odwar commands a umak of ten thousand men, while next above him is a jedwar, who is junior only to the jed or king.
The main basic unit, though not the smallest in the military structure, is a utan, made up of one hundred men, led by a dwar with several junior padwars or lieutenants. An odwar commands a umak of ten thousand men, and above him is a jedwar, who is only junior to the jed or king.
Science, literature, art and architecture are in some of their departments further advanced upon Mars than upon Earth, a remarkable thing when one considers the constant battle for survival which is the most marked characteristic of life upon Barsoom.
Science, literature, art, and architecture are more advanced in some areas on Mars than on Earth, which is remarkable considering the constant struggle for survival that defines life on Barsoom.
Not only are they waging a continual battle against Nature, which is slowly diminishing their already scant atmosphere, but from birth to death they are constantly faced by the stern necessity of defending themselves against enemy nations of their own race and the great hordes of roving green warriors of the dead sea bottom; while within the walls of their own cities are countless professional assassins, whose calling is so well recognized that in some localities they are organized into guilds.
Not only are they in a constant struggle against nature, which is gradually depleting their already limited atmosphere, but from the moment they are born until they die, they have to defend themselves against enemy nations that share their race, as well as the huge bands of hostile green creatures from the ocean floor. Meanwhile, inside their own cities, there are countless professional assassins, so well-known that in some places they have formed organized groups.
But notwithstanding all the grim realities with which they have to contend, the red Martians are a happy, social people. They have their games, their dances and their songs, and the social life of a great capital of Barsoom is as gay and magnificent as any that may be found in the rich capitals of Earth.
But despite all the tough challenges they face, the red Martians are a happy, social people. They have their games, dances, and songs, and the social life of a big city on Barsoom is just as vibrant and impressive as any found in the wealthy capitals of Earth.
That they are a brave, noble and generous people is indicated by the fact that neither John Carter nor Ulysses Paxton would return to Earth if they might.
That they are a brave, noble, and generous people is shown by the fact that neither John Carter nor Ulysses Paxton would return to Earth if they could.
And now to return to the tale that I had from Paxton across forty-three million miles of space.
And now, let’s go back to the story I got from Paxton across forty-three million miles of space.
I
I
SANOMA TORA
SANOMA TORA
This is the story of Hadron of Hastor, Fighting Man of Mars, as narrated by him to Ulysses Paxton:
This is the story of Hadron of Hastor, Fighting Man of Mars, as he told it to Ulysses Paxton:
I am Tan Hadron of Hastor, my father is Had Urtur, Odwar of the 1st Umak of the Troops of Hastor. He commands the largest ship of war that Hastor has ever contributed to the navy of Helium, accommodating as it does the entire ten thousand men of the 1st Umak, together with five hundred lesser fighting ships and all the paraphernalia of war. My mother is a princess of Gathol.
I am Tan Hadron of Hastor, my father is Had Urtur, Odwar of the 1st Umak of the Troops of Hastor. He commands the largest warship that Hastor has ever sent to the navy of Helium, hosting all ten thousand men of the 1st Umak, along with five hundred smaller fighting ships and all the equipment of war. My mother is a princess of Gathol.
As a family we are not rich except in honor, and, valuing this above all mundane possessions, I chose the profession of my father rather than a more profitable career. The better to further my ambition I came to the capital of the empire of Helium and took service in the troops of Tardos Mors, Jeddak of Helium, that I might be nearer the great John Carter, Warlord of Mars.
As a family, we're not wealthy in terms of money, but we are rich in honor, which I value more than any material possessions. Because of this, I chose to follow in my father's footsteps instead of pursuing a more lucrative career. To help achieve my goals, I moved to the capital of the Helium Empire and joined the troops of Tardos Mors, Jeddak of Helium, so I could be closer to the great John Carter, Warlord of Mars.
My life in Helium and my career in the army were similar to those of hundreds of other young men. I passed through my training days without notable accomplishment, neither heading nor trailing my fellows, and in due course I was made a Padwar in the 91st Umak, being assigned to the 5th Utan of the 11th Dar.
My life in Helium and my time in the army were similar to those of hundreds of other young men. I went through training without any standout achievements, neither leading nor falling behind my peers, and eventually I was promoted to Padwar in the 91st Umak, being assigned to the 5th Utan of the 11th Dar.
What with being of noble lineage by my father and inheriting royal blood from my mother, the palaces of the twin cities of Helium were always open to me and I entered much into the gay life of the capital. It was thus that I met Sanoma Tora, daughter of Tor Hatan, Odwar of the 91st Umak.
Being from a noble family on my father's side and having royal blood from my mother, the palaces in the twin cities of Helium were always accessible to me, and I enjoyed the vibrant life of the capital. This is how I met Sanoma Tora, the daughter of Tor Hatan, Odwar of the 91st Umak.
Tor Hatan is only of the lower nobility, but he is fabulously rich from the loot of many cities well invested in farm land and mines, and because here in the capital of Helium riches count for more than they do in Hastor, Tor Hatan is a powerful man, whose influence reaches even to the throne of the Jeddak.
Tor Hatan is just a minor noble, but he's incredibly wealthy from plundering many cities and has wisely invested in farmland and mines. Since, in the capital of Helium, wealth holds more sway than it does in Hastor, Tor Hatan is a significant figure, and his influence extends all the way to the throne of the Jeddak.
Never shall I forget the occasion upon which I first laid eyes upon Sanoma Tora. It was upon the occasion of a great feast at the marble palace of The Warlord. There were gathered under one roof the most beautiful women of Barsoom, where, notwithstanding the gorgeous and radiant beauty of Dejah Thoris, Tara of Helium and Thuvia of Ptarth, the pulchritude of Sanoma Tora was such as to arrest attention. I shall not say that it was greater than that of those acknowledged queens of Barsoomian loveliness, for I know that my adoration of Sanoma Tora might easily influence my judgment, but there were others there who remarked her gorgeous beauty which differs from that of Dejah Thoris as the chaste beauty of a polar landscape differs from the beauty of the tropics, as the beauty of a white palace in the moonlight differs from the beauty of its garden at midday.
Never will I forget the moment I first saw Sanoma Tora. It was during a grand feast at the marble palace of The Warlord. Under one roof were the most beautiful women of Barsoom; despite the stunning and radiant beauty of Dejah Thoris, Tara of Helium, and Thuvia of Ptarth, Sanoma Tora’s beauty was enough to capture attention. I won’t claim it was greater than that of those well-known queens of Barsoomian beauty, as I know my admiration for Sanoma Tora could easily cloud my judgment, but others there also commented on her striking beauty, which is different from Dejah Thoris’s beauty in the same way that the pure beauty of a polar landscape differs from the beauty of the tropics, or how the beauty of a white palace in the moonlight contrasts with the beauty of its garden at midday.
When at my solicitation I was presented to her, she glanced first at the insignia upon my armor, and noting therefrom that I was but a Padwar, she vouchsafed me but a condescending word and turned her attention again to the Dwar with whom she had been conversing.
When I was introduced to her at my request, she first looked at the insignia on my armor. Noticing that I was just a Padwar, she gave me a patronizing comment and redirected her attention to the Dwar she had been speaking with.
I must admit that I was piqued and yet it was, indeed, the contumelious treatment she accorded me that fixed my determination to win her, for the goal most difficult of attainment has always seemed to me the most desirable.
I have to admit that I was intrigued, but it was actually the disrespectful way she treated me that made me determined to win her over because the hardest goals have always seemed the most worth pursuing.
And so it was that I fell in love with Sanoma Tora, the daughter of the commander of the Umak to which I was attached.
And that's how I fell in love with Sanoma Tora, the daughter of the commander of the Umak unit I was part of.
For a long time I found it difficult to further my suit in the slightest degree; in fact I did not even see Sanoma Tora for several months after our first meeting, since when she found that I was poor as well as low in rank I found it impossible to gain an invitation to her home and it chanced that I did not meet her elsewhere for a long time, but the more inaccessible she became the more I loved her until every waking moment of my time that was not actually occupied by the performance of my military duties was devoted to the devising of new and ever increasingly rash plans to possess her. I even had the madness to consider abducting her, and I believe that I should eventually have gone this far had there been no other way in which I could see her, but about this time a fellow officer of the 91st, in fact the Dwar of the Utan to which I was attached, took pity on me and obtained for me an invitation to a feast in the palace of Tor Hatan.
For a long time, I struggled to make any progress in my pursuit. In fact, I didn’t even see Sanoma Tora for several months after our first meeting. When she realized I was both poor and of low status, it became impossible for me to get an invitation to her home. Luckily, I didn’t run into her elsewhere for a long time, but the more unreachable she became, the more I loved her. Every waking moment that wasn’t taken up by my military duties was spent thinking up new and more daring plans to win her over. I even crazily considered kidnapping her, and I think I might have actually gone through with it if there hadn’t been another way to see her. Around this time, a fellow officer from the 91st, specifically the Dwar of the Utan I was attached to, took pity on me and got me an invitation to a feast at the palace of Tor Hatan.
My host, who was also my commanding officer, had never noticed me before this evening and I was surprised to note the warmth and cordiality of his greetings.
My host, who was also my commanding officer, had never really noticed me until this evening, and I was surprised by how warm and friendly his greetings were.
"We must see more of you here, Hadron of Hastor," he had said. "I have been watching you and I prophesy that you will go far in the military service of the Jeddak."
"We need to see more of you here, Hadron of Hastor," he said. "I've been keeping an eye on you and I predict that you'll go far in the military service of the Jeddak."
Now I knew he was lying when he said that he had been watching me, for Tor Hatan was notoriously lax in his duties as a commanding officer, all of which were performed by the senior Teedwar of the Umak. While I could not fathom the cause of this sudden interest in me, it was nevertheless very pleasing since through it I might in some degree further my pursuit of the heart and hand of Sanoma Tora.
Now I realized he was lying when he claimed he had been keeping an eye on me because Tor Hatan was well-known for being careless in his role as a commanding officer, with most of his responsibilities handled by the senior Teedwar of the Umak. Although I couldn't understand why he suddenly took an interest in me, it was still quite nice since it could help me get closer to winning over Sanoma Tora.
Sanoma Tora herself was slightly more cordial than upon the occasion of our first meeting, though she noticeably paid more attention to Sil Vagis than she did to me.
Sanoma Tora was a bit friendlier than when we first met, but she clearly focused more on Sil Vagis than on me.
Now if there is any man in Helium whom I particularly detest more than another it is Sil Vagis, a nasty little snob who holds the title of Teedwar, though so far as I was ever able to ascertain he commands no troops, but is merely on the staff of Tor Hatan, principally, I presume, because of the great wealth of his father.
Now, if there’s anyone in Helium I particularly dislike, it’s Sil Vagis, a nasty little snob who holds the title of Teedwar. As far as I can tell, he doesn’t actually command any troops; he’s just on Tor Hatan's staff, probably because of his father's great wealth.
Such creatures we have to put up with in times of peace, but when war comes and the great Warlord takes command it is the fighting men who rank and riches do not count.
Such creatures we have to deal with in times of peace, but when war comes and the great Warlord takes charge, it's the fighters who matter, not rank or wealth.
But be that as it may, while Sil Vagis spoiled this evening for me as he would spoil many others in the future, nevertheless I left the palace of Tor Hatan that night with a feeling bordering upon elation, for I had Sanoma Tora's permission to see her again in her father's home when my duties would permit me to pay my respects to her.
But that aside, even though Sil Vagis ruined this evening for me as he would ruin many others in the future, I still left the palace of Tor Hatan that night feeling almost elated, because I had Sanoma Tora's permission to see her again in her father's home whenever my duties allowed me to pay my respects to her.
Returning to my quarters I was accompanied by my friend, the Dwar, and when I commented on the warmth of Tor Hatan's reception of me he laughed.
Returning to my room, I was with my friend, the Dwar, and when I mentioned how warm Tor Hatan's welcome was, he laughed.
"You find it amusing," I said. "Why?"
"You think it's funny," I said. "Why?"
"Tor Hatan, as you know," he said, "is very rich and powerful, and yet it is seldom, as you may have noticed, that he is invited to any one of the four places of Helium in which ambitious men most crave to be seen."
"Tor Hatan, as you know," he said, "is really wealthy and influential, and yet, as you might have noticed, he’s rarely invited to any of the four places in Helium where ambitious people most want to be seen."
"You mean the palaces of the Warlord, the Jeddak, the Jed and Carthoris?" I asked.
"You mean the palaces of the Warlord, the Jeddak, the Jed, and Carthoris?" I asked.
"Of course," he replied. "What other four in Helium count for so much as these? Tor Hatan," he continued, "is supposed to come from the lower nobility, but there is a question in my mind as to whether there is a drop of noble blood in his veins, and one of the facts upon which I base my conjecture is his cringing and fawning reverence for anything pertaining to royalty—he would give his fat soul to be considered an intimate of any one of the four."
"Of course," he replied. "What other four in Helium matter as much as these? Tor Hatan," he continued, "is thought to come from the lower nobility, but I wonder if there's any noble blood in him at all. One reason I think that is because of his sycophantic and servile attitude towards anything related to royalty—he would give his entire being to be seen as a close friend of any one of the four."
"But what has that to do with me?" I demanded.
"But what does that have to do with me?" I asked.
"A great deal," he replied; "in fact, because of it you were invited to his palace tonight."
"A lot," he replied; "actually, because of that, you were invited to his palace tonight."
"I do not understand," I said.
"I don't get it," I said.
"I chanced to be talking with Tor Hatan the morning of the day you received your invitation and in the course of our conversation I mentioned you. He had never heard of you, and as a Padwar in the 5th Utan you aroused his interest not a particle, but when I told him that your mother was a princess of Gathol, he pricked up his ears, and when he learned that you were received as a friend and equal in the palaces of the four demigods of Helium, he became almost enthusiastic about you. Now do you understand?" he concluded with a short laugh.
"I happened to be talking with Tor Hatan the morning of the day you got your invitation, and during our conversation, I mentioned you. He didn’t know who you were, and as a Padwar in the 5th Utan, you didn't interest him at all. But when I told him that your mother was a princess of Gathol, he paid attention, and when he found out that you were welcomed as a friend and equal in the palaces of the four demigods of Helium, he got really excited about you. So now you understand?" he finished with a short laugh.
"Perfectly," I replied, "but none the less, I thank you. All that I wanted was the opportunity and inasmuch as I was prepared to achieve it criminally if necessary, I cannot quibble over any means that were employed to obtain it, however unflattering they may be to me."
"Absolutely," I responded, "but still, I appreciate it. All I wanted was the chance, and since I was ready to go to any lengths to get it, even if it meant doing something illegal, I can't argue about the methods that were used, no matter how unflattering they may be for me."
For months I haunted the palace of Tor Hatan, and being naturally a good conversationalist and well schooled in the stately dances and joyous games of Barsoom, I was by no means an unwelcome visitor. Also I made it a point often to take Sanoma Tora to one or another of the four great palaces of Helium. I was always welcome because of the blood relationship which existed between my mother and Gahan of Gathol, who had married Tara of Helium.
For months, I hung around the palace of Tor Hatan, and since I was a decent conversationalist and well-trained in the elegant dances and fun games of Barsoom, I wasn’t an unwelcome guest at all. I also made sure to take Sanoma Tora to one of the four great palaces of Helium quite often. I was always welcomed because of the family connection between my mom and Gahan of Gathol, who had married Tara of Helium.
Naturally I felt that I was progressing well with my suit, but my progress was not fast enough to keep pace with the racing desires of my passion. Never had I known love before and I felt that I should die if I did not soon possess Sanoma Tora, and so it was that upon a certain night I visited the palace of her father definitely determined to lay my heart and sword at her feet before I left, and, although the natural complexes of a lover convinced me that I was an unworthy worm, that she would be wholly justified in spurning, I was yet determined to declare myself so that I might openly be accounted a suitor, which, after all, gives one greater freedom even though he be not entirely a favored suitor.
Naturally, I felt like I was making good progress with my pursuit, but it wasn’t fast enough to match the intense longing of my passion. I had never known love before, and I felt like I would die if I didn’t soon win the heart of Sanoma Tora. So one night, I went to her father’s palace, completely determined to lay my heart and sword at her feet before I left. Although my insecurities as a lover made me feel like an unworthy worm, and that she would be completely justified in rejecting me, I was still resolved to declare my feelings so that I could openly be seen as a suitor. After all, that gives a person more freedom, even if they're not the most favored one.
It was one of those lovely nights that transform old Barsoom into a world of enchantment. Thuria and Cluros were racing through the heavens casting their soft light upon the garden of Tor Hatan, empurpling the vivid, scarlet sward and lending strange hues to the gorgeous blooms of pimalia and sorapus, while the winding walks, gravelled with semi-precious stones, shot back a thousand scintillant rays that, clothed in ever-changing colors, danced at the feet of the marble statuary that lent an added artistic charm to the ensemble.
It was one of those beautiful nights that turned old Barsoom into a magical world. Thuria and Cluros were speeding through the sky, casting their soft light on the garden of Tor Hatan, creating rich purples on the bright red grass and giving unusual colors to the stunning pimalia and sorapus flowers. Meanwhile, the winding paths, paved with semi-precious stones, reflected a thousand sparkling rays that, dressed in ever-changing colors, danced at the feet of the marble statues, adding to the artistic charm of the scene.
In one of the spacious halls that overlooked the garden of the palace, a youth and a maiden sat upon a massive bench of rich sorapus wood, such a bench as might have graced the halls of the great Jeddak himself, so intricate its rich design, so perfect the carving of the master craftsman who produced it.
In one of the large halls that looked out over the palace garden, a young man and a young woman sat on a large bench made of luxurious sorapus wood, a bench that could have adorned the chambers of the great Jeddak himself, with its elaborate design and flawless carving by the master craftsman who created it.
Upon the leathern harness of the youth were the insignia of his rank and service—a Padwar in the 91st Umak. The youth was I, Hadron of Hastor, and with me was Sanoma Tora, daughter of Tor Hatan. I had come filled with the determination boldly to plead my cause, but suddenly I had become aware of my unworthiness. What had I to offer this beautiful daughter of the rich Tor Hatan? I was only a Padwar, and a poor one at that. Of course, there was the royal blood of Gathol in my veins, and that, I knew, would have weight with Tor Hatan, but I am not given to boasting and I could not have reminded Sanoma Tora of the advantages to be derived because of it even had I known positively that it would influence her. I had, therefore, nothing to offer but my great love, which is, perhaps, after all, the greatest gift that man or woman can bring to another, and I had thought of late that Sanoma Tora might love me. Upon several occasions she had sent for me, and, although in each instance she had suggested going to the palace of Tara of Helium, I had been vain enough to hope that this was not her sole reason for wishing to be with me.
On the leather harness of the young man were the symbols of his rank and service—a Padwar in the 91st Umak. The young man was me, Hadron of Hastor, and with me was Sanoma Tora, daughter of Tor Hatan. I had come filled with determination to boldly plead my case, but suddenly I became aware of my own unworthiness. What could I offer this beautiful daughter of the wealthy Tor Hatan? I was just a Padwar, and a poor one at that. Sure, I had royal blood from Gathol in my veins, and that would likely hold some weight with Tor Hatan, but I'm not one to boast, and I couldn’t have reminded Sanoma Tora of the benefits of that even if I knew for sure it would influence her. So, I had nothing to give but my deep love, which is perhaps the greatest gift anyone can offer another person. Lately, I had thought that Sanoma Tora might love me. On several occasions, she had asked for me, and even though in each instance she suggested going to the palace of Tara of Helium, I had been vain enough to hope that this wasn’t her only reason for wanting to be with me.
"You are uninteresting tonight, Hadron of Hastor," she said after a particularly long silence, during which I had been endeavoring to formulate my proposal in some convincing and graceful phrases.
"You’re boring tonight, Hadron of Hastor," she said after a long silence, during which I had been trying to come up with convincing and smooth words for my proposal.
"Perhaps," I replied, "it is because I am trying to find the words in which to clothe the most interesting thought I have ever entertained."
"Maybe," I replied, "it's because I'm trying to find the right words to express the most interesting thought I've ever had."
"And what is that?" she asked politely, though with no great show of interest.
"And what is that?" she asked politely, though without much interest.
"I love you, Sanoma Tora," I blurted awkwardly.
"I love you, Sanoma Tora," I said without thinking.
She laughed. It was like the tinkling of silver upon crystal—beautiful but cold. "That has been apparent for a long while," she said, "but why speak of it?"
She laughed. It was like the sound of silver clinking against crystal—pretty but distant. "That’s been obvious for a while," she said, "but why talk about it?"
"And why not?" I asked.
"And why not?" I asked.
"Because even if I returned your love, I am not for you, Hadron of Hastor," she replied coldly.
"Even if I loved you back, I’m still not the one for you, Hadron of Hastor," she said coldly.
"You cannot love me then, Sanoma Tora?" I asked.
"You can't love me then, Sanoma Tora?" I asked.
"I did not say that," she replied.
"I didn't say that," she replied.
"You could love me?"
"Do you really love me?"
"I could love you if I permitted myself the weakness," she said, "but what is love?"
"I could love you if I let myself be weak," she said, "but what is love?"
"Love is everything," I told her.
"Love is everything," I said to her.
Sanoma Tora laughed. "If you think that I would link myself for life to a threadbare Padwar even if I loved him, you are mistaken," she said haughtily. "I am the daughter of Tor Hatan, whose wealth and power are but little less than those of the royal families of Helium. I have suitors whose wealth is so great that they could buy you a thousand times over. Within the year an emissary of the Jeddak Tul Axtar of Jahar waited upon my father; he had seen me and he said that he would return, and, merely for love, you would ask me, who may some day be Jeddara of Jahar, to become the wife of a poor Padwar."
Sanoma Tora laughed. "If you think I would tie myself for life to a broke Padwar even if I loved him, you're wrong," she said proudly. "I'm the daughter of Tor Hatan, whose wealth and power are only slightly less than those of the royal families of Helium. I have suitors whose riches are so vast they could buy you a thousand times over. Within the year, an emissary from Jeddak Tul Axtar of Jahar came to my father; he had seen me and said he would return, and, just for love, you would ask me, who might someday be Jeddara of Jahar, to marry a poor Padwar."
I arose. "Perhaps you are right," I said. "You are so beautiful that it does not seem possible that you could be wrong, but deep in my heart I cannot but feel that happiness is the greatest treasure that one may possess, and love the greatest power. Without these, Sanoma Tora, even a Jeddara is poor indeed."
I got up. "Maybe you’re right," I said. "You're so beautiful that it's hard to believe you could be mistaken, but deep down, I can't shake the feeling that happiness is the greatest treasure one can have, and love is the greatest power. Without these, Sanoma Tora, even a Jeddara is truly poor."
"I shall take my chance," she said.
"I'll take my chance," she said.
"I hope that the Jeddak of Jahar is not as greasy as his emissary," I remarked rather peevishly, I am afraid.
"I hope the Jeddak of Jahar isn't as slimy as his envoy," I said a bit irritably, I'm afraid.
"He may be an animated grease-pot for all I care if he will make me his Jeddara," said Sanoma Tora.
"He can be a lively greaseball for all I care if he makes me his Jeddara," said Sanoma Tora.
"Then there is no hope for me?" I asked.
"Then there's no hope for me?" I asked.
"Not while you have so little to offer, Padwar," she replied.
"Not while you have so little to give, Padwar," she said.
It was then that a slave announced Sil Vagis, and I took my leave. I had never before plumbed such depths of despondency as that which engulfed me as I made my unhappy way back to my quarters, but even though hope seemed dead I had not relinquished my determination to win her. If wealth and power were her price, then I would achieve wealth and power. Just how I was going to accomplish it was not entirely clear, but I was young and to youth all things are possible.
It was then that a servant announced Sil Vagis, and I said my goodbyes. I had never felt such deep sadness as I did while making my way back to my room, but even though hope seemed lost, I hadn’t given up on my resolve to win her over. If wealth and power were what she wanted, then I would get wealth and power. I wasn’t sure how I was going to do it, but I was young, and to youth, everything feels possible.
I had tossed in wakefulness upon my sleeping silks and furs for some time when an officer of the guard burst suddenly into my quarters.
I had been tossing and turning on my silk and fur bedding for a while when a guard officer suddenly burst into my room.
"Hadron!" he shouted, "are you here?"
"Hadron!" he yelled, "are you there?"
"Yes," I replied.
"Yeah," I replied.
"Praised be the ashes of my ancestors!" he exclaimed. "I feared that you were not."
"Bless the ashes of my ancestors!" he exclaimed. "I was worried that you weren't."
"Why should I not be?" I demanded. "What is this all about?"
"Why shouldn't I be?" I asked. "What's going on?"
"Tor Hatan, the fat old treasure bag, is gone mad," he exclaimed.
"Tor Hatan, the fat old treasure bag, has lost it," he exclaimed.
"Tor Hatan gone mad? What do you mean? What has that got to do with me?"
"Tor Hatan has gone crazy? What are you talking about? What does that have to do with me?"
"He swears that you have abducted his daughter."
"He claims that you have kidnapped his daughter."
In an instant I was upon my feet. "Abducted Sanoma Tora!" I cried. "Has something happened to her? Tell me, quickly."
In a flash, I was on my feet. "Abducted Sanoma Tora!" I shouted. "Did something happen to her? Tell me, quickly."
"Yes, she is gone, all right," said my informant, "and there is something mighty mysterious about it."
"Yeah, she's gone for sure," said my informant, "and there's something really mysterious about it."
But I did not wait to hear more. Seizing my harness, I adjusted it as I ran up the spiral runway toward the hangars on the roof of the barracks. I had no authority or permit to take out a flier, but what did that mean to me if Sanoma Tora was in danger?
But I didn't wait to hear more. Grabbing my harness, I put it on as I ran up the spiral ramp toward the hangars on the roof of the barracks. I had no permission or authorization to take a flier, but what did that matter to me if Sanoma Tora was in danger?
The hangar guards sought to detain and question me. I do not recall what I told them; I know that I must have lied to them, for they let me run out a swift one-man flier and an instant later I was racing through the night toward the palace of Tor Hatan.
The hangar guards tried to stop and question me. I don't remember what I said; I know I must have lied to them because they let me take off in a fast one-man flyer, and just a moment later, I was speeding through the night toward the palace of Tor Hatan.
As it stands but little more than two haads from the barracks, I was there in but a few moments, and, as I landed in the garden, which was now brilliantly lighted, I saw a number of people congregated there, among whom were Tor Hatan and Sil Vagis.
As it was only a short distance from the barracks, I arrived in just a few moments, and as I stepped into the garden, which was now brightly lit, I saw a group of people gathered there, including Tor Hatan and Sil Vagis.
As I leaped from the deck of the flier, the former came angrily toward me. "So it is you!" he cried. "What have you to say for yourself? Where is my daughter?"
As I jumped off the deck of the flier, he charged at me, furious. "So it’s you!" he yelled. "What do you have to say for yourself? Where’s my daughter?"
"That is what I have come to ask, Tor Hatan," I replied.
"That's what I've come to ask, Tor Hatan," I replied.
"You are at the bottom of this," he cried. "You abducted her. She told Sil Vagis that this very night you had demanded her hand in marriage and that she had refused you."
"You are behind all of this," he shouted. "You kidnapped her. She told Sil Vagis that tonight you asked her to marry you, and she turned you down."
"I did ask for her hand," I said, "and she refused me. That part is true; but if she has been abducted, in the name of your first ancestor, do not waste time trying to connect me with the diabolical plot. I had nothing to do with it. How did it happen? Who was with her?"
"I did ask for her hand," I said, "and she turned me down. That part is true; but if she’s been taken, for the love of your first ancestor, don’t waste time trying to link me to this evil scheme. I had nothing to do with it. How did it happen? Who was with her?"
"Sil Vagis was with her. They were walking in the garden," replied Tor Hatan.
"Sil Vagis was with her. They were walking in the garden," replied Tor Hatan.
"You saw her abducted," I asked, turning to Sil Vagis, "and you are here unwounded and alive?"
"You saw her get kidnapped," I asked, turning to Sil Vagis, "and you're here unhurt and alive?"
He started to stammer. "There were many of them," he said. "They overpowered me."
He began to stammer. "There were a lot of them," he said. "They overwhelmed me."
"You saw them?" I asked.
"You saw them?" I asked.
"Yes."
Yes.
"Was I among them?" I demanded.
"Was I one of them?" I asked.
"It was dark. I could not recognize any of them; perhaps they were disguised."
"It was dark. I couldn't recognize any of them; maybe they were in disguise."
"They overpowered you?" I asked him.
"They overwhelmed you?" I asked him.
"Yes," he said.
"Yeah," he said.
"You lie!" I exclaimed. "Had they laid hands upon you they would have killed you. You ran away and hid, never drawing a weapon to defend the girl."
"You’re lying!" I shouted. "If they had gotten their hands on you, they would have killed you. You ran away and hid, never pulling a weapon to defend the girl."
"That is a lie," cried Sil Vagis. "I fought with them, but they overpowered me."
"That’s a lie," shouted Sil Vagis. "I fought them, but they overpowered me."
I turned to Tor Hatan. "We are wasting time," I said. "Is there no one who can give us a clue as to the identity of these men and the direction they took in their flight? How and whence came they? How and whence did they depart?"
I turned to Tor Hatan. "We're wasting time," I said. "Is there anyone who can give us a hint about who these guys are and which way they went? How did they get here, and where did they leave from?"
"He is trying to throw you off the track, Tor Hatan," said Sil Vagis. "Who else could it have been but a disgruntled suitor? What would you say if I should tell you that the metal of the men who stole Sanoma Tora was the metal of the warriors of Hastor?"
"He’s trying to mislead you, Tor Hatan," said Sil Vagis. "Who else could it possibly be but a bitter suitor? What if I told you that the metal of the men who took Sanoma Tora came from the warriors of Hastor?"
"I would say that you are a liar," I replied. "If it was so dark that you could not recognize faces, how could you decipher the insignia upon their harness?"
"I would call you a liar," I replied. "If it was so dark that you couldn't see faces, how could you make out the insignia on their harness?"
At this juncture another officer of the 91st Umak joined us. "We have found one who may, perhaps, shed some light upon the subject," he said, "if he lives long enough to speak."
At this point, another officer from the 91st Umak joined us. "We've found someone who might shed some light on the subject," he said, "if he lives long enough to talk."
Men had been searching the grounds of Tor Hatan and that portion of the city adjacent to his palace, and now several approached bearing a man, whom they laid upon the sward at our feet. His broken and mangled body was entirely naked, and as he lay there gasping feebly for breath, he was a pitiful spectacle.
Men had been searching the grounds of Tor Hatan and the part of the city next to his palace, and now several of them came forward carrying a man, whom they laid down on the grass at our feet. His broken and mangled body was completely bare, and as he lay there weakly gasping for air, he was a tragic sight.
A slave dispatched into the palace returned with stimulants, and when some of these had been forced between his lips, the man revived slightly.
A servant sent to the palace came back with stimulants, and after some of these were pushed between his lips, the man regained a bit of consciousness.
"Who are you?" asked Tor Hatan.
"Who are you?" Tor Hatan asked.
"I am a warrior of the city guard," replied the man feebly.
"I’m a member of the city guard," the man replied weakly.
An officer approached Tor Hatan excitedly. "My men have just found six more bodies close to the point at which we discovered this man," he said. "They are all naked and similarly broken and mangled."
An officer rushed over to Tor Hatan, full of excitement. "My team just found six more bodies near where we found this guy," he said. "They're all naked and similarly broken and damaged."
"Perhaps we shall get to the bottom of this yet," said Tor Hatan, and, turning again to the poor, broken thing upon the scarlet sward, he directed him to proceed.
"Maybe we'll figure this out after all," said Tor Hatan, and, turning once more to the poor, broken figure on the red grass, he instructed him to continue.
"We were on night patrol over the city when we saw a craft running without lights. As we approached it and turned our searchlight upon it, I caught a single, brief glimpse of it. It bore no colors or insignia to denote its origin and its design was unlike that of any ship I have ever seen. It had a long, low, enclosed cabin upon either side of which were mounted two peculiar looking guns. This was all I had time to note, except that I saw a man directing one of the guns in our direction. The padwar in command of our ship immediately gave orders to fire upon the stranger, and at the same time he hailed him. At that instant our ship dissolved in mid-air; even my harness fell from me. I remember falling, that is all," and with these words he gasped once and died.
"We were on night patrol over the city when we saw a craft with no lights on. As we got closer and aimed our searchlight at it, I caught a quick glimpse. It had no colors or markings to show where it was from, and its design was unlike any ship I’ve ever seen. It had a long, low, enclosed cabin, and on each side, there were two strange-looking guns. That was all I managed to notice, except I saw a man pointing one of the guns at us. The padwar in charge of our ship quickly ordered us to fire on the unknown craft while also trying to communicate with it. At that moment, our ship vanished into thin air; even my harness fell off. I remember falling, and that's all," and with those words, he gasped once and died.
Tor Hatan called his people around him. "There must have been someone about the palace or the grounds who saw something of this occurrence," he said. "I command that no matter who may be involved, whoever has any knowledge whatsoever of this affair, shall speak."
Tor Hatan gathered his people around him. "There must have been someone in the palace or on the grounds who saw something related to this event," he said. "I order that no matter who is involved, anyone who has any knowledge of this situation must come forward."
A slave stepped forward, and as he approached Tor Hatan eyed him with haughty arrogance.
A slave stepped forward, and as he got closer, Tor Hatan looked at him with a proud arrogance.
"Well," demanded the odwar, "what have you to say? Speak!"
"Well," the odwar demanded, "what do you have to say? Speak up!"
"You have commanded it, Tor Hatan," said the slave; "otherwise I should not speak, for when I have told what I saw I shall have incurred the enmity of a powerful noble," and he glanced quickly toward Sil Vagis.
"You've ordered it, Tor Hatan," said the slave; "otherwise I wouldn’t say a word, because after I share what I saw, I’ll have made an enemy of a powerful noble," he said, glancing quickly at Sil Vagis.
"And if you speak the truth, man, you will have won the friendship of a padwar whose sword is not so mean but that it may protect you even from a powerful noble," I said quickly, and I, too, glanced at Sil Vagis, for it was in my mind that what the fellow had to tell might be none too flattering to the soft fop who masqueraded beneath the title of a warrior.
"And if you speak the truth, man, you'll gain the friendship of a padwar whose sword is strong enough to protect you even from a powerful noble," I said quickly, and I glanced at Sil Vagis as well, because I thought that what the guy had to say might not be too complimentary to the soft fop pretending to be a warrior.
"Speak!" commanded Tor Hatan impatiently. "And see to it that thou dost not lie."
"Speak!" Tor Hatan commanded impatiently. "And make sure you don't lie."
"For fourteen years I have served faithfully in your palace, Tor Hatan," replied the man, "ever since I was brought to Helium a prisoner of war after the fall and sack of Kobol, where I served in the body guard of the Jed of Kobol, and in all that time you have had no reason to question my truthfulness. Sanoma Tora trusted me, and had I had a sword this night she might still be with us."
"For fourteen years, I have faithfully served in your palace, Tor Hatan," the man replied. "Ever since I was brought to Helium as a prisoner of war after the fall and destruction of Kobol, where I worked in the bodyguard of the Jed of Kobol. Throughout all this time, you’ve had no reason to doubt my honesty. Sanoma Tora trusted me, and if I had a sword tonight, she might still be alive."
"Come! Come!" cried Tor Hatan; "get to the point. What saw you?"
"Come on! Come on!" shouted Tor Hatan. "Get to the point. What did you see?"
"The fellow saw nothing," snapped Sil Vagis. "Why waste time upon him? He seeks but to glory in a little brief notoriety."
"The guy didn’t see anything," Sil Vagis snapped. "Why waste time on him? He just wants to bask in a bit of fleeting fame."
"Let him speak," I exclaimed.
"Let him talk," I exclaimed.
"I had just ascended the first ramp to the second level of the palace," explained the slave, "on my way to the sleeping quarters of Tor Hatan to arrange his sleeping silks and furs for the night as is my custom, and, pausing for a moment to look out into the garden, I saw Sanoma Tora and Sil Vagis walking in the moonlight. Conscious that I should not thus observe them, I was about to continue on my way about my duties when I saw a flier dropping silently out of the night toward the garden. Its motors were noiseless, it showed no light. It seemed a spectral ship and of such strange design that even if for no other reason it would have arrested my attention, but there were other reasons. Unlighted ships move through the night for no good purpose, and so I paused to watch it.
"I had just gone up the first ramp to the second level of the palace," the slave explained, "on my way to Tor Hatan's sleeping quarters to arrange his sleeping silks and furs for the night like I always do. While I was taking a moment to look out at the garden, I saw Sanoma Tora and Sil Vagis walking in the moonlight. Knowing I shouldn’t be watching them, I was about to go back to my duties when I noticed a flier quietly descending from the night toward the garden. Its engines were silent, and it had no lights. It looked like a ghostly ship and was so oddly designed that it would have caught my attention anyway, but there were other reasons. Unlit ships move through the night for no good reason, so I stopped to watch it.
"It landed silently and quickly behind Sanoma Tora and Sil Vagis; nor did they seem aware of its presence until their attention was attracted by the slight clanking of the accoutrements of one of the several warriors who sprang from its low cabin as it grounded. Then Sil Vagis wheeled about. For just an instant he stood as though petrified and then as the strange warriors leaped toward him, he turned and fled into the concealing shrubbery of the garden."
"It landed quietly and swiftly behind Sanoma Tora and Sil Vagis; they didn't seem to notice it until the faint clanking of the gear from one of the warriors who jumped out of its low cabin caught their attention. Then Sil Vagis spun around. For a brief moment, he stood frozen, and as the strange warriors charged toward him, he turned and ran into the cover of the garden's bushes."
"It is a lie," cried Sil Vagis.
"It’s a lie," shouted Sil Vagis.
"Silence, coward!" I commanded.
"Quiet, coward!" I commanded.
"Continue, slave!" directed Tor Hatan.
"Keep going, slave!" directed Tor Hatan.
"Sanoma Tora was not aware of the presence of the strange warriors until she was seized roughly from behind. It all happened so quickly that I scarce had time to realize the purpose of the sinister visitation before they laid hands upon her. When I comprehended that my mistress was the object of this night attack, I rushed hurriedly down the ramp, but ere I reached the garden they had dragged her aboard the flier. Even then, however, had I had a sword I might at least have died in the service of Sanoma Tora, for I reached the ship of mystery as the last warrior was clambering aboard. I seized him by the harness and attempted to drag him to the ground, at the same time shouting loudly to attract the palace guard, but ere I did so one of his fellows on the deck above me drew his long sword and struck viciously at my head. The blade caught me but a glancing blow which, however, sufficed to stun me for a moment, so that I relaxed my hold upon the strange warrior and fell to the sward. When I regained consciousness the ship had gone and the tardy palace guard was pouring from the guard room. I have spoken—and spoken truthfully."
"Sanoma Tora didn’t notice the strange warriors until they grabbed her roughly from behind. It all happened so fast that I barely had time to understand the reason for this sinister intrusion before they got hold of her. Once I realized that my mistress was the target of this nighttime attack, I rushed down the ramp, but before I could reach the garden, they had pulled her onto the flier. Even then, if I had a sword, I might have at least died defending Sanoma Tora, because I arrived at the mysterious ship just as the last warrior was climbing aboard. I grabbed him by the harness and tried to pull him down, shouting loudly to get the attention of the palace guard, but before I could do anything, one of his comrades on the deck above me swung his long sword and struck viciously at my head. The blade hit me with just a glancing blow, but it was enough to stun me for a moment, causing me to loosen my grip on the warrior and fall to the ground. When I came to, the ship was gone and the late palace guard was rushing out of the guard room. I have spoken—and I have spoken the truth."
Tor Hatan's cold gaze sought out the lowered eyes of Sil Vagis. "What have you to say to this?" he demanded.
Tor Hatan's cold stare focused on the downcast eyes of Sil Vagis. "What do you have to say about this?" he demanded.
"The fellow is in the employ of Hadron of Hastor," shouted Sil Vagis. "He speaks nothing but lies. I attacked them when they came, but there were many and they overpowered me. This fellow was not present."
"The guy works for Hadron of Hastor," shouted Sil Vagis. "He only tells lies. I went after them when they arrived, but there were too many, and they overpowered me. This guy wasn’t there."
"Let me see thy head," I said to the slave, and when he had come and knelt before me I saw a great red welt the length of one side of his head above the ear, just such a welt as a glancing blow from the flat side of a long sword might have made. "Here," I said to Tor Hatan, pointing to the great welt, "is the proof of a slave's loyalty and courage. Let us see the wounds received by a noble of Helium who by his own testimony engaged in single-handed combat against great odds. Surely in such an encounter he must have received at least a single scratch."
"Let me see your head," I said to the slave, and when he came and knelt before me, I noticed a big red mark the length of one side of his head above the ear, just like the kind of mark you’d get from a glancing blow with the flat side of a longsword. "Look," I said to Tor Hatan, pointing to the large mark, "this shows a slave's loyalty and bravery. Now let’s see the injuries of a noble from Helium who, by his own account, fought against great odds all by himself. Surely in such a battle, he must have at least gotten a small scratch."
"Unless he is as marvelous a swordsman as the great John Carter himself," said the dwar of the palace guard with a thinly veiled sneer.
"Unless he’s as amazing a swordsman as the great John Carter himself," said the dwarf of the palace guard with a barely concealed sneer.
"It is all a plot," cried Sil Vagis. "Do you take the word of a slave, Tor Hatan, against that of a noble of Helium?"
"It’s all a scheme," shouted Sil Vagis. "Do you believe a slave, Tor Hatan, over a noble from Helium?"
"I rely on the testimony of my eyes and my senses," replied the odwar, and he turned his back upon Sil Vagis and again addressed the slave. "Didst thou recognize any of those who abducted Sanoma Tora," he demanded, "or note their harness or their metal?"
"I trust what I see and feel," the odwar replied, turning away from Sil Vagis to address the slave again. "Did you recognize any of the people who took Sanoma Tora," he demanded, "or notice their gear or their weapons?"
"I got no good look at the face of any of them, but I did see the harness and the metal of him whom I tried to drag from the flier."
"I didn't get a good look at any of their faces, but I did see the harness and the metal on the guy I tried to pull out of the flier."
"Was it the metal of Hastor?" asked Tor Hatan.
"Was it the metal of Hastor?" Tor Hatan asked.
"By my first ancestor, it was not," replied the slave emphatically; "nor was it the metal of any other city of the Empire of Helium. The design and the insignia were unknown to me, and yet there was a certain familiarity about them that tantalizes me. I feel that I have seen them before, but when and where I cannot recall. In the service of my jed I fought invaders from many lands and it may be that upon some of these I saw similar metal many years ago."
"That’s not from my first ancestor," the slave replied firmly; "and it’s not like any metal from another city in the Empire of Helium. I didn't recognize the design or the insignia, but there’s something oddly familiar about them that intrigues me. I feel like I’ve seen them somewhere before, but I can’t remember when or where. During my time serving my jed, I fought against invaders from various lands, and it’s possible that I came across similar metal many years ago."
"Are you satisfied, Tor Hatan," I demanded, "that the aspersions cast upon me by Sil Vagis are without foundation?"
"Are you satisfied, Tor Hatan," I asked, "that the accusations made against me by Sil Vagis are unfounded?"
"Yes, Hadron of Hastor," replied the odwar.
"Yes, Hadron of Hastor," replied the odwar.
"Then with your leave, I shall depart," I said.
"Then, with your permission, I'll take my leave," I said.
"Where are you going?" he asked.
"Where are you headed?" he asked.
"To find Sanoma Tora," I replied.
"To find Sanoma Tora," I said.
"And if you find her," he said, "and return her safely to me, she is yours."
"And if you find her," he said, "and bring her back to me safely, she will be yours."
I made no other acknowledgment of his generous offer than to bow deeply, for I had it in my mind that Sanoma Tora might have something to say about that, and whether she had or not, I wished no mate who came not to me willingly.
I didn't respond to his generous offer in any way other than to bow deeply, because I thought Sanoma Tora might have something to say about it. Regardless of her input, I didn’t want a partner who didn’t come to me willingly.
Leaping to the deck of the flier that brought me I rose into the night and sped in the direction of the marble palace of the Warlord of Barsoom, for, even though the hour was late, I was determined to see him without an instant's unnecessary loss of time.
Leaping onto the deck of the ship that brought me, I ascended into the night and sped toward the marble palace of the Warlord of Barsoom, because, even though it was late, I was determined to see him without wasting a single moment.
II
II
BROUGHT DOWN
Taken down
As I approached the Warlord's palace I saw signs of activity unusual for that hour of the night. Fliers were arriving and departing, and when I alighted upon that portion of the roof reserved for military ships, I saw the fliers of a number of high officers of the Warlord's staff.
As I got closer to the Warlord's palace, I noticed unusual activity for that time of night. Fliers were coming and going, and when I landed on the part of the roof meant for military ships, I saw the fliers of several high-ranking officers of the Warlord's staff.
Being a frequent visitor at the palace and being well known by all the officers of the Warlord's body guard, I had no difficulty in gaining admission to the palace, and presently I was waiting in the hall, just off the small compartment in which the Warlord is accustomed to give small, private audiences, while a slave announced me to his master.
Being a regular visitor at the palace and known to all the officers in the Warlord's bodyguard, I had no trouble getting into the palace. Soon, I was waiting in the hall, just outside the small room where the Warlord usually holds private meetings, while a servant announced me to him.
I do not know how long I waited. It could not have been a long while, yet it seemed to me a veritable eternity, because my mind was harassed by the conviction that the woman I loved was in dire danger. I was possessed by a conviction, ridiculous perhaps, but none the less real, that I alone could save her and that every instant I was delayed reduced her chances for succor before it was too late.
I don’t know how long I waited. It couldn’t have been too long, but it felt like an eternity to me because my mind was consumed by the belief that the woman I loved was in serious danger. I was convinced, maybe absurdly, but it felt very real, that only I could save her and that every second I delayed lowered her chances of getting help before it was too late.
But at last I was invited to enter, and when I stood in the presence of the great Warlord I found him surrounded by men high in the councils of Helium.
But finally, I was invited in, and when I stood before the great Warlord, I found him surrounded by influential men from the councils of Helium.
"I assume," said John Carter, coming directly to the point, "that what brings you here tonight, Hadron of Hastor, pertains to the matter of the abduction of the daughter of Tor Hatan. Have you any knowledge or any theory that might cast any light upon the subject?"
"I assume," said John Carter, getting straight to the point, "that what brings you here tonight, Hadron of Hastor, is related to the abduction of Tor Hatan's daughter. Do you have any information or theories that could shed some light on the matter?"
"No," I replied. "I have come merely to obtain your authority to depart at once in an attempt to pick up the trail of the abductors of Sanoma Tora."
"No," I said. "I've come just to get your permission to leave right away in order to try to track down the people who took Sanoma Tora."
"Where do you intend to search?" he demanded.
"Where do you plan to look?" he asked.
"I do not yet know, sir," I replied, "but I shall find her."
"I don't know yet, sir," I replied, "but I will find her."
He smiled. "Such assurance is at least an asset," he said, "and knowing as I do what prompts it, I shall grant you the permission you desire. While the abduction of a daughter of Helium is in itself of sufficient gravity to warrant the use of every resource to apprehend her abductors and return her to her home, there is also involved in this occurrence an element that may portend high danger to the empire. As you doubtless know, the mysterious ship that bore her away mounted a gun from which emanated some force that entirely disintegrated all the metal parts of the patrol flier that sought to intercept and question it. Even the weapons and the metal portions of the harness of the crew were dissipated into nothing, a fact that was easily discernible from an examination of the wreck of the patrol flier and the bodies of its crew. Wood, leather, flesh, everything of the animal and vegetable kingdom that was aboard the flier, has been found scattered about the ground where it fell, but no trace of any metallic substance remains.
He smiled. "At least your confidence is a plus," he said, "and knowing what leads you to feel that way, I’ll give you the permission you need. While the kidnapping of a daughter of Helium is serious enough to justify using all resources to find her captors and bring her back home, this situation also has an aspect that could signal great danger to the empire. As you probably know, the mysterious ship that took her had a gun that emitted a force capable of completely disintegrating all the metal components of the patrol flier that tried to intercept and question it. Even the weapons and the metal parts of the crew’s harness vanished without a trace, which was clear from the wreckage of the patrol flier and the remains of its crew. Wood, leather, flesh, everything organic that was on the flier, has been found scattered on the ground where it crashed, but not a single piece of metal is left behind.
"I am impressing this upon you because it suggests to my mind a possible clue to the general location of the city of these new enemies of Helium. I am convinced that this is but the first blow, since any navy armed with such guns could easily hold Helium at its mercy, and few indeed are the cities of Barsoom outside the empire that would not seize with avidity upon any instrument that would give them the sack of the Twin Cities.
"I’m emphasizing this because it hints at a possible clue about where the city of these new enemies of Helium might be located. I’m convinced this is just the beginning because any navy equipped with such guns could easily dominate Helium, and there are very few cities on Barsoom outside the empire that wouldn’t eagerly seize any opportunity to capture the Twin Cities."
"For some time now we have been deeply concerned by the increasing number of missing ships of the navy. In nearly all instances these were ships engaged in charting air currents and recording atmospheric pressures in different parts of Barsoom far from the empire, and recently it has become apparent that the vast majority of these ships which never return were those cruising in the southern part of the western hemisphere, an unhospitable portion of our planet concerning which we have unfortunately but little knowledge owing to the fact that we have developed no trade with the unfriendly people inhabiting this vast domain.
"For a while now, we've been really worried about the rising number of missing navy ships. Almost all of these vessels were out there mapping air currents and measuring atmospheric pressure in various parts of Barsoom, far from the empire. Lately, it’s become clear that most of the ships that have gone missing were operating in the southern part of the western hemisphere, a harsh area of our planet that we unfortunately know very little about because we haven’t established trade with the hostile people living in that vast territory."
"This, Hadron of Hastor, is only a suggestion; only the vaguest of clues, but I offer it to you for what it is worth. A thousand one-man scout fliers will be dispatched between now and noon tomorrow in search of the abductors of Sanoma Tora; nor will these be all. Cruisers and battleships will take the air as well, for Helium must know what city or what nation has developed a weapon of destruction such as that used above Helium this night.
"This, Hadron of Hastor, is just a suggestion; only the slightest hint, but I’m giving it to you for whatever it's worth. A thousand solo scout fliers will be sent out between now and noon tomorrow to look for the kidnappers of Sanoma Tora; and that’s not all. Cruisers and battleships will also take to the skies, because Helium needs to know which city or nation has created a weapon of destruction like the one used above Helium tonight."
"It is my belief that the weapon is of very recent invention and that whatever power possesses it, must be bending every effort to perfect it and produce it in such quantities as to make them masters of the world. I have spoken. Go, and may fortune be with you."
"It’s my belief that this weapon was just recently invented and that whoever has it is putting all their energy into perfecting it and producing enough of them to take control of the world. I’ve said my piece. Go, and good luck."
You may believe that I lost no time in setting out upon my mission now that I had authority from John Carter. Going to my quarters I hastened my preparation for departure, which consisted principally of making a careful selection of weapons and of exchanging a rather ornate harness I had been wearing for one of simpler design and of heavier and more durable leather. My fighting harness is always the best and plainest that I can procure and is made for me by a famous harnessmaker of Lesser Helium. My equipment of weapons was standard, consisting of a long sword, a short sword, a dagger and a pistol. I also provided myself with extra ammunition and a supply of the concentrated ration used by all Martian fighting men.
You might think I wasted no time starting my mission now that I had authorization from John Carter. I rushed to my quarters to get ready for departure, mainly focusing on carefully choosing my weapons and swapping out the fancy harness I had been wearing for a simpler one made of thicker, tougher leather. My fighting gear is always the best and simplest I can find, made for me by a well-known harness maker from Lesser Helium. My weapon setup was standard, including a long sword, a short sword, a dagger, and a pistol. I also stocked up on extra ammunition and a supply of concentrated rations used by all Martian soldiers.
As I gathered together these simple necessities which, with a single sleeping fur, would constitute my equipment, my mind was given over to consideration of various explanations for the disappearance of Sanoma Tora. I searched my brain for any slightest memory that might suggest an explanation, or point toward the possible identity of her abductors. It was while thus engaged that I recalled her reference to the jeddak, Tul Axtar of Jahar; nor was there within the scope of my recollection any other incident that might point a clue. I distinctly recalled the emissary of Tul Axtar who had visited the court of Helium not long since. I had heard him boast of the riches and power of his jeddak and the beauty of his women. Perhaps, then, it might be as well to search in the direction of Jahar as elsewhere, but before departing I determined once again to visit the palace of Tor Hatan and question the slave who had been the last to see Sanoma Tora.
As I gathered these basic essentials, which, along with a single sleeping fur, would make up my gear, I started thinking about different reasons for the disappearance of Sanoma Tora. I rummaged through my mind for any small memory that could provide an explanation or hint at the identity of her kidnappers. While doing this, I remembered her mention of the jeddak, Tul Axtar of Jahar; however, I couldn’t recall any other incident that might offer a clue. I clearly remembered the emissary of Tul Axtar who had visited the court of Helium not long ago. I had heard him brag about the wealth and power of his jeddak and the beauty of his women. So, it might be a good idea to search in the direction of Jahar, but before I left, I decided to visit the palace of Tor Hatan again and question the slave who had last seen Sanoma Tora.
As I was about to set out, another thought occurred to me. I knew that in the Temple of Knowledge might be found either illustrations or replicas of the metal and harness of every nation of Barsoom, concerning which aught was known in Helium. I therefore repaired immediately to the temple and with the assistance of a clerk I presently found a drawing of the harness and metal of a warrior of Jahar. By an ingenious photostatic process a copy of this illustration was made for me in a few seconds, and with this I hastened to the palace of Tor Hatan.
As I was about to leave, another idea popped into my head. I remembered that the Temple of Knowledge had either pictures or models of the armor and gear of every nation on Barsoom that was known in Helium. So, I went straight to the temple and, with the help of a clerk, quickly found a drawing of the armor and gear of a warrior from Jahar. Using a clever photostatic process, I got a copy of this illustration made for me in just a few seconds, and with it, I rushed to the palace of Tor Hatan.
The odwar was absent, having gone to the palace of the Warlord, but his majordomo summoned the slave, Kal Tavan, who had witnessed the abduction of Sanoma Tora and grappled with one of her abductors.
The odwar was gone, visiting the Warlord's palace, but his majordomo called for the slave, Kal Tavan, who had seen the kidnapping of Sanoma Tora and fought with one of her abductors.
As the man approached I noticed him more particularly than I had previously. He was well built, with clear cut features and that air which definitely bespeaks the fighting man.
As the guy came closer, I noticed him more distinctly than before. He was well-built, with sharp features and that vibe that definitely screams fighter.
"You said, I believe, that you were from Kobol?" I asked.
"You mentioned, if I remember correctly, that you were from Kobol?" I asked.
"I was born in Tjanath," he replied. "I had a wife and daughter there. My wife fell before the hand of an assassin and my daughter disappeared when she was very young. I never knew what became of her. The familiar scenes of Tjanath reminded me of happier days and so increased my grief that I could not remain. I turned panthan then and sought service in other cities; thus I served in Kobol."
"I was born in Tjanath," he said. "I had a wife and daughter there. My wife fell victim to an assassin, and my daughter disappeared when she was very young. I never knew what happened to her. The familiar sights of Tjanath brought back happier times and deepened my sorrow, so I couldn't stay. I then became a panthan and looked for work in other cities; that's how I ended up serving in Kobol."
"And there you became familiar with the harness and the metal of many cities and nations?" I asked.
"And that's when you got to know the harness and the metal of many cities and nations?" I asked.
"Yes," he replied.
"Yeah," he replied.
"What harness and metal are these?" I demanded, handing him the copy of the illustration I had brought from the Temple of Knowledge.
"What kind of harness and metal are these?" I asked, handing him the copy of the illustration I had brought from the Temple of Knowledge.
He examined it briefly and then his eyes lighted with recognition. "It is the same," he said. "It is identical."
He looked at it for a moment, and then his eyes lit up with recognition. "It's the same," he said. "It's identical."
"Identical with what?" I asked.
"Identical to what?" I asked.
"With the harness worn by the warrior with whom I grappled at the time that Sanoma Tora was stolen," he replied.
"With the harness worn by the warrior I was struggling with when Sanoma Tora was stolen," he replied.
"The identity of the abductors of Sanoma Tora is established," I said, and then I turned to the majordomo. "Send a messenger at once to the Warlord informing him that the daughter of Tor Hatan was stolen by men from Jahar and that it is my belief that they are the emissaries of Tul Axtar, Jeddak of Jahar," and without more words I turned and left the palace, going directly to my flier.
"The identity of the people who kidnapped Sanoma Tora is confirmed," I said, then turned to the steward. "Send a messenger right away to the Warlord to let him know that Tor Hatan's daughter was taken by men from Jahar and I believe they are the representatives of Tul Axtar, Jeddak of Jahar," and without saying anything more, I turned and left the palace, heading straight for my flier.
As I arose above the towers and domes and lofty landing stages of Greater Helium, I turned the prow of my flier toward the west and opening wide the throttle sped swiftly through the thin air of dying Barsoom toward that great unknown expanse of her remote southwestern hemisphere, somewhere within the vast reaches of which lay Jahar, toward which, I was now convinced, Sanoma Tora was being borne to become not the Jeddara of Tul Axtar, but his slave, for jeddaks take not their jeddaras by force upon Barsoom.
As I lifted above the towers, domes, and high landing pads of Greater Helium, I pointed the front of my flier west and opened the throttle wide, speeding quickly through the thin air of dying Barsoom toward the vast unknown in her remote southwestern hemisphere, where Jahar was located. I now believed that Sanoma Tora was being taken there not to become the Jeddara of Tul Axtar but his slave, since jeddaks don’t take their jeddaras by force on Barsoom.
I believe that I understood the explanation of Sanoma Tora's abduction, an explanation that would have caused her intensive chagrin since it was far from flattery. I believed that Tul Axtar's emissary had reported to his master the charm and beauty of the daughter of Tor Hatan, but that she was not of sufficiently noble birth to become his jeddara, and so he had adopted the only expedient by which he might possess her. My blood boiled at the suggestion, but my judgment told me that it was doubtless right.
I think I got the explanation for Sanoma Tora's abduction, an explanation that must have really upset her since it was anything but flattering. I figured that Tul Axtar's messenger had told him about the charm and beauty of the daughter of Tor Hatan, but that she wasn't of a high enough status to become his jeddara, so he had taken the only way he could to have her. My blood boiled at the thought, but my reason told me it was probably true.
During the past years—I should say the last ten or twenty—greater strides have been taken in the advancement of aeronautics than had been previously achieved in the preceding five hundred years.
In the last ten or twenty years, there have been more advancements in aeronautics than in the previous five hundred years combined.
The perfection of the destination control compass by Carthoris of Helium is considered by many authorities to have marked the beginning of a new era of invention. For centuries we seemed to have stagnated in a quiet pond of self sufficiency, as though we had reached the acme of perfection beyond which it was useless to seek for improvement upon what we considered the highest possible achievements of science.
The perfection of the destination control compass by Carthoris of Helium is seen by many experts as the start of a new era of invention. For centuries, we seemed to be stuck in a calm pond of self-sufficiency, as if we had reached the peak of perfection beyond which it was pointless to look for improvements on what we thought were the greatest possible achievements of science.
Carthoris of Helium, inheriting the restless, inquiring mind of his earth-born sire, awoke us. Our best minds took up the challenge and the result was rapid improvement in design and construction of air ships of all classes, leading to a revolution in motor building.
Carthoris of Helium, inheriting the restless, curious mind of his earthly father, awakened us. Our brightest minds took up the challenge, resulting in rapid advancements in the design and construction of airships of all types, leading to a revolution in engine development.
We had thought that our light, compact, powerful radium motors never could be improved upon and that man never would travel, either safely or economically, at a speed greater than that attained by our swift one-man scout fliers—about eleven hundred haads per zode (Note: Approximately one hundred and sixty-six earth miles per hour), when a virtually unknown padwar in the navy of Helium announced that he had perfected a motor that, with one-half the weight of our present motors, would develop twice the speed.
We thought that our light, compact, and powerful radium motors couldn’t be improved and that people would never travel, either safely or affordably, at a speed greater than what our fast one-man scout fliers could achieve—about eleven hundred haads per zode (Note: Approximately one hundred and sixty-six earth miles per hour), when a virtually unknown padwar in the Helium navy announced that he had developed a motor that, weighing half as much as our current motors, would reach twice the speed.
It was this type of motor with which my scout flier was equipped—a seemingly fuelless motor, since it derived its invisible and imponderable energy from the inexhaustible and illimitable magnetic field of the planet.
It was this kind of motor that my scout flier had—a seemingly fuelless motor, because it got its invisible and weightless energy from the endless and limitless magnetic field of the planet.
There are certain basic features of the new motor that only the inventor and the government of Helium are fully conversant with and these are most jealously guarded. The propeller shaft, which extends well within the hull of the flier, is constructed of numerous lateral segments insulated from one another. Around this shaft and supporting it is a series of armature-like bearings, through the center of which it passes.
There are some basic features of the new engine that only the inventor and the government of Helium fully understand, and they keep this information very secret. The propeller shaft, which extends deep into the hull of the flier, is made up of several lateral segments that are insulated from each other. Surrounding this shaft and supporting it are a series of armature-like bearings, through which the shaft passes.
These are connected in series with a device called an accumulator through which the planet's magnetic energy is directed to the peculiar armatures which encircle the propeller shaft.
These are linked in a series with a device called an accumulator that channels the planet's magnetic energy to the unique armatures surrounding the propeller shaft.
Speed is controlled by increasing or diminishing the number of armature bearings in series with the accumulator—all of which is simply accomplished by a lever which the pilot moves from his position on deck where he ordinarily lies upon his stomach, his safety belt snapped to heavy rings in the deck.
Speed is adjusted by adding or reducing the number of armature bearings connected to the accumulator. This is easily done with a lever that the pilot operates from his spot on the deck, where he usually lies on his stomach, secured by a safety belt attached to heavy rings in the deck.
The limit of speed, the inventor claims, is dependent solely upon the ratio of strength to weight in the construction of the hull. My one-man scout flier easily attains a speed of two thousand haads per zode (Note: Approximately three hundred miles per hour), nor could it have withstood the tremendous strain of a more powerful motor, though it would have been easy to have increased both the power of one and the speed of the other by the simple expedient of a longer propeller shaft carrying an additional number of armature bearings.
The inventor claims that the speed limit depends entirely on the strength-to-weight ratio of the hull’s design. My single-person scout flyer easily reaches a speed of two thousand haads per zode (Note: Approximately three hundred miles per hour), and it could not have handled the tremendous pressure of a more powerful engine. However, it would have been straightforward to boost both the engine power and speed by simply using a longer propeller shaft with extra armature bearings.
In experimenting with the new motor at Hastor last year, an attempt was made to drive a scout flier at the exceptional speed of thirty-three hundred haads per zode (Note: Approximately five hundred miles per hour; a haad being 1949.0592 earth feet and a zode 2.462 earth hours), but before the ship had attained a speed of three thousand haads per zode it was torn to pieces by its own motor. Now we are trying to attain the greatest strength with the minimum of weight and as our engineers succeed we shall see speed increased until, I am sure, we shall easily attain to seven thousand haads per zode (Note: Over one thousand miles per hour), for there seems to be no limit to the power of these marvelous motors.
In testing the new motor at Hastor last year, we tried to drive a scout flier at an incredible speed of thirty-three hundred haads per zode (Note: About five hundred miles per hour; a haad is 1949.0592 earth feet and a zode is 2.462 earth hours), but before the ship could reach a speed of three thousand haads per zode, it was destroyed by its own motor. Now we're focusing on achieving maximum strength with minimal weight, and as our engineers make progress, I believe we'll see speeds increase until we easily reach seven thousand haads per zode (Note: Over one thousand miles per hour), because there seems to be no limit to the power of these amazing motors.
Little less marvelous is the destination control compass of Carthoris of Helium. Set your pointer upon any spot on either hemisphere; open your throttle and then lie down and go to sleep if you will. Your ship will carry you to your destination, drop within a hundred yards or so of the ground and stop, while an alarm awakens you. It is really a very simple device, but I believe that John Carter has fully described it in one of his numerous manuscripts.
A bit less impressive is the destination control compass of Carthoris of Helium. Just set your pointer on any spot in either hemisphere, open your throttle, and then lie back and take a nap if you want. Your ship will take you to your destination, land within a hundred yards or so of the ground, and stop while an alarm wakes you up. It's actually a pretty simple device, but I think John Carter has explained it completely in one of his many manuscripts.
In the adventure upon which I had embarked the destination control compass was of little value to me, since I did not know the exact location of Jahar. However, I set it roughly at a point about thirty degrees south latitude, thirty-five degrees east longitude, as I believed that Jahar lay somewhere to the southwest of that point.
In the adventure I was on, the destination compass didn’t help me much since I didn’t know exactly where Jahar was. Still, I set it roughly to about thirty degrees south latitude and thirty-five degrees east longitude because I thought Jahar was somewhere to the southwest of that spot.
Flying at high speed I had long since left behind the cultivated areas near Helium and was crossing above a desolate and deserted waste of ocher moss that clothed the dead sea bottoms where once rolled a mighty ocean bearing upon its bosom the shipping of a happy and prosperous people, now but a half-forgotten memory in the legends of Barsoom.
Flying at high speed, I had long since passed the cultivated areas near Helium and was flying over a barren landscape covered in ochre moss that blanketed the dead sea floor where once flowed a massive ocean that carried the ships of a happy and prosperous people, now just a half-forgotten memory in the legends of Barsoom.
Upon the edges of plateaus that once had marked the shore line of a noble continent I passed above the lonely monuments of that ancient prosperity, the sad, deserted cities of old Barsoom. Even in their ruins there is a grandeur and magnificence that still has power to awe a modern man. Down toward the lowest sea bottoms other ruins mark the tragic trail that that ancient civilization had followed in pursuit of the receding waters of its ocean to where the last city finally succumbed, bereft of commerce, shorn of power, to fall at last an easy victim to the marauding hordes of fierce, green tribesmen, whose descendants now are the sole rulers of many of these deserted sea bottoms. Hating and hated, ignorant of love, laughter or happiness, they lead their long, fierce lives quarreling among themselves and their neighbors and preying upon any chance adventurers who happen within the confines of their bitter and desolate domain.
On the edges of plateaus that used to mark the coastline of a great continent, I flew over the lonely remnants of that ancient wealth, the sad, abandoned cities of old Barsoom. Even in their ruins, there's a grandeur and majesty that can still impress a modern person. Down toward the lowest sea floors, more ruins trace the tragic path that civilization took in chasing the receding ocean waters until the last city ultimately fell, stripped of trade, devoid of power, and became an easy target for the pillaging hordes of fierce, green tribesmen, whose descendants are now the only rulers of many of these deserted seabeds. Filled with hatred and hatred directed at them, ignorant of love, laughter, or happiness, they live their long, fierce lives fighting among themselves and their neighbors and preying on any unfortunate travelers who wander into their grim and desolate territory.
Fierce and terrible as are all green men, there are few whose cruel natures and bloody exploits have horrified the minds of red men to such an extent as have the green hordes of Torquas.
Fierce and terrible as all green men are, there are few whose cruel natures and bloody actions have shocked the red men’s minds as much as the green hordes of Torquas.
The city of Torquas, from which they derive their name, was one of the most magnificent and powerful of ancient Barsoom. Though it has been deserted for ages by all but roaming tribes of green men, it is still marked upon every map, and as it lay directly in the path of my search for Jahar and as I had never seen it, I had purposely laid my course to pass over it, and when, far ahead, I saw its lofty towers and battlements I felt the thrill of excitement and the lure of adventure which these dead cities of Barsoom proverbially exert upon us red men.
The city of Torquas, from which they get their name, was one of the grandest and most powerful cities of ancient Barsoom. Although it has been deserted for ages except for wandering tribes of green men, it still appears on every map. Since it was directly in the path of my search for Jahar and I had never seen it before, I intentionally planned my route to pass over it. When I saw its tall towers and fortifications in the distance, I felt a rush of excitement and the pull of adventure that these abandoned cities of Barsoom are known to inspire in us red men.
As I approached the city I reduced my speed and dropped lower that I might obtain a better view of it. What a beautiful city it must have been in its time! Even today, after all the ages that have passed since its broad avenues surged with the life of happy, prosperous throngs, its great palaces still stand in all their glorious splendor, that time and the elements have softened and mellowed, but not yet destroyed.
As I got closer to the city, I slowed down and descended lower to get a better look at it. What a stunning city it must have been in its prime! Even now, after all the years since its wide streets buzzed with the energy of happy, thriving crowds, its grand palaces still stand in their magnificent beauty, softened and mellowed by time and the elements, but not yet ruined.
As I circled low above the city I saw miles of avenues that have not known the foot of man for countless ages. The stone flagging of their pavement was overgrown with ocher moss, with here and there a stunted tree or a grotesque shrub of one of those varieties that somehow find sustenance in the arid wasteland. Silent, deserted courtyards looked up at me, gorgeous gardens of another happier day. Here and there the roof of a building had fallen in, but for the most part they remained intact, dreaming, doubtless, of the wealth and beauty that they had known in days of yore, and in imagination I could see the gorgeous sleeping silks and furs spread out in the sunlight, while the women idled beneath gay canopies of silks, their jeweled harnesses scintillating with each move of their bodies. I saw the pennons waving from countless thousands of staffs and the great ships at anchor in the harbor rose and fell to the undulations of the restless sea. There were swaggering sailors upon the avenues, and burly, fighting men before the doors of every palace. Ah, what a picture imagination conjured from the death-like silence of that deserted city, and then, as a long swinging circle brought me above the courtyard of a splendid palace that faced upon the city's great central square, my eyes beheld that which shattered my beautiful dream of the past. Directly below me I saw a score of great thoats penned in what once may have been the royal garden of a jeddak.
As I flew low over the city, I saw miles of streets that hadn't felt a footstep for ages. The stone pavement was overrun with yellowish moss, with a few scraggly trees or odd shrubs that somehow survive in the barren wasteland. Silent, empty courtyards looked up at me, remnants of lavish gardens from a happier time. Some roofs had collapsed, but for the most part, they stayed intact, probably dreaming of the wealth and beauty they once had, and in my mind, I could see the luxurious silks and furs spread out in the sun, while women lounged under colorful silk canopies, their jeweled garments sparkling with every movement. I saw banners fluttering from countless poles and the great ships anchored in the harbor, rising and falling with the waves of the restless sea. There were swaggering sailors on the avenues and burly fighters standing in front of every palace. What a vivid image my imagination created from the eerie silence of that abandoned city, and then, as I swung around over the courtyard of a magnificent palace that overlooked the city's main square, I saw something that shattered my beautiful dream of the past. Directly below me, I spotted a herd of huge thoats corralled in what may have once been the royal garden of a jeddak.
The presence of these huge beasts meant but one thing, and that was that their green masters were to be found nearby.
The presence of these massive creatures meant only one thing: their green masters were close by.
As I passed above the courtyard one of the restless, vicious beasts looked up and saw me and instantly he commenced to squeal angrily. Immediately the other thoats, their short temper aroused by the squealing of their fellow and their attention directed by his upward gaze, discovered me and set up a perfect pandemonium of grunts and squeals, which brought the result that I had immediately foreseen. A green warrior leaped into the courtyard from the interior of the palace and looked up just in time to see me before I passed from his line of vision above the roof of the building.
As I walked above the courtyard, one of the restless, aggressive beasts looked up and saw me, and instantly started squealing angrily. Immediately, the other throats, their tempers flared by the noise of their companion and their attention caught by his gaze, noticed me and erupted into a chaotic mix of grunts and squeals, leading to the exact outcome I had anticipated. A green warrior jumped into the courtyard from inside the palace and looked up just in time to spot me before I moved out of his line of sight over the roof of the building.
Realizing immediately that this was no place for me to loiter, I opened my throttle and at the same time rose swiftly toward a greater altitude. As I passed over the building and out across the avenue in front of it, I saw some twenty green warriors pour out of the building, their upward gaze searching the skies. The warrior on guard had apprised them of my presence.
Realizing right away that this wasn't a place for me to hang around, I accelerated and quickly climbed to a higher altitude. As I flew over the building and across the street in front of it, I saw about twenty green warriors rush out of the building, their eyes turned upwards scanning the skies. The guard had alerted them to my presence.
I cursed myself for a stupid fool in having taken this unnecessary chance merely to satisfy my idle curiosity. Instantly I took a zig-zag, upward course, rising as swiftly as I could, while from below a savage war-cry rose plainly to my ears. I saw long, wicked looking rifles aimed at me. I heard the hiss of projectiles hurtling by me, but, though the first volley passed close to us, not a bullet struck the ship. In a moment more I would be out of range and safe and I prayed to a thousand ancestors to protect me for the few brief minutes that would be necessary to place me entirely out of harm's way. I thought that I had made it and was just about to congratulate myself upon my good luck when I heard the thud of a bullet against the metal of my ship and almost simultaneously the explosion of the projectile, and then I was out of range.
I berated myself for being such a fool for taking this unnecessary risk just to satisfy my idle curiosity. I quickly took a zig-zag, upward path, rising as fast as I could, while below me a fierce war cry reached my ears. I saw long, menacing rifles aimed at me. I heard the whoosh of bullets whizzing by, but even though the first volley came really close, not a single bullet hit the ship. In just a moment, I would be out of their range and safe, and I prayed to countless ancestors to watch over me for those few brief minutes it took to get completely out of danger. I thought I had made it and was just about to congratulate myself on my good luck when I heard the thud of a bullet hitting the metal of my ship and almost at the same time the explosion of the projectile, and then I was out of range.
Angry cries of disappointment came faintly to my ears as I sped swiftly toward the southwest, relieved that I had been so fortunate as to be able to get away without suffering any damage.
Angry shouts of disappointment reached my ears as I quickly headed southwest, feeling relieved that I had been lucky enough to escape without any harm.
I had already flown about seventy karads (Note: A karad is equivalent to a degree of longitude) from Helium, but I was aware that Jahar might still be fifty to seventy-five karads distant and I made up my mind that I would take no more chances such as those from which I had just so fortunately escaped.
I had already traveled about seventy karads (Note: A karad is equivalent to a degree of longitude) from Helium, but I knew that Jahar could still be fifty to seventy-five karads away, and I decided that I wouldn't take any more risks like the ones I had just narrowly avoided.
I was now moving at great speed again and I had scarcely finished congratulating myself upon my good fortune when it suddenly became apparent to me that I was having difficulty in maintaining my altitude. My flier was losing buoyancy and almost immediately I guessed, what investigation later revealed, that one of my buoyancy tanks had been punctured by the explosive bullet of the green warriors.
I was now moving really fast again, and I had barely finished patting myself on the back for my luck when it suddenly hit me that I was struggling to keep my altitude. My aircraft was losing lift, and it quickly became clear, as later investigation confirmed, that one of my buoyancy tanks had been pierced by the explosive bullet from the green warriors.
To reproach myself for my carelessness seemed a useless waste of mental energy, though I can assure you that I was keenly aware of my fault and of its possible bearing upon the fate of Sanoma Tora, from the active prosecution of whose rescue I might now be entirely eliminated. The results as they affected me did not appall me half so much as did the contemplation of the unquestioned danger in which Sanoma Tora must be, from which my determination to rescue her had so obsessed me that there had not entered into my thoughts any slightest consideration of failure.
Reproaching myself for being careless felt like a pointless drain on my mental energy, even though I was fully aware of my mistake and how it could impact Sanoma Tora's fate, from whose rescue I might now be completely sidelined. The implications for me didn't frighten me nearly as much as thinking about the undeniable danger Sanoma Tora must be in, a concern that had consumed me so much that I hadn't allowed even the slightest thought of failure to cross my mind.
The mishap was a severe blow to my hopes and yet it did not shatter them entirely, for I am so constituted that I know I shall never give up hope of success in any issue as long as life remains to me.
The mishap was a significant setback to my hopes, but it didn’t completely crush them, because I’m the kind of person who knows I'll never stop believing in success as long as I'm alive.
How much longer my ship would remain afloat it was difficult to say, and, having no means of making such repairs as would be necessary to conserve the remaining contents of the punctured buoyancy tank, the best that I could do was to increase my speed so that I might cover as much distance as possible before I was forced down. The construction of my ship was such that at high speed it tended to maintain itself in the air with a minimum of the Eight Ray in its buoyancy tanks; yet I knew that the time was not far distant when I should have to make a landing in this dreary, desolate wasteland.
How much longer my ship would stay afloat was hard to determine, and since I had no way to make the necessary repairs to keep the punctured buoyancy tank intact, all I could do was increase my speed to cover as much distance as possible before I had to land. The design of my ship allowed it to stay airborne at high speeds with minimal Eight Ray in its buoyancy tanks; however, I understood that it wouldn't be long before I had to touch down in this bleak, abandoned wasteland.
I had covered something in the neighborhood of two thousand haads since I had been fired upon above Torquas, crossing what had been a large gulf when the waters of the ocean rolled over the vast plains that now lay moss covered and arid beneath me. Far ahead I could see the outlines of low hills that must have marked the southwestern shore line of the gulf. Toward the northwest the dead sea bottom extended as far as the eye could reach, but this was not the direction I wished to take, and so I sped on toward the hills hoping that I might maintain sufficient altitude to cross them, but as they swiftly loomed closer this hope died in my breast and I realized that the end of my flight was now but a matter of moments. At the same time I discerned the ruins of a deserted city nestling at the foot of the hills; nor was this an unwelcome sight since water is almost always to be found in the wells of these ancient cities, which have been kept in repair by the green nomads of the wasteland.
I had covered about two thousand haads since I was shot at above Torquas, crossing what used to be a large gulf when the ocean's waters rolled over the vast plains now covered in moss and dry beneath me. Up ahead, I could see the outlines of low hills that probably marked the southwestern shoreline of the gulf. To the northwest, the dead sea bottom stretched as far as I could see, but that wasn't the direction I wanted to go, so I rushed toward the hills, hoping to stay high enough to cross them. However, as they quickly approached, that hope faded, and I realized that the end of my flight was just moments away. At the same time, I spotted the ruins of an abandoned city nestled at the base of the hills; this wasn’t an unwelcome sight since water is almost always found in the wells of these ancient cities, which have been maintained by the green nomads of the wasteland.
By now I was skimming but a few ads above the surface of the ground. (Note: An ad is about 9.75 earth feet.) I had greatly diminished my speed to avoid a serious accident in landing and because of this the end was hastened so that presently I came gently to rest upon the ocher vegetation scarcely a haad from the water-front of the deserted city.
By now I was just gliding a few ads above the ground. (Note: An ad is about 9.75 earth feet.) I had slowed down a lot to prevent a serious landing accident, and because of this, I quickly came to rest on the ochre vegetation, barely a haad from the waterfront of the abandoned city.
III
III
CORNERED
Trapped
My landing was most unfortunate in that it left me in plain sight of the city without any place of concealment in the event that the ruins happened to be occupied by one of the numerous tribes of green men who infest the dead sea bottoms of Barsoom, often making their headquarters in one or another of the deserted cities that line the ancient shore.
My landing was pretty unfortunate because it left me clearly visible to the city with no place to hide, just in case the ruins were occupied by one of the many tribes of green men that infest the dead sea bottoms of Barsoom, often setting up their base in one of the abandoned cities along the ancient shore.
The fact that they usually choose to inhabit the largest and most magnificent of the ancient palaces and that these ordinarily stand back some little distance from the water-front rendered it quite possible that even in the event that there were green men in the city I might reach the concealing safety of one of the nearer buildings before I was discovered by them.
The fact that they typically choose to live in the largest and most impressive of the ancient palaces, which usually sit a bit back from the waterfront, made it quite possible that even if there were green men in the city, I could get to the safety of one of the closer buildings before they spotted me.
My flier being now useless, there was nothing to do but abandon it, and so, with only my weapons, ammunition and a little concentrated rations, I walked quickly in the direction of the age-old water-front. Whether or not I reached the buildings unobserved, I was unable to determine, but at any rate I did reach them without seeing any sign of a living creature about.
My flyer was now useless, so there was nothing to do but leave it behind. With just my weapons, ammo, and a bit of concentrated rations, I hurried toward the old waterfront. I couldn’t tell if I got to the buildings without being noticed, but at least I arrived without seeing any signs of life around.
Portions of many of these ancient, deserted cities are inhabited by the great white apes of Barsoom, which are in many respects more to be feared than the green warriors themselves, for not only are these man-like creatures endowed with enormous strength and characterized by intense ferocity, but they are also voracious man-eaters. So terrible are they that it is said that they are the only living creatures that can instill fear within the breasts of the green men of Barsoom.
Parts of many of these old, abandoned cities are home to the great white apes of Barsoom, which are often more frightening than the green warriors themselves. Not only are these humanoid creatures incredibly strong and known for their fierce aggression, but they are also ruthless man-eaters. They are so terrifying that it is said they are the only beings capable of instilling fear in the hearts of the green men of Barsoom.
Knowing the possible dangers that might lurk within the precincts of this ruin, it may be wondered that I approached it at all, but as a matter of fact there was no safe alternative. Out upon the dead monotony of the ocher moss of the sea bottom, I should have been discovered by the first white ape or green Martian that approached the city from that direction, or that chanced to come from the interior of the ruins to the water-front. It was, therefore, necessary for me to seek concealment until night had fallen, since only by night might I travel in safety across the sea bottom, and, as the city offered the only concealment nearby, I had no choice but to enter it. I can assure you that it was not without feelings of extreme concern that I clambered to the surface of the broad avenue that once skirted the shore of a busy harbor. Across its wide expanse rose the ruins of what once had been shops and warehouses, but whose eyeless windows now looked down upon a scene of arid desolation. Gone were the great ships! Gone the busy, hurrying throngs! Gone the ocean!
Knowing the potential dangers that could be hidden within this ruin, one might wonder why I approached it at all. However, the truth is there was no safe alternative. If I had ventured out onto the lifeless expanse of the ocher moss at the sea floor, I would have been spotted by the first white ape or green Martian coming from that direction or anyone emerging from the depths of the ruins to the waterfront. Therefore, I needed to find a hiding place until nightfall, as it was only after dark that I could safely cross the sea bottom, and since the city was the only nearby cover, I had no choice but to enter it. I can assure you that I climbed onto the broad avenue that once lined the busy harbor with a deep sense of anxiety. Across its wide stretch loomed the remains of what had once been shops and warehouses, but now their eyeless windows stared down at a scene of barren desolation. The great ships were gone! The bustling crowds were gone! The ocean was gone!
Crossing the avenue I entered one of the taller buildings, which I noticed was surmounted by a high tower. The entire structure, including the tower, seemed to be in an excellent state of preservation and it occurred to me that if I could ascend into the latter, I should be able to obtain an excellent view of the city and of the country that lay beyond it to the southwest, which was the direction in which I intended to pursue my search for Jahar. I reached the building apparently unobserved, and, entering, found myself in a large chamber, the nature and purpose of which it was no longer possible to determine, since such decorations as may possibly have adorned its walls in the past were no longer discernible and whatever furniture it may have contained to give a clue to its identity had long since been removed. There was an enormous fireplace in the far end of the room and at one side of this fireplace a ramp led downward, and upon the other a similar ramp led upward.
Crossing the avenue, I entered one of the taller buildings, which I noticed had a high tower on top. The whole structure, including the tower, seemed to be very well preserved, and it occurred to me that if I could get to the top, I would have a great view of the city and the countryside beyond it to the southwest, the direction where I planned to search for Jahar. I reached the building without being noticed and found myself in a large room. It was impossible to determine its original purpose since any decorations that may have once been on the walls were no longer visible, and whatever furniture might have provided clues to its identity had long been removed. There was a huge fireplace at the far end of the room, with a ramp leading down on one side and a similar ramp leading up on the other.
Listening intently for a moment I heard no sound, either within or without the building, so that it was with considerable confidence that I started to ascend the ramp.
Listening carefully for a moment, I heard no sound, either inside or outside the building, so I felt fairly confident as I began to walk up the ramp.
Upward I continued from floor to floor, each of which consisted of a single large chamber, a fact which finally convinced me that the building had been a warehouse for the storing of goods passing through this ancient port.
Upward I continued from floor to floor, each one made up of a single large room, which ultimately made me realize that the building used to be a warehouse for storing goods that flowed through this old port.
From the upper floor a wooden ladder extended upward through the center of the tower above. It was of solid skeel, which is practically indestructible, so that though I knew it might be anywhere from five hundred thousand to a million years old, I did not hesitate to trust myself to it.
From the upper floor, a wooden ladder extended upward through the center of the tower. It was made of solid skeel, which is nearly indestructible, so even though I knew it could be anywhere from five hundred thousand to a million years old, I didn’t hesitate to rely on it.
The circular interior core of the tower, upward through which the ladder extended, was rather dark. At each landing there was an opening into the tower chamber at that point, but as many of these openings were closed only a subdued light penetrated to the central core.
The circular interior core of the tower, which the ladder climbed through, was pretty dark. At each landing, there was an opening into the tower chamber, but since many of these openings were closed, only a dim light came into the central core.
I had ascended to the second level of the tower when I thought that I heard a strange noise beneath me.
I had climbed to the second level of the tower when I thought I heard a strange noise below me.
Just the suggestion of a noise it was, but such utter silence had reigned over the deserted city that the faintest sound must have been appreciable to me.
Just the hint of a noise it was, but such complete silence had settled over the empty city that even the quietest sound must have been noticeable to me.
Pausing in my ascent, I looked down, listening; but the sound which I had been unable to translate was not repeated, and I continued my way on upward.
Pausing in my climb, I looked down, listening; but the sound I couldn't make sense of didn't happen again, so I continued upward.
Having it in my mind to climb as high up in the tower as possible, I did not stop to examine any of the levels that I passed.
Having made up my mind to climb as high up the tower as I could, I didn’t pause to check out any of the floors I went by.
Continuing upward for a considerable distance my progress was finally blocked by heavy planking that appeared to form the ceiling of the shaft. Some eight or ten feet below me was a small door that probably led to one of the upper levels of the tower and I could not but wonder why the ladder had been continued on upward above this doorway, since it could serve no practical purpose if it merely ended at the ceiling. Feeling above me with my fingers I traced the outlines of what appeared to be a trap door. Obtaining a firm footing upon the ladder as high up as I could climb, I placed a shoulder against the barrier. In this position I was able to exert considerable pressure upward with the result that presently I felt the planking rise above me and a moment later, to the accompaniment of subdued groans, the trap door swung upward upon ancient wooden hinges long unused. Clambering into the apartment above I found myself upon the top level of the tower, which rose to a height of some two hundred feet above the avenue below. Before me were the corroded remains of an ancient and long obsolete beacon-light, such as were used by the ancients long before the discovery of radium and its practical and scientific application to the lighting requirements of modern civilization upon Barsoom. These ancient lamps were operated by expensive machines which generated electricity, and this one was doubtless used as a beacon for the safe guidance of ancient mariners into the harbor, whose waters once rolled almost to the foot of the tower.
Continuing upward for a considerable distance, my progress was finally blocked by heavy planking that seemed to form the ceiling of the shaft. About eight or ten feet below me was a small door that probably led to one of the upper levels of the tower, and I couldn't help but wonder why the ladder continued upward above this doorway, since it would serve no practical purpose if it just ended at the ceiling. Feeling above me with my fingers, I traced the outlines of what looked like a trap door. Securing a firm foothold on the ladder as high as I could climb, I pushed my shoulder against the barrier. In this position, I was able to exert considerable upward pressure, and soon I felt the planking rise above me. A moment later, with subdued groans, the trap door swung open on ancient wooden hinges that hadn’t been used in a long time. Clambering into the room above, I found myself on the top level of the tower, which rose about two hundred feet above the street below. Before me were the corroded remains of an ancient and long-obsolete beacon light, like those used by the ancients long before radium was discovered and its practical and scientific applications revolutionized the lighting needs of modern civilization on Barsoom. These old lamps were powered by expensive machines that generated electricity, and this one was likely used as a beacon to safely guide ancient sailors into the harbor, whose waters once rolled almost to the base of the tower.
This upper level of the tower afforded an excellent view in all directions. To the north and northeast stretched a vast expanse of dead sea bottom as far as the eye could reach. To the south was a range of low hills that curved gently in a northeasterly direction, forming in by-gone days the southern shore line of what is still known as the Gulf of Torquas. Toward the west I looked out over the ruins of a great city, which extended far back into low hills, the flanks of which it had mounted as it expanded from the sea shore. There in the distance I could still discern the ancient villas of the wealthy, while in the nearer foreground were enormous public buildings, the most pretentious of which were built upon the four sides of a large quadrangle that I could easily discern a short distance from the water-front. Here, doubtless, stood the official palace of the jeddak who once ruled the rich country of which this city was the capital and the principal port. There, now, only silence reigns. It was indeed a depressing sight and one fraught with poignant prophecy for us of present day Barsoom.
This upper level of the tower offered an amazing view in all directions. To the north and northeast stretched a vast area of dried-up sea floor as far as I could see. To the south was a range of low hills that gently curved northeast, which once formed the southern coastline of what is still called the Gulf of Torquas. To the west, I looked over the ruins of a great city, which spread far back into low hills, climbing them as it grew from the shoreline. I could still make out the ancient villas of the wealthy in the distance, while in the nearer foreground were huge public buildings, the most impressive of which were built around a large courtyard that I could easily see not far from the waterfront. Here, undoubtedly, stood the official palace of the jeddak who once ruled the rich country that this city was the capital of and the main port. Now, only silence remains. It was truly a disheartening sight and one filled with a poignant message for us in present-day Barsoom.
Where they battled valiantly but futilely against the menace of a constantly diminishing water supply, we are faced with a problem that far transcends theirs in the importance of its bearing upon the maintenance of life upon our planet. During the past several thousand years only the courage, resourcefulness and wealth of the red men of Barsoom have made it possible for life to exist upon our dying planet, for were it not for the great atmosphere plants conceived and built and maintained by the red race of Barsoom, all forms of air breathing creatures would have become extinct thousands of years ago.
Where they fought bravely but unsuccessfully against the threat of a constantly decreasing water supply, we are confronted with a challenge that far exceeds theirs in the significance of its impact on the survival of life on our planet. For the past several thousand years, only the bravery, ingenuity, and wealth of the red people of Barsoom have allowed life to persist on our dying planet. If it weren't for the massive atmosphere plants created, built, and maintained by the red race of Barsoom, all air-breathing creatures would have gone extinct thousands of years ago.
As I gazed out over the city, my mind occupied with these dismal thoughts, I again became aware of a sound coming from the interior of the tower beneath me, and, stepping to the open trap, I looked down into the shaft and there, directly below me, I saw that which might well make the stoutest Barsoomian heart quail—the hideous, snarling face of a great white ape of Barsoom.
As I looked out over the city, my mind filled with these gloomy thoughts, I once again noticed a sound coming from inside the tower beneath me. I stepped to the open trap and peered down into the shaft, and there, right below me, I saw something that could easily make the bravest Barsoomian's heart race—the terrifying, snarling face of a massive white ape from Barsoom.
As our eyes met the creature voiced an angry growl and, abandoning its former stealthy approach, rushed swiftly up the ladder. Acting almost mechanically I did the one and only thing that might even temporarily stay its rush upon me—I slammed down the heavy trap door above its head, and as I did so I saw for the first time that the door was equipped with a heavy wooden bar, and you may well believe that I lost no time in securing this, thus effectually barring the creature's ascent by this route into the veritable cul de sac in which I had placed myself.
As our eyes locked, the creature let out an angry growl and, ditching its earlier sneaky approach, rushed quickly up the ladder. Acting almost on instinct, I did the only thing that might even temporarily stop its charge toward me—I slammed down the heavy trap door above its head, and as I did, I noticed for the first time that the door had a heavy wooden bar. You can bet I wasted no time securing it, effectively blocking the creature's way up into the real cul de sac where I had trapped myself.
Now, indeed, was I in a pretty predicament—two hundred feet above the city with my only avenue of escape cut off by one of the most feared of all the savage beasts of Barsoom.
Now, I really was in a tough spot—two hundred feet above the city with my only way out blocked by one of the most feared savage beasts of Barsoom.
I had hunted these creatures in Thark as a guest of the great green Jeddak, Tars Tarkas, and I knew something of their cunning and resourcefulness as well as of their ferocity. Extremely man-like in conformation, they also approach man more closely than any other of the lower orders in the size and development of their brain. Occasionally these creatures are captured when young and trained to perform, and so intelligent are they that they can be taught to do almost anything that man can do that lies within the range of their limited reasoning capacity. Man has, however, never been able to subdue their ferocious nature and they are always the most dangerous of animals to handle, which probably accounts more even than their intelligence for the interest displayed by the large audiences which they unfailingly attract.
I had hunted these creatures in Thark as a guest of the great green Jeddak, Tars Tarkas, and I knew a bit about their cunning, resourcefulness, and ferocity. They are very human-like in appearance and are closer to humans than any other lower species in terms of brain size and development. Sometimes, these creatures are captured when young and trained to perform, and they are so intelligent that they can learn to do almost anything a human can, within the limits of their reasoning ability. However, humans have never been able to tame their fierce nature, and they remain one of the most dangerous animals to handle, which likely explains why they consistently attract large audiences.
In Hastor I have paid a good price to see one of these and now I found myself in a position where I should very gladly pay a good deal more not to see one, but from the noise he was making in the shaft beneath me it appeared to me that he was determined that I should have a free show and he a free meal. He was hurling himself as best he could against the trap door, above which I stood with some misgivings which were presently allayed when I realized that not even the vast strength of a white ape could avail against the still staunch and sturdy skeel of the ancient door.
In Hastor, I paid a good amount to see one of these creatures, and now I found myself in a situation where I would gladly pay even more not to see one. But from the noise coming from the shaft below me, it seemed like he was determined to give me a free show while he enjoyed a free meal. He was throwing himself against the trap door as best as he could, and I stood there with some worry, which faded away when I realized that not even the incredible strength of a white ape could get past the solid and sturdy old door.
Finally convinced that he could not come at me by this avenue, I set about taking stock of my situation. Circling the tower I examined its outward architecture by the simple expedient of leaning far outward above each of the four sides. Three sides terminated at the roof of the building a hundred and fifty feet below me, while the fourth extended to the pavement of the courtyard two hundred feet below. Like much of the architecture of ancient Barsoom, the surface of the tower was elaborately carved from top to bottom and at each level there were window embrasures, some of which were equipped with small stone balconies. As a rule there was but a single window to a level, and as the window for the level directly beneath never opened upon the same side of the tower as the window for the level above, there was always a distance of from thirty to forty feet between windows upon the same side, and, as I was examining the outside of the tower with a view to its offering me an avenue of escape, this point was of great importance to me, since a series of window ledges, one below another, would have proved a most welcome sight to a man in my position.
Finally convinced that he couldn't come at me from this direction, I started assessing my situation. Circling the tower, I examined its exterior by leaning far out over each of the four sides. Three sides ended at the roof of the building, which was a hundred and fifty feet below me, while the fourth dropped down to the courtyard pavement two hundred feet below. Like much of the architecture of ancient Barsoom, the surface of the tower was intricately carved from top to bottom, and at each level there were window openings, some of which had small stone balconies. Usually, there was only one window per level, and since the window for the level directly beneath never opened on the same side of the tower as the window for the level above, there was always a gap of thirty to forty feet between windows on the same side. As I was examining the outside of the tower in hopes of finding a way to escape, this detail was extremely important to me because a series of window ledges, one below the other, would have been a very welcome sight for someone in my position.
By the time I had completed my survey of the exterior of the tower the ape had evidently come to the conclusion that he could not demolish the barrier that kept him from me and I hoped that he would abandon the idea entirely and depart. But when I lay down on the floor and placed an ear close to the door I could plainly hear him just below as he occasionally changed from one uncomfortable position to another upon the small ladder beneath me. I did not know to what extent these creatures might have developed pertinacity of purpose, but I hoped that he might soon tire of his vigil and his thoughts be diverted into some other channel. However, as the day wore to a close this possibility seemed to grow more and more remote until at last I became almost convinced that the creature had determined to lay siege until hunger or desperation forced me from my retreat.
By the time I finished surveying the outside of the tower, the ape clearly realized he couldn’t break through the barrier separating us, and I hoped he would give up on the idea entirely and leave. But when I lay down on the floor and put my ear close to the door, I could hear him right below me, occasionally shifting from one uncomfortable position to another on the small ladder beneath me. I wasn't sure how persistent these creatures could be, but I hoped he would tire of waiting and his thoughts would shift elsewhere. However, as the day went on, that hope seemed to fade, and I eventually became almost convinced that the creature had decided to wait me out until hunger or desperation forced me out of my hiding place.
How longingly I gazed at the beckoning hills beyond the city where lay my route toward the southwest—toward fabled Jahar.
How longingly I stared at the inviting hills beyond the city where my path led to the southwest—toward the legendary Jahar.
The sun was low in the west. Soon would come the sudden transition from daylight to darkness, and then what? Perhaps the creature would abandon its vigil; hunger or thirst might attract it elsewhere, but how was I to know? How easily it might descend to the bottom of the tower and await me there, confident that sooner or later I must come down.
The sun was setting in the west. Soon there would be a quick shift from daylight to darkness, and then what? Maybe the creature would give up its watch; hunger or thirst might lead it away, but how could I know? It could easily go down to the base of the tower and wait for me there, sure that sooner or later I'd have to come down.
One unfamiliar with the traits of these savage creatures might wonder why, armed as I was with sword and pistol, I did not raise the trap door and give battle to my jailer. Had I known positively that he was the only white ape in the vicinity I should not have hesitated to do so, but experience assured me that there was doubtless an entire herd of them quartered in the ruined city. So scarce is the flesh they crave that it is their ordinary custom to hunt alone, so that in the event that they make a kill they may be more certain of retaining the prize for themselves, but if I should attack him he would most certainly raise such a row as to attract his fellows, in which event my chance for escape would have been reduced to the ultimate zero.
One who doesn’t know the characteristics of these savage creatures might wonder why, armed with a sword and pistol, I didn’t lift the trap door and fight my jailer. If I had known for sure that he was the only white ape around, I wouldn’t have hesitated to do it, but my experience told me there was likely a whole herd of them lurking in the ruined city. Their desired flesh is so rare that they usually hunt alone, ensuring they can keep any kill for themselves. However, if I attacked him, he would definitely make enough noise to call his buddies, which would mean my chances of escaping would drop to zero.
A single shot from my pistol might have dispatched him, but it was equally possible that it would not, for these great white apes of Barsoom are tremendous creatures, endowed with almost unbelievable vitality. Many of them stand fully fifteen feet in height and are endowed by nature with tremendous strength. Their very appearance is demoralizing to an enemy; their white, hairless bodies are in themselves repulsive to the eye of a red man; the great shock of white hair bristling erect upon their pates accentuates the brutality of their countenances, while their intermediary set of limbs, which they use either as arms or legs as necessity or whim suggests, render them most formidable antagonists. Quite generally they carry a club, in the use of which they are terribly proficient. One of them, therefore, seemed sufficiently a menace in itself, so that I had no desire to attract others of its kind, though I was fully aware that eventually I might be forced to carry the battle to him.
A single shot from my pistol could have taken him down, but it was just as likely it wouldn’t, because these massive white apes of Barsoom are incredible creatures, blessed with nearly unbelievable vitality. Many of them reach a height of fifteen feet and possess extraordinary strength. Their appearance alone is enough to demoralize an enemy; their white, hairless bodies are repulsive to any red man, and the wild shock of white hair standing up on their heads emphasizes the brutality of their faces. Their additional set of limbs, which they can use as arms or legs depending on the situation or mood, makes them even more intimidating opponents. They often carry a club, which they wield with terrifying skill. Just one of them was already a serious threat, so I didn’t want to draw the attention of more. Still, I knew that eventually I might have to confront him directly.
Just as the sun was setting my attention was attracted toward the water-front where the long shadows of the city were stretching far out across the dead sea bottom. Riding up the gentle acclivity toward the city was a party of green warriors, mounted upon their great savage thoats. There were perhaps twenty of them, moving silently over the soft moss that carpeted the bottom of the ancient harbor, the padded feet of their mounts giving forth no sound. Like specters, they moved in the shadows of the dying day, giving me further proof that Fate had led me to a most unfriendly shore, and then, as though to complete the trilogy of fearsome Barsoomian menaces, the roar of a banth rolled down out of the hills behind the city.
Just as the sun was setting, I noticed the waterfront where the long shadows of the city stretched far across the barren sea floor. A group of green warriors was riding up the gentle slope toward the city, mounted on their large, fierce thoats. There were about twenty of them, moving silently over the soft moss that covered the ancient harbor's bottom, their mounts' padded feet making no sound. Like ghosts, they moved in the shadows of the fading day, giving me further proof that Fate had brought me to a very hostile shore. Then, to add to the fearsome atmosphere of Barsoom, the roar of a banth echoed down from the hills behind the city.
Safe from observation in the high tower above them, I watched the party as it emerged from the hollow of the harbor and rode out upon the avenue below me, and then for the first time I noted a small figure seated in front of one of the warriors. Darkness was coming swiftly now, but before the little cavalcade passed out of sight momentarily behind the corner of the building, as it entered another avenue leading toward the heart of the city, I thought that I recognized the little figure as that of a woman of my own race. That she was a captive was a foregone conclusion and I could not but shudder as I contemplated the fate that lay in store for her. Perhaps my own Sanoma Tora was in equal jeopardy. Perhaps—but no, that could not be possible—how could Sanoma Tora have fallen into the clutches of warriors of the fierce horde of Torquas?
Safe from sight in the high tower above them, I watched the party as it emerged from the harbor and moved along the street below me. It was then that I noticed a small figure sitting in front of one of the warriors. Darkness was falling quickly now, but just before the little group disappeared from view around the corner of the building, as they entered another street heading toward the city's center, I thought I recognized the small figure as a woman of my own race. It was clear she was a captive, and I couldn't help but tremble at the thought of what awaited her. Maybe my own Sanoma Tora was in the same danger. Maybe—but no, that couldn't be right—how could Sanoma Tora have fallen into the hands of the fierce Torquas warriors?
It could not be she. No, that was impossible. But the fact remained that the captive was a red woman, and whether she were Sanoma Tora or another, whether she were from Helium or Jahar, my heart went out in sympathy to her and I forgot my own predicament as something within me urged me to pursue her captors and seek to snatch her from them; but, alas, how futile seemed my fancy. How might I, who might not even save himself, aspire to the rescue of another?
It couldn't be her. No, that was impossible. But the truth was, the captive was a red woman, and whether she was Sanoma Tora or someone else, whether she was from Helium or Jahar, I felt a deep sympathy for her and forgot my own troubles as something inside me urged me to chase after her captors and try to rescue her; but, sadly, my hopes felt so pointless. How could I, who couldn't even save myself, hope to rescue someone else?
The thought galled me, it hurt my pride, and forthwith I determined that if I would not chance dying to save myself, I might at least chance it for a woman of my own race, and always in the back of my head was the thought that perhaps the object of my solicitude might, indeed, be the woman I loved.
The idea bothered me, it stung my pride, and right away I decided that if I wasn’t going to take a risk for my own life, I could at least take one for a woman from my own background. Always in my mind was the thought that maybe the person I was concerned about could actually be the woman I loved.
Darkness had fallen as I pressed my ear again to the trap door. All was silent below so that presently I became assured that the creature had departed. Perhaps he was lying in wait for me further down, but what of that? I must face him eventually if he elected to remain. I loosened my pistol in its holster and was upon the point of slipping the bar that secured the door when I distinctly heard the beast directly beneath me.
Darkness had settled in as I pressed my ear against the trap door again. Everything was silent below, so I soon felt certain that the creature had left. Maybe he was hiding for me further down, but so what? I would have to confront him eventually if he chose to stay. I loosened my pistol in its holster and was about to slide the bar that secured the door when I clearly heard the beast right beneath me.
For an instant I paused. What was the use? It meant certain death to raise that door, and in what way might I be profiting either myself or the poor captive if I gave my life thus uselessly? But there was an alternative—one that I had been planning to adopt in case of necessity from the moment that I had first examined the exterior construction of the tower. It offered a slender chance of escape from my predicament and even a very slender chance was better than what would confront me should I raise the trap door.
For a moment I hesitated. What was the point? Lifting that door would mean certain death, and how would that help either me or the poor captive if I died uselessly? But there was another option—one I'd been thinking about since I first checked out the outside of the tower. It gave me a slim chance of getting out of my situation, and even a tiny chance was better than what I would face if I opened the trap door.
I stepped to one of the windows of the tower and looked down upon the city. Neither moon was in the sky; I could see nothing. Toward the interior of the city I heard the squealing of thoats. There would the camp of the green men be located. Thus by the squealing of their vicious mounts would I be guided to it. Again a hunting banth roared in the hills. I sat upon the sill and swung both legs across and then turning on my belly slipped silently over the edge until I hung only by my hands. Groping with my sandaled toes, I felt for a foothold upon the deep-cut carvings of the tower's face. Above me was a blue-black void shot with stars; below me a blank and empty void. It might have been a thousand sofads to the roof below me, or it might have been one; but though I could see nothing I knew that it was one hundred and fifty and that at the bottom lay death if a foot or a hand slipped.
I moved to one of the windows of the tower and looked down at the city. There was no moon in the sky; I couldn’t see anything. Deep in the city, I heard the squealing of thoats. That’s where the camp of the green men must be. The noise from their fierce mounts would guide me to it. Again, a hunting banth roared in the hills. I sat on the ledge, swung both legs over, and then, turning on my stomach, quietly slipped over the edge until I was hanging by my hands. Groping with my sandaled toes, I searched for a foothold on the deep carvings of the tower's face. Above me was a blue-black void filled with stars; below me was a blank, empty void. It might have been a thousand sofads to the roof below, or it might have been just one; but even though I couldn’t see anything, I knew it was one hundred and fifty, and that death awaited at the bottom if I slipped a foot or a hand.
In daylight the sculpturing had seemed large and deep and bold, but by night how different! My toes seemed to find but hollow scratches in a smooth surface of polished stone. My arms and fingers were tiring. I must find a foothold or fall, and then, when hope seemed gone, the toe of my right sandal slipped into a horizontal groove and an instant later my left found a hold.
In daylight, the carving appeared big, deep, and striking, but at night it felt completely different! My toes seemed to discover only shallow marks in a smooth, shiny stone surface. My arms and fingers were getting tired. I needed to find a ledge or I would fall, and just when it felt like all hope was lost, the toe of my right sandal slipped into a horizontal groove, and a moment later, my left foot found a grip.
Flattened against the sheer wall of the tower I lay there resting my tired fingers and arms for a moment and when I felt that they would bear my weight again I sought for hand holds. Thus painfully, perilously, monotonously, I descended inch by inch. I avoided the windows, which naturally greatly increased the difficulty and danger of my descent; yet I did not care to pass directly in front of them for fear that by chance the ape might have descended from the summit of the ladder and would see me.
Flattened against the smooth wall of the tower, I lay there resting my tired fingers and arms for a moment. When I felt they could support my weight again, I looked for handholds. So, painfully, perilously, and monotonously, I inched my way down. I avoided the windows, which made my descent even more difficult and dangerous; still, I didn't want to pass directly in front of them, fearing that the ape might have come down from the top of the ladder and would see me.
I cannot recall that ever in my life I felt more alone than I did that night as I was descending the ancient beacon-tower of that deserted city for not even hope was with me. So precarious were my holds upon the rough stone that my fingers were soon numb and exhausted. How they clung at all to those shallow cuts, I do not know. The only redeeming feature of the descent was the darkness, and a hundred times I blessed my first ancestors that I could not see the dizzy depths below me; but on the other hand it was so dark that I could not tell how far I had descended; nor did I dare to look up where the summit of the tower must have been silhouetted against the starlit sky for fear that in doing so I should lose my balance and be precipitated to the courtyard or the roof below. The air of Barsoom is thin; it does not greatly diffuse the starlight, and so, while the heavens above were shot with brilliant points of light, the ground beneath was obliterated in darkness.
I can’t remember ever feeling more alone than I did that night as I was making my way down the old beacon tower of that empty city, without even a glimmer of hope. My grip on the rough stone was so shaky that my fingers quickly went numb and tired. I have no idea how they managed to hold on to those shallow cuts. The only good thing about the descent was the darkness, and I thanked my ancestors a hundred times that I couldn’t see the dizzying depths below me; but on the flip side, it was so dark that I couldn’t tell how far I had gone down. I didn't dare to look up where the top of the tower must have been outlined against the starry sky, fearing that if I did, I would lose my balance and fall to the courtyard or the roof below. The air on Barsoom is thin; it doesn’t spread the starlight much, so while the sky above was filled with bright points of light, the ground below was lost in darkness.
Yet I must have been nearer the roof than I thought when that happened which I had been assiduously endeavoring to prevent—the scabbard of my long sword pattered noisily against the face of the tower. In the darkness and the silence it seemed a veritable din, but, however exaggerated it might appear to me, I knew that it was sufficient to reach the ears of the great ape in the tower. Whether a suggestion of its import would occur to him, I could not guess—I could only hope that he would be too dull to connect it with me or my escape.
Yet I must have been closer to the roof than I realized when that incident occurred that I had been trying so hard to avoid—the scabbard of my long sword clattered loudly against the tower's face. In the dark and silence, it felt like a huge noise, but no matter how exaggerated it seemed to me, I knew it was loud enough to catch the attention of the giant ape in the tower. I couldn't guess whether he would understand what it meant—I could only hope he would be too dim to link it to me or my escape.
But I was not to be left long in doubt, for almost immediately afterward a sound came from the interior of the tower that sounded to my over-wrought nerves like a heavy body rapidly descending a ladder. I realize now that imagination might easily have construed utter silence into such a sound, since I had been listening so intently for that very thing that I might easily have worked myself into such a state of nervous apprehension that almost any sort of an hallucination was possible.
But I wasn’t left in doubt for long, because almost right after, I heard a sound coming from inside the tower that, to my frazzled nerves, sounded like a heavy object quickly going down a ladder. I understand now that my imagination could have easily turned complete silence into that sound, since I had been listening so closely for exactly that. I could have worked myself into such a state of nervous worry that almost any kind of hallucination was possible.
With redoubled speed and with a measure of recklessness that was almost suicidal, I hastened my descent and an instant later I felt the solid roof beneath my feet.
With increased speed and a level of recklessness that was nearly suicidal, I hurried my way down, and a moment later, I felt the solid roof under my feet.
I breathed a sign of relief, but it was destined to be but a short sigh and but brief relief, for almost instantly I was made aware that the sound from the interior of the tower had been no hallucination as the huge bulk of a great white ape loomed suddenly from a doorway not a dozen paces from me.
I let out a sigh of relief, but it was only a short one, because almost immediately I realized that the noise coming from inside the tower wasn’t just my imagination. The massive form of a giant white ape suddenly appeared from a doorway just a few steps away from me.
As he charged me he gave forth no sound. Evidently he had not held his solitary vigil this long with any intention of sharing his feast with another. He would dispatch me in silence, and, with similar intent I drew my long sword, rather than my pistol, to meet his savage charge.
As he rushed at me, he didn't make a sound. Clearly, he had been alone for this long without any plan to share his meal with anyone else. He intended to take me out quietly, and with the same idea, I pulled out my long sword instead of my pistol to face his brutal attack.
What a puny, futile thing I must have appeared confronting that towering mountain of bestial ferocity.
What a tiny, pointless thing I must have looked like standing against that massive mountain of raw ferocity.
Thanks be to a thousand fighting ancestors that I wielded a long sword with swiftness and with strength; otherwise I must have been gathered into that savage embrace in the brute's first charge. Four powerful hands were reached out to seize me, but I swung my long sword in a terrific cut that severed one of them cleanly at the wrist and at the same instant I leaped quickly to one side, and as the beast rushed me, carried onward by its momentum, I ran my blade deep into its body. With a savage scream of rage and pain it sought to turn upon me, but its foot slipped upon its own dismembered hand and it stumbled awkwardly on trying to regain its equilibrium, but that it never accomplished, and still stumbling grotesquely it lunged over the edge of the roof to the courtyard below.
Thanks to a thousand brave ancestors, I wielded a long sword with both speed and strength; otherwise, I would have been caught in that savage embrace during the brute's first charge. Four powerful hands reached out to grab me, but I swung my long sword in a huge arc, severing one of them cleanly at the wrist. In that same moment, I quickly jumped to the side, and as the beast rushed at me, carried forward by its own speed, I drove my blade deep into its body. With a furious scream of rage and pain, it tried to turn on me, but its foot slipped on its own severed hand, making it stumble awkwardly as it attempted to regain its balance. It never managed to, and while still stumbling grotesquely, it lunged off the edge of the roof into the courtyard below.
Fearing that the beast's scream might attract others of its kind to the roof, I ran swiftly to the north edge of the building where I had noted from the tower earlier in the afternoon a series of lower buildings adjoining, over the roofs of which I might possibly accomplish my descent to the street level.
Fearing that the beast's scream might draw more of its kind to the roof, I quickly ran to the north edge of the building, where I had noticed from the tower earlier in the afternoon a group of lower buildings connected together, over the roofs of which I might be able to make my way down to street level.
Cold Cluros was rising above the distant horizon, shedding his pale light upon the city so that I could plainly see the roofs below me as I came to the north edge of the building. It was a long drop, but there was no safe alternative, since it was quite probable that should I attempt to descend through the building, I would meet other members of the ape's herd who had been attracted by the scream of their fellow.
Cold Cluros was rising over the distant horizon, casting his pale light on the city so I could clearly see the roofs below as I reached the north edge of the building. It was a long drop, but there was no safe option, since it was likely that if I tried to go down through the building, I would run into other members of the ape's group drawn by the scream of their companion.
Slipping over the edge of the roof I hung an instant by my hands and then dropped. The distance was about two ads, but I alighted safely and without injury. Upon your own planet, with its larger bulk and greater gravity, I presume that a fall of that distance might be serious, but not so, necessarily, upon Barsoom. From this roof I had a short drop to the next, and from that I leaped to a low wall and thence to the ground below.
Slipping off the edge of the roof, I hung for a moment by my hands before dropping. It was about two ads down, but I landed safely and without injury. On your own planet, with its larger size and stronger gravity, I suppose a fall from that height could be serious, but not necessarily on Barsoom. From this roof, I had a short drop to the next one, and from there I jumped to a low wall and then to the ground below.
Had it not been for the fleeting glimpse of the girl captive that I had caught just at sunset, I should have set out directly for the hills west of the town, banth or no banth, but now I felt strongly upon me a certain moral obligation to make the best efforts that I could for succoring the poor unfortunate that had fallen into the clutches of these cruelest of creatures.
Had I not caught a quick glimpse of the girl who was captive just at sunset, I would have headed straight for the hills west of the town, banth or no banth, but now I felt a strong moral obligation to do everything I could to help the poor unfortunate soul who had fallen into the hands of these cruel creatures.
Keeping well within the shadows of the buildings I moved stealthily toward the central plaza of the city, from which direction I had heard the squealing of the thoats.
Keeping well within the shadows of the buildings, I quietly made my way toward the central plaza of the city, from which I had heard the squealing of the thoats.
The plaza was a full haad from the water-front and I was compelled to cross several intersecting avenues as I cautiously made my way toward it, guided by an occasional squeal from the thoats quartered in some deserted palace courtyard.
The plaza was a short distance from the waterfront, and I had to cross several intersecting streets as I carefully made my way toward it, guided by the occasional squeal from the goats that were kept in a deserted palace courtyard.
I reached the plaza in safety, confident that I had not been observed.
I reached the plaza safely, sure that I hadn’t been seen.
Upon the opposite side I saw light within one of the great buildings that faced it, but I dared not cross the open space in the moonlight and so still clinging to the shadows I moved to the far end of the quadrangle where Cluros cast his densest shadows, and thus at last I won to the building in which the green men were quartered. Directly before me was a low window that must have opened into a room adjoining the one in which the warriors were congregated. Listening intently I heard nothing within the chamber and slipping a leg over the sill I entered the dark interior with the utmost stealth.
On the other side, I saw light coming from one of the large buildings facing it, but I didn't dare cross the open space in the moonlight. So, still hiding in the shadows, I made my way to the far end of the courtyard where Cluros cast his deepest shadows. Finally, I reached the building where the green men were staying. Right in front of me was a low window that probably opened into a room next to the one where the warriors were gathered. Listening closely, I heard nothing inside the room, and carefully, I swung a leg over the sill and entered the dark interior as quietly as possible.
Tiptoeing across the room to find a door through which I might look into the adjoining chamber, I was suddenly arrested as my foot touched a soft body and I froze into rigidity, my hand upon my long sword, as the body moved.
Tiptoeing across the room to find a door where I could peek into the next room, I was suddenly stopped as my foot brushed against a soft body and I went completely still, my hand on my long sword, as the body shifted.
IV
IV
TAVIA
TAVIA
There are occasions in the life of every man when he becomes impressed by the evidence of the existence of an extraneous power which guides his acts, which is sometimes described as the hand of providence, or is again explained on the hypothesis of a sixth sense which transports to the part of our brain that controls our actions, perceptions of which we are not objectively aware; but, account for it as one may, the fact remains that as I stood there that night in the dark chamber of the ancient palace of the deserted city I hesitated to thrust my sword into the soft body moving at my feet. This might after all have been the most reasonable and logical course for me to pursue. Instead I pressed my sword point firmly against yielding flesh and whispered a single word: "Silence!"
There are times in every man's life when he feels the influence of a greater force guiding his actions, often referred to as the hand of providence, or sometimes explained as a sixth sense that connects to the part of our brain responsible for our decisions—perceptions of which we are not fully aware. However, no matter how we explain it, the truth is that as I stood there that night in the dark room of the old palace in the abandoned city, I hesitated to thrust my sword into the soft body at my feet. That might have been the most logical choice for me to make. Instead, I pressed the tip of my sword firmly against the yielding flesh and whispered one word: "Silence!"
A thousand times since then have I given thanks to my first ancestors that I did not follow my natural impulse, for, in response to my admonition a voice whispered: "Do not thrust, red man; I am of your own race and a prisoner," and the voice was that of a girl.
A thousand times since then, I've thanked my ancestors that I didn't act on my natural instinct, because when I was about to, a voice whispered to me: "Don't push, red man; I'm one of your people and a prisoner," and the voice belonged to a girl.
Instantly I withdrew my blade and kneeled beside her. "If you have come to help me, cut my bonds," she said, "and be quick for they will soon return for me."
Instantly, I pulled out my knife and knelt beside her. "If you're here to help me, cut my restraints," she said, "and hurry up because they’ll be back for me soon."
Feeling rapidly over her body I found that her wrists and ankles were secured with leather thongs and drawing my dagger I quickly severed these. "Are you alone?" I asked as I helped her to her feet.
Feeling quickly over her body, I discovered that her wrists and ankles were bound with leather straps. Drawing my dagger, I quickly cut them. "Are you alone?" I asked as I helped her up.
"Yes," she replied. "In the next room they are playing for me to decide to which one I shall belong." At that moment there came the clank of side arms from the adjoining room. "They are coming," she said. "They must not find us here."
"Yes," she replied. "In the next room, they're playing so I can choose which one I’ll join." At that moment, there was the sound of sidearms clanking from the adjacent room. "They’re coming," she said. "We can’t let them find us here."
Taking her by the hand I moved to the window through which I had entered the apartment, but fortunately I reconnoitered before stepping out into the avenue and it was well for us that I did so, for as I looked to the right along the face of the building, I saw a green Martian warrior emerging from the main entrance. Evidently it had been the rattling of his side arms that we had heard as he moved across the adjoining apartment to the doorway.
Taking her hand, I moved to the window through which I had entered the apartment, but luckily I checked before stepping out onto the street, and it was a good thing I did because as I glanced to the right along the side of the building, I saw a green Martian warrior coming out of the main entrance. It was clear that the noise we had heard was the clanking of his weapons as he walked through the nearby apartment to the doorway.
"Is there another exit from this room?" I asked in a low whisper.
"Is there another way out of this room?" I asked in a quiet whisper.
"Yes," she replied. "Opposite this window there is a doorway leading into a corridor. It was open when they brought me in, but they closed it."
"Yeah," she said. "Right across from this window, there’s a door that leads into a hallway. It was open when they brought me in, but they shut it."
"We shall be better off inside the building than out for a while at least," I said. "Come!" And together we crossed the apartment, groping along the wall for the door which I soon located. With the utmost care I drew it ajar, fearing that its ancient hinges might betray us by their complaining. Beyond the doorway lay a corridor dark as the depths of Omean and into this I drew the girl, closing the door silently behind us. Groping our way to the right away from the apartment occupied by the green warriors, we moved slowly through a black void until presently we saw just ahead a faint light, which investigation revealed as coming through the open doorway of an apartment that faced upon the central courtyard of the edifice. I was about to pass this doorway and seek a hiding place further within the remote interior of the building when my attention was attracted by the squealing of a thoat in the courtyard beyond the apartment we were passing.
"We'll be better off inside the building than outside for a bit," I said. "Come on!" Together, we crossed the apartment, feeling along the wall for the door, which I soon found. Carefully, I opened it a crack, worried that its old hinges might give us away with their creaking. Beyond the doorway was a corridor as dark as the depths of the ocean, and I pulled the girl in, closing the door quietly behind us. We felt our way to the right, away from the apartment occupied by the green warriors, moving slowly through the darkness until we spotted a faint light ahead. Upon investigation, we discovered it was coming from the open doorway of an apartment that faced the central courtyard of the building. I was about to pass this doorway and look for a hiding spot deeper inside the building when I heard the squealing of a thoat in the courtyard beyond the apartment we were passing.
From earliest boyhood I have had a great deal of experience with the small breed of thoats used as saddle animals by the men of my race and while I was visiting Tars Tarkas of Thark I became quite familiar with the methods employed by the green men in controlling their own huge vicious beasts.
From a young age, I've had a lot of experience with the small breed of thoats used as saddle animals by my people, and while I was visiting Tars Tarkas of Thark, I got pretty familiar with how the green men controlled their own huge, vicious beasts.
For travel over the surface of the ground the thoat compares to other methods of land transportation as the one-man scout flier does to all other ships of the air in aerial navigation. He is as once the swiftest and the most dangerous, so that, faced as I was with a problem of land transportation, it was only natural that the squeal of the thoats should suggest a plan to my mind.
For travel over land, the thoat is to other forms of transportation what a one-man scout flier is to all other aircraft in the skies. It’s both the fastest and the most perilous option. So, when I was faced with a challenge of land transport, it was only natural that the sound of the thoats sparked an idea in my mind.
"Why do you hesitate?" asked the girl. "We cannot escape in that direction since we cannot cross the courtyard."
"Why are you hesitating?" the girl asked. "We can't escape that way since we can't cross the courtyard."
"On the contrary," I replied, "I believe that in this direction may lie our surest avenue of escape."
"On the contrary," I responded, "I think that this direction might be our best chance to escape."
"But their thoats are penned in the courtyard," she remonstrated, "and green warriors are never far from their thoats."
"But their throats are penned in the courtyard," she argued, "and green warriors are never far from their throats."
"It is because the thoats are there that I wish to investigate the courtyard," I replied.
"It’s because the thoats are there that I want to check out the courtyard," I replied.
"The moment they catch our scent," she said, "they will raise a disturbance that will attract the attention of their masters and we shall immediately be discovered and captured."
"The moment they smell us," she said, "they'll cause a scene that will get their masters' attention, and we'll be found and caught right away."
"Perhaps," I said; "but if my plan succeeds it will be well worth the risk, but if you are very much afraid I will abandon it."
"Maybe," I said; "but if my plan works out, it'll be worth the risk. However, if you're really scared, I'll drop it."
"No," she said, "it is not for me to choose or direct. You have been generous enough to help me and I may only follow where you lead, but if I knew your plan perhaps I might follow more intelligently."
"No," she said, "it's not up to me to choose or direct. You've been generous enough to help me, and I can only follow where you lead. But if I knew your plan, I might follow more wisely."
"Certainly," I said; "it is very simple. There are thoats. We shall take one of them and ride away. It will be much easier than walking and our chances for escape will be considerably greater, at the same time we shall leave the courtyard gates open, hoping that the other thoats will follow us out, leaving their masters unable to pursue us."
"Absolutely," I said; "it's really straightforward. There are thoats. We'll grab one of them and ride off. It'll be way easier than walking, and our chances of getting away will be a lot better. At the same time, we'll leave the courtyard gates open, hoping that the other thoats will trail behind us, leaving their owners unable to chase after us."
"It is a mad plan," said the girl, "but it is a brave one. If we are discovered, there will be fighting and I am unarmed. Give me your short sword, warrior, that we may at least make the best account of ourselves that is possible."
"It’s a crazy plan," the girl said, "but it’s a brave one. If we get caught, there will be a fight and I’m unarmed. Give me your short sword, warrior, so we can at least do our best."
I unsnapped the scabbard of my short sword from my harness and attached it to hers at her left hip, and, as I touched her body in doing so, I could not but note that there was no sign of trembling such as there would have been had she been affected by fright or excitement. She seemed perfectly cool and collected and her tone of voice was most reassuring to me. That she was not Sanoma Tora I had known when she had first spoken in the darkness of the room in which I had stumbled upon her, and while I had been keenly disappointed I was still determined to do the best that I could to assist in the escape of the stranger, although I was confident that her presence might greatly delay and embarrass me while it subjected me to far greater danger than would have fallen to the lot of a warrior traveling alone. It was, therefore, reassuring to find that my unwelcome companion would not prove entirely helpless.
I unsnapped the scabbard of my short sword from my harness and attached it to hers at her left hip. As I did this, I noticed there was no sign of trembling that would typically indicate she was scared or excited. She seemed completely calm and collected, and her tone was very reassuring to me. I had realized she was not Sanoma Tora when she first spoke in the dark room where I had found her. While I was disappointed, I was still determined to do my best to help this stranger escape, even though I was sure her presence would slow me down and make things more complicated, putting me at much greater risk than if I were traveling alone. So, it was comforting to see that my uninvited companion wouldn’t be entirely helpless.
"I trust you will not have to use it," I said as I finished hooking my short sword to her harness.
"I hope you won't need it," I said as I finished attaching my short sword to her harness.
"You will find," she said, "that if necessity arises I can use it."
"You'll see," she said, "that if the need comes up, I can use it."
"Good," I said. "Now follow me and keep close to me."
"Great," I said. "Now follow me and stay close."
A careful survey of the courtyard from the window of the chamber overlooking it revealed about twenty huge thoats, but no green warriors, evidence that they felt perfectly secure against enemies.
A close look at the courtyard from the window of the room overlooking it showed about twenty huge thoats, but no green warriors, indicating that they felt completely safe from any threats.
The thoats were congregated in the far end of the courtyard; a few of them had lain down for the night, but the balance were moving restlessly about as is their habit. Across the courtyard from us and at the same end stood a pair of massive gates. As far as I could determine they barred the only opening into the courtyard large enough to admit a thoat and I assumed that beyond them lay an alley leading to one of the avenues nearby.
The thoats were gathered at the far end of the courtyard; a few of them had settled down for the night, but the rest were moving around restlessly as they usually do. Across the courtyard from us at the same end stood a pair of huge gates. From what I could tell, they were the only entrance to the courtyard large enough for a thoat, and I assumed there was an alley beyond them that led to one of the nearby streets.
To reach the gates unobserved by the thoats was the first step in my plan and the better to do this I decided to seek an apartment near the gate, on either side of which I saw windows similar to that from which we were looking. Therefore, motioning my companion to follow me, I returned to the corridor and again groping through the darkness we made our way along it. In the third apartment which I explored I found a window letting into the courtyard close beside the gate. And in the wall which ran at right angles to that in which the window was set I found a doorway that opened into a large vaulted corridor upon the opposite side of the gate. This discovery greatly encouraged me since it harmonized perfectly with the plan I had in mind, at the same time reducing the risk which my companion must run in the attempted adventure of escape.
To get to the gates without being seen by the thoats was the first step in my plan. To do this more effectively, I decided to look for an apartment near the gate, where I noticed windows similar to the one we were peering out of. So, I signaled for my companion to follow me, and we returned to the corridor, feeling our way through the darkness. In the third apartment I checked, I found a window opening into the courtyard right next to the gate. In the wall perpendicular to the one with the window, I discovered a doorway leading into a large vaulted corridor on the other side of the gate. This find really boosted my confidence since it fit perfectly with my plan and reduced the risk my companion would face in the escape attempt.
"Remain here," I said to her, placing her just behind the gate. "If the plan is successful I shall ride into this corridor upon one of the thoats and as I do so you must be ready to seize my hand and mount behind me. If I am discovered and fail I shall cry out 'For Helium!' and that must be your signal to escape as best you may."
"Stay here," I said to her, positioning her just behind the gate. "If the plan works, I'll ride into this corridor on one of the thoats, and when I do, you need to be ready to grab my hand and get on behind me. If I'm caught and fail, I'll shout 'For Helium!' and that's your cue to escape however you can."
She laid her hand upon my arm. "Let me go into the courtyard with you," she begged. "Two swords are better than one."
She put her hand on my arm. "Let me go into the courtyard with you," she pleaded. "Two swords are better than one."
"No," I said. "Alone I have a better chance of handling the thoats than if their attention is distracted by another."
"No," I said. "I have a better chance of dealing with the thoats on my own than if they're distracted by someone else."
"Very well," she said, and with that I left her, and, re-entering the chamber, went directly to the window. For a moment I reconnoitered the interior of the courtyard and finding conditions unchanged, I slipped stealthily through the window and edged slowly toward the gate. Cautiously I examined the latch and discovering it easy to manipulate, I was soon silently pushing one of the gates back upon its hinges. When it was opened sufficiently wide to permit the passage of a thoat, I turned my attention to the beasts within the enclosure. Practically untamed, these savage creatures are wild as their uncaptured fellows of the remote sea bottoms, and, being controlled solely by telepathic means, they are amenable only to the suggestion of the more powerful minds of their masters and even so it requires considerable skill to dominate them.
"Alright," she said, and with that I left her, and, going back into the room, I went straight to the window. For a moment I surveyed the inside of the courtyard and seeing that nothing had changed, I quietly slipped out through the window and moved slowly toward the gate. Carefully, I checked the latch and finding it easy to open, I was soon quietly pushing one of the gates back on its hinges. When it was open wide enough for a thoat to pass through, I focused on the animals inside the enclosure. Almost untamed, these wild creatures are as fierce as their counterparts in the deep sea, and being controlled only by telepathy, they respond only to the suggestions of their masters' stronger minds, and even then it takes a lot of skill to control them.
I had learned the method from Tars Tarkas himself and had come to feel considerable proficiency so that I approached this crucial test of my power with the confidence that was absolutely requisite to success.
I had learned the technique from Tars Tarkas himself and had become quite skilled, so I approached this important test of my abilities with the confidence that was absolutely necessary for success.
Placing myself close beside the gate, I concentrated every faculty of my mind to the direction of my will, telepathically, upon the brain of the thoat I had selected for my purpose, the selection being determined solely by the fact that he stood nearest to me. The effect of my effort was immediately apparent. The creature, which had been searching for the occasional tufts of moss that grew between the stone flags of the courtyard, raised his head and looked about him. At once he became restless, but he gave forth no sound since I was willing him to silence. Presently his eyes moved in my direction and halted upon me. Then, slowly, I drew him toward me. It was slow work, for he evidently sensed that I was not his master, but on he came. Once, when he was quite near me, he stopped and snorted angrily. He must have caught my scent then and realized that I was not even of the same race as that to which he was accustomed. Then it was that I exerted to their fullest extent every power of my mind. He stood there shaking his ugly head to and fro, his snarling lips baring his great fangs. Beyond him I could see that the other thoats had been attracted by his actions. They were looking toward us and moving about restlessly, always drawing closer. Should they discover me and start to squeal, which is the first and always ready sign of their easily aroused anger, I knew that I should have their riders upon me in no time, since because of his nervous and irritable nature the thoat is the watchdog as well as the beast of burden of the green Barsoomians.
Standing close to the gate, I focused all my mental energy on the brain of the thoat I had chosen for my plan, simply because it was the nearest one. The result of my effort was immediate. The creature, which had been searching for patches of moss between the stone tiles of the courtyard, lifted its head and looked around. It quickly became restless, but stayed silent since I was directing it to be quiet. Soon, its eyes shifted toward me and locked onto me. Then, slowly, I pulled it closer. It was a gradual process because it could tell I wasn’t its master, but it kept coming. At one point, when it was very near, it paused and snorted with anger. It must have picked up my scent and realized I was not of the same kind it was used to. That's when I pushed my mental powers to their limit. It stood there, shaking its ugly head back and forth, its snarling lips exposing its sharp fangs. In the background, I could see that the other thoats were drawn to its behavior. They were watching us and moving around restlessly, always getting closer. If they spotted me and started to squeal, which is their immediate signal of anger, I knew their riders would be on me in no time because the thoat, with its nervous and irritable nature, acts as both the watchdog and the beast of burden for the green Barsoomians.
For a moment the beast I had selected hesitated before me as though undecided whether to retreat or to charge, but he did neither; instead he came slowly up to me and as I backed through the gate into the vaulted corridor beyond, he followed me. This was better than I had expected for it permitted me to compel him to lie down, so that the girl and I were able to mount with ease.
For a moment, the beast I had chosen paused in front of me, seeming unsure whether to back off or charge forward, but it did neither; instead, it moved slowly toward me, and as I stepped back through the gate into the vaulted corridor, it followed. This was better than I expected because it allowed me to make it lie down, so the girl and I could get on easily.
Before us lay a long vaulted corridor at the far end of which I could discern a moonlit archway, through which we presently passed onto a broad avenue.
Before us was a long vaulted hallway, at the far end of which I could see a moonlit archway. We soon walked through it and onto a wide street.
To the left lay the hills, and, turning this way, I urged the fleet animal along the ancient deserted thoroughfare between rows of stately ruins toward the west and—what?
To the left were the hills, and as I turned this way, I urged the swift animal along the old, abandoned road between lines of impressive ruins heading west—toward what?
Where the avenue turned to wind upward into the hills, I glanced back; nor could I refrain a feeling of exultation as I saw strung out behind us in the moonlight a file of great thoats, which I was confident would well know what to do with their new found liberty.
Where the road curved up into the hills, I looked back; I couldn't help but feel a sense of triumph as I saw a line of huge animals trailing behind us in the moonlight, and I was sure they would figure out how to make the most of their newfound freedom.
"Your captors will not pursue us far," I said to the girl, indicating the thoats with a nod of my head.
"Your captors won't chase us for long," I said to the girl, pointing to the thoats with a nod of my head.
"Our ancestors are with us tonight," she said. "Let us pray that they may never desert us."
"Our ancestors are here with us tonight," she said. "Let's pray that they never abandon us."
Now, for the first time, I had a fairly good look at my companion, for both Cluros and Thuria were in the heavens and it was quite light. If I revealed my surprise it is not to be wondered at for, in the darkness, having only my companion's voice for a guide, I had been perfectly confident that I had given aid to a female, but now as I looked at that short hair and boyish face I did not know what to think; nor did the harness that my companion wore aid me in justifying my first conclusion, since it was quite evidently the harness of a man.
Now, for the first time, I got a good look at my companion, since both Cluros and Thuria were in the sky and it was bright. If I seemed surprised, it’s understandable because in the dark, relying only on my companion's voice, I was completely sure I was helping a woman. But now, looking at that short hair and boyish face, I had no idea what to think. Plus, the harness my companion was wearing didn’t help me validate my initial assumption, as it was clearly a man’s harness.
"I thought you were a girl," I blurted out.
"I thought you were a girl," I said suddenly.
A fine mouth spread into a smile that revealed strong, white teeth. "I am," she said.
A beautiful smile showed off her strong, white teeth. "I am," she said.
"But your hair—your harness—even your figure belies your claim."
"But your hair, your outfit, and even your figure contradict what you're saying."
She laughed gayly. That, I was to find later, was one of her chiefest charms—that she could laugh so easily, yet never to wound.
She laughed happily. I would later discover that was one of her greatest charms—she could laugh so easily, yet never to hurt anyone.
"My voice betrayed me," she said. "It is too bad."
"My voice let me down," she said. "That's unfortunate."
"Why is it too bad?" I asked.
"Why is that a bad thing?" I asked.
"Because you would have felt better with a fighting man as a companion, whereas now you feel that you have only a burden."
"Because you would have felt better with a strong partner by your side, but now you just feel like you have a burden."
"A light one," I replied, recalling how easily I had lifted her to the thoat's back. "But tell me who you are and why you are masquerading as a boy."
"A light one," I replied, remembering how effortlessly I had lifted her onto the thoat's back. "But tell me who you are and why you're pretending to be a boy."
"I am a slave girl," she said; "just a slave girl who has run away from her master. Perhaps that will make a difference," she added a little sadly. "Perhaps you will be sorry that you have defended just a slave girl."
"I’m just a slave girl," she said. "I ran away from my master. Maybe that will matter," she added a bit sadly. "Maybe you’ll regret defending just a slave girl."
"No," I said, "that makes no difference. I, myself, am only a poor padwar, not rich enough to afford a slave. Perhaps you are the one to be sorry that you were not rescued by a rich man."
"No," I said, "that doesn't matter. I'm just a poor padwar, not wealthy enough to have a slave. Maybe you'll be the one regretting that you weren't saved by a rich man."
She laughed. "I ran away from the richest man in the world," she said. "At least I guess he must have been the richest man in the world, for who could be richer than Tul Axtar, Jeddak of Jahar?"
She laughed. "I ran away from the richest guy in the world," she said. "I mean, he must have been the richest, right? Who could be richer than Tul Axtar, Jeddak of Jahar?"
"You belong to Tul Axtar, Jeddak of Jahar?" I exclaimed.
"You belong to Tul Axtar, Jeddak of Jahar?" I said in surprise.
"Yes," she said. "I was stolen when I was very young from a city called Tjanath and ever since I have lived in the palace of Tul Axtar. He has many women—thousands of them. Sometimes they live all their lives in his palace and never see him. I have seen him," she shuddered; "he is terrible. I was not unhappy there for I had never known my mother; she died when I was young, and my father was only a memory. You see I was very, very young, indeed, when the emissaries of Tul Axtar stole me from my home in Tjanath. I made friends with everyone about the palace of Tul Axtar. They all liked me, the slaves and the warriors and the chiefs, and because I was always boyish it amused them to train me in the use of arms and even to navigate the smaller fliers; but then came a day when my happiness was ended forever—Tul Axtar saw me. He saw me and he sent for me. I pretended that I was ill and did not go, and when night came I went to the quarters of a soldier whom I knew to be on guard and stole harness and I cut off my long hair and painted my face that I might look more like a man, and then I went to the hangars on the palace roof and by a ruse deceived the guard there and stole a one-man flier.
"Yes," she said. "I was taken when I was very young from a city called Tjanath, and ever since, I’ve lived in the palace of Tul Axtar. He has many women—thousands of them. Sometimes they spend their entire lives in his palace without ever seeing him. I’ve seen him," she shuddered; "he's terrifying. I wasn’t unhappy there because I had never known my mother; she died when I was young, and my father was just a memory. You see, I was very, very young when the emissaries of Tul Axtar took me from my home in Tjanath. I made friends with everyone in the palace of Tul Axtar. They all liked me—the slaves, warriors, and chiefs—and because I was always a bit boyish, it amused them to train me in the use of weapons and even to navigate the smaller fliers. But then came a day when my happiness ended forever—Tul Axtar saw me. He noticed me and sent for me. I feigned illness and didn’t go, and when night fell, I went to the quarters of a soldier I knew was on guard, took his harness, cut off my long hair, and painted my face to look more like a man. Then I went to the hangars on the palace roof and tricked the guard there to steal a one-man flier."
"I thought," she continued, "that if they searched for me at all they would search in the direction of Tjanath and so I flew in the opposite direction, toward the northeast, intending to make a great circle to the north, turning back toward Tjanath. After I passed over Xanator I discovered a large grove of mantalia growing out upon the dead sea bottom and I immediately descended to obtain some of the milk from these plants, as I had left the palace so hurriedly that I had had no opportunity to supply myself with provisions. The mantalia grove was an unusually large one and as the plants grew to a height of from eight to twelve sofads, the grove offered excellent protection from observation. I had no difficulty in finding a landing place well within its confines. In order to prevent detection from above, I ran my plane in among the concealing foliage of two over-arching mantalias and then set about obtaining a supply of milk.
"I thought," she went on, "that if they were looking for me at all, they would search toward Tjanath, so I flew in the opposite direction, heading northeast, planning to make a large circle to the north and then return toward Tjanath. After I passed over Xanator, I found a big grove of mantalia growing on the dead sea bottom, and I quickly descended to get some milk from these plants since I had left the palace in such a rush that I hadn’t had a chance to gather any supplies. The mantalia grove was quite large, with the plants reaching heights of eight to twelve sofads, providing excellent cover from view. I had no trouble finding a spot to land well within the grove. To avoid being spotted from above, I steered my plane among the concealing branches of two arching mantalias and then got to work on collecting some milk."
"As near objects never appear as attractive as those more distant, I wandered some little distance from my flier before I found the plants that seemed to offer a sufficiently copious supply of rich milk.
"As nearby things never seem as appealing as those that are farther away, I walked a bit away from my flyer before I found the plants that looked like they would provide a good amount of rich milk."
"A band of green warriors had also entered the grove to procure milk, and, as I was tapping the tree I had selected, one of them discovered me and a moment later I was captured. From their questions I became assured that they had not seen me enter the grove and that they knew nothing of the presence of my flier. They must have been in a portion of the grove very thickly overhung by foliage while I was approaching from above and making my landing; but be that as it may, they were ignorant of the presence of my flier and I determined to keep them in ignorance of it.
A group of green warriors had also come into the grove to get some milk, and while I was tapping the tree I had chosen, one of them spotted me, and moments later, I was captured. From their questions, I realized they hadn’t seen me enter the grove and had no idea my flier was there. They must have been in a part of the grove that was heavily covered by foliage while I was approaching from above and landing; but regardless, they were unaware of my flier, and I decided to keep it that way.
"When they had obtained as much milk as they required they returned to Xanator, bringing me with them. The rest you know."
"When they got as much milk as they needed, they went back to Xanator, taking me with them. The rest you know."
"This is Xanator?" I asked.
"This is Xanator?" I asked.
"Yes," she replied.
"Yeah," she replied.
"And what is your name?" I asked.
"And what’s your name?" I asked.
"Tavia," she replied. "And what is yours?"
"Tavia," she said. "What's yours?"
"Tan Hadron of Hastor," I replied.
"Tan Hadron of Hastor," I said.
"It is a nice name," she said. There was a certain boyish frankness about the way she said it that convinced me that she would have been just as quick to tell me had she not liked my name. There was no suggestion of brainless flattery in her tone and I was to learn, as I became better acquainted with her, that honesty and candor were two of her marked characteristics, but at the moment I was giving such matters little thought since my mind was occupied with a portion of her narrative that had suggested to me an easy and swift method of escape from our predicament.
"It’s a nice name," she said. There was a certain boyish openness in the way she said it that made me believe she would have been just as quick to tell me if she didn’t like my name. There was no hint of meaningless flattery in her tone, and I was to discover, as I got to know her better, that honesty and straightforwardness were two of her prominent traits. But at that moment, I wasn’t thinking about such things because my mind was focused on a part of her story that had given me an idea for an easy and quick way out of our situation.
"Do you believe," I asked, "that you can find the mantalia grove where you hid your flier?"
"Do you think," I asked, "that you can locate the mantalia grove where you hid your flyer?"
"I am positive of it," she replied.
"I’m sure of it," she replied.
"Will the craft carry two?" I asked.
"Will the boat hold two people?" I asked.
"It is a one-man flier," she replied, "but it will carry both of us, though both its speed and altitude will be reduced."
"It’s a single-person aircraft," she replied, "but it can carry both of us, even though its speed and altitude will be lower."
She told me that the grove lay to the southeast of Xanator and accordingly I turned the thoat's head toward the east. After we had passed well beyond the limits of the city we moved in a southerly direction down out of the hills onto the dead sea bottom.
She told me that the grove was located southeast of Xanator, so I turned the thoat's head toward the east. Once we had traveled well beyond the city limits, we headed south, descending from the hills onto the dry seabed.
Thuria was winging her swift flight through the heavens, casting strange and ever moving shadows upon the ocher moss that covered the ground, while far above cold Cluros took his slow and stately way. The light of the two moons clearly illuminated the landscape and I was sure that keen eyes could easily have detected us from the ruins of Xanator, although the swiftly moving shadows cast by Thuria were helpful to us since the shadows of every shrub and stunted tree produced a riot of movement upon the surface of the sea bottom in which our own moving shadow was less conspicuous, but the hope that I entertained most fondly was that all of the thoats had followed our beast from the courtyard and that the green Martian warriors were left dismounted, in which event no pursuit could overtake us.
Thuria was soaring swiftly through the sky, casting strange and constantly shifting shadows on the ochre moss covering the ground, while far above, cold Cluros moved slowly and majestically. The light of the two moons clearly lit up the landscape, and I was sure that sharp eyes could easily spot us from the ruins of Xanator. However, the quickly moving shadows cast by Thuria worked to our advantage, as the shadows of every bush and stunted tree created a chaotic display on the sea bottom, making our own moving shadow less noticeable. But what I hoped for most was that all the thoats had followed our beast from the courtyard and that the green Martian warriors were left on foot, in which case no pursuit could catch up with us.
The great beast that was carrying us moved swiftly and silently so that it was not long before we saw in the distance the shadowy foliage of the mantalia grove and shortly afterward we entered its gloomy confines. It was not without considerable difficulty, however, that we located Tavia's flier, and mighty glad was I, too, when we found it in good condition for we had seen more than a single shadowy form slinking through the forest and I knew that the fierce animals of the barren hills and the great white apes of the ruined cities were equally fond of the milk of the mantalia and that we should be fortunate, indeed, if we escaped an encounter.
The huge beast that was carrying us moved quickly and quietly, so it wasn't long before we spotted the shadowy trees of the mantalia grove in the distance, and soon after, we entered its dark interior. However, it wasn't easy to find Tavia's flier, and I was really relieved when we finally located it in good shape because we had seen more than one shadowy figure creeping through the forest. I knew that the fierce animals from the barren hills and the large white apes from the ruined cities were just as attracted to the milk of the mantalia, and we would be very lucky to avoid an encounter.
I rode as close to the flier as possible, and, leaving Tavia on the thoat, slipped quickly to the ground and dragged the small craft out into the open. An examination of the controls showed that they had not been tampered with, which was a great relief to me as I had feared that the flier might have been damaged by the great apes, which are inclined to be both inquisitive and destructive.
I pulled up as close to the flyer as I could, leaving Tavia on the thoat, then quickly jumped to the ground and pulled the small craft out into the open. A look at the controls showed they hadn't been messed with, which was a big relief since I had been worried that the flyer might have been damaged by the large apes, who tend to be both curious and destructive.
Assured that all was well I assisted Tavia to the ground, and a moment later we were upon the deck of the flier. The craft responded satisfactorily, though a little sluggishly, to the controls, and immediately we were floating gently upward into the temporary safety of a Barsoomian night.
Assured that everything was fine, I helped Tavia to the ground, and a moment later we were on the deck of the flier. The craft responded well, though a bit slowly, to the controls, and we immediately began floating gently upward into the temporary safety of a Barsoom night.
The flier, which was of a design now almost obsolete in Helium, was not equipped with a destination control compass, which rendered it necessary for the pilot to be constantly at the controls. Our quarters on the narrow deck were exceedingly cramped and I foresaw a most uncomfortable journey ahead of us. Our safety belts were snapped to the same deck ring as we lay almost touching one another upon the hard skeel. The cowl which protected our faces from the rush of the wind that was generated even by our relatively slow speed was not sufficiently high to permit us to change our positions to any considerable degree, though occasionally we found it a relief to sit up with our backs toward the bow and thus relieve the tedium of remaining constantly prone in one position. When I thus rested my cramped muscles, Tavia guided the flier, but the cold wind of the Barsoomian night always brought me down behind the cowl in a very few moments.
The flier, designed in a style that's almost outdated in Helium, didn't have a destination control compass, which meant the pilot had to stay at the controls the entire time. Our space on the narrow deck was extremely cramped, and I anticipated a very uncomfortable journey ahead. We were strapped into safety belts attached to the same deck ring, lying almost on top of each other on the hard skeel. The hood that shielded our faces from the wind, even at our relatively slow speed, wasn't high enough to let us change positions much, though sometimes we found it a relief to sit up with our backs facing the front, breaking the monotony of lying in one spot all the time. When I took a moment to rest my stiff muscles, Tavia steered the flier, but the cold wind of the Barsoomian night would quickly force me back down behind the hood within moments.
By mutual consent, we were heading in a southwesterly direction while we discussed our eventual destination.
By mutual agreement, we were heading southwest as we talked about where we would end up.
I had told Tavia that I wished to go to Jahar and why. She appeared much interested in the story of the abduction of Sanoma Tora, and, from her knowledge of Tul Axtar and the customs of Jahar, she thought it most probable that the missing girl might be found there, but as to the possibility of rescuing her, that was another matter over which she shook her head dubiously.
I told Tavia that I wanted to go to Jahar and why. She seemed very interested in the story of Sanoma Tora's abduction, and based on what she knew about Tul Axtar and the customs of Jahar, she believed it was likely that the missing girl could be found there. However, when it came to the possibility of rescuing her, she shook her head skeptically.
It was obvious to me that Tavia did not desire to return to Jahar, yet she put no obstacles in the path of my search for this my great objective; in fact, she gave me Jahar's position and herself set the nose of the flier upon the right course.
It was clear to me that Tavia didn't want to go back to Jahar, yet she didn’t place any barriers in my way while I pursued this important goal; in fact, she provided me with Jahar's location and even guided the flier in the right direction.
"Will there be any great danger to you in returning to Jahar?" I asked her.
"Is there any serious danger for you in going back to Jahar?" I asked her.
"The danger will be very great," she said, "but where the master goes, the slave must follow."
"The danger is going to be really high," she said, "but wherever the master goes, the servant must follow."
"I am not your master," I said, "and you are not my slave. Let us consider ourselves rather as comrades in arms."
"I’m not your master," I said, "and you’re not my slave. Let’s think of ourselves more as colleagues in this fight."
"That will be nice," she said simply, and then after a pause, "and if we are to be comrades then let me warn you against going directly to Jahar. This flier would be recognized immediately. Your harness would mark you as an alien and you would accomplish nothing more toward rescuing your Sanoma Tora than to achieve the pits of Tul Axtar and sooner or later the games in the great arena, where eventually you must be slain."
"That sounds great," she said plainly, and after a moment, "and if we're going to be allies, let me warn you about going straight to Jahar. This flyer would be recognized right away. Your harness would show you're from another place, and you'd get nowhere in rescuing your Sanoma Tora. You'd just end up in the pits of Tul Axtar and, sooner or later, in the games at the big arena, where you would eventually be killed."
"What would you suggest then?" I asked.
"What do you suggest then?" I asked.
"Beyond Jahar, to the southwest, lies Tjanath, the city of my birth. Of all the cities upon Barsoom that is the only one where I may hope to be received in a friendly manner and as they receive me, so will they receive you. There you may better prepare to enter Jahar, which you may only accomplish by disguising yourself as a Jaharian, for Tul Axtar permits no alien within the confines of his empire other than those who are brought as prisoners of war and as slaves. In Tjanath you can obtain the harness and metal of Jahar and there I can coach you in the customs and manners of the empire of Tul Axtar so that in a short time you may enter it with some reasonably slight assurance that you may deceive them as to your identity. To enter without proper preparation would be fatal."
"Southwest of Jahar is Tjanath, the city where I was born. Of all the cities on Barsoom, it’s the only one where I can expect a warm welcome, and however they treat me, they'll treat you the same. There, you can better get ready to enter Jahar, which you can only do by disguising yourself as a Jaharian because Tul Axtar doesn’t allow outsiders into his empire unless they’re captured as prisoners of war or enslaved. In Tjanath, you can get the gear and equipment of Jahar, and I can teach you the customs and etiquette of Tul Axtar’s empire, so that soon you can enter with a reasonable chance of fooling them about your identity. Trying to enter without proper preparation could be deadly."
I saw the wisdom of her counsel and accordingly we altered our course so as to pass south of Jahar, as we headed straight toward Tjanath, six thousand haads away.
I recognized the wisdom of her advice, so we changed our route to go south of Jahar, heading directly toward Tjanath, six thousand haads away.
All the balance of the night we traveled steadily at the rate of about six hundred haads per zode—a slow speed when compared with that of the good one-man flier that I had brought out of Helium.
All night, we traveled at a steady pace of about six hundred haads per zode—a slow speed compared to the fast one-man flier that I had brought out of Helium.
As the sun rose the first thing that attracted my particular attention was the ghastly blue color of the flier.
As the sun rose, the first thing that caught my eye was the horrible blue color of the flyer.
"What a color for a flier!" I exclaimed.
"What a color for a flyer!" I exclaimed.
Tavia looked up at me. "There is an excellent reason for it, though," she said; "a reason that you must fully understand before you enter Jahar."
Tavia looked up at me. "There’s a really good reason for it, though," she said; "a reason you need to fully grasp before you enter Jahar."
V
V
TO THE PITS
TO THE PITS
Below us, in the ever-changing light of the two moons, stretched the weird landscape of a Barsoomian night as our little craft, sorely overloaded, winged slowly away from Xanator above the low hills that mark the southwestern boundary of the fierce, green hordes of Torquas. With the coming of the new day we discussed the advisability of making a landing and waiting until night before proceeding upon our journey, since we realized that should we be sighted by an enemy craft we could not possibly hope to escape.
Below us, in the shifting light of the two moons, lay the strange landscape of a Barsoom night as our small, overloaded ship slowly flew away from Xanator over the low hills that mark the southwestern edge of the fierce, green Torquas tribes. As the new day began, we talked about whether we should land and wait until night to continue our journey, knowing that if an enemy ship spotted us, we wouldn't stand a chance of escaping.
"Few fliers pass this way," said Tavia, "and if we keep a sharp lookout I believe that we shall be as safe in the air as on the ground, for although we have passed beyond the limits of Torquas, there would still be danger from their raiding parties, which often go far afield."
"Not many fliers come through here," Tavia said, "and if we stay vigilant, I think we’ll be just as safe in the air as we are on the ground. Even though we've left the borders of Torquas, there’s still a risk from their raiding parties, which often travel far away."
And so we proceeded slowly in the direction of Tjanath, our eyes constantly scanning the heavens in all directions.
And so we made our way slowly toward Tjanath, our eyes continuously scanning the skies in all directions.
The monotony of the landscape, combined with our slow rate of progress, would ordinarily have rendered such a journey unendurable to me, but to my surprise the time passed quickly, a fact which I attributed solely to the wit and intelligence of my companion for there was no gain-saying the fact that Tavia was excellent company. I think that we must have talked about everything upon Barsoom and naturally a great deal of the conversation revolved about our own experiences and personalities, so that long before we reached Tjanath I felt that I knew Tavia better than I had ever known any other woman and I was quite sure that I had never confided so completely in any other person.
The dullness of the landscape, along with our slow progress, would usually have made such a journey unbearable for me, but to my surprise, time flew by. I credited this entirely to the wit and intelligence of my companion since it was undeniable that Tavia was great company. I believe we must have talked about everything on Barsoom, and naturally, a lot of our conversation centered around our own experiences and personalities. By the time we reached Tjanath, I felt like I knew Tavia better than I had known any other woman, and I was certain that I had never opened up as completely to anyone else.
Tavia had a way with her that seemed to compel confidences so that, to my own surprise, I found myself discussing the most intimate details of my past life, my hopes, ambitions and aspirations, as well as the fears and doubts which, I presume, assail the minds of all young men.
Tavia had a knack for making people open up, so much so that, to my own surprise, I found myself sharing the most personal details of my past, my dreams, goals, and aspirations, along with the fears and doubts that I assume all young men experience.
When I realized how fully I had unbosomed myself to this little slave girl, I experienced a distinct shock of embarrassment, but the sincerity of Tavia's interest dispelled this feeling as did the realization that she had been almost as equally free with her confidences as had I.
When I realized how completely I had opened up to this little slave girl, I felt a strong wave of embarrassment, but Tavia's genuine interest eased that feeling, just like the fact that she had shared her own secrets almost as freely as I had.
We were two nights and a day covering the distance between Xanator and Tjanath and as the towers and landing stages of our destination appeared upon the distant horizon toward the end of the first zode of the second day, I realized that the hours that stretched away behind us to Xanator were, for some unaccountable reason, as happy a period as I had ever experienced.
We spent two nights and a day traveling the distance between Xanator and Tjanath, and as the towers and docks of our destination came into view on the horizon at the end of the first zode of the second day, I realized that the hours we had left behind in Xanator were, for some unknown reason, the happiest I had ever experienced.
Now it was over. Tjanath lay before us, and with the realization I experienced a distinct regret that Tjanath did not lie upon the opposite side of Barsoom.
Now it was over. Tjanath lay before us, and with that realization, I felt a clear regret that Tjanath was not on the other side of Barsoom.
With the exception of Sanoma Tora, I had never been particularly keen to be much in the company of women. I do not mean to convey the impression that I did not like them, for that would not be true. Their occasional company offered a diversion, which I enjoyed and of which I took advantage, but that I could be for so many hours in the exclusive company of a woman I did not love and thoroughly enjoy every minute of it would have seemed to me quite impossible; yet such had been the fact and I found myself wondering if Tavia had shared my enjoyment of the adventure.
Aside from Sanoma Tora, I had never really been that interested in spending time with women. I don’t want to give the impression that I didn’t like them, because that’s not true. Their occasional company provided a nice distraction, which I appreciated and took advantage of, but the idea of being alone with a woman I didn’t love for hours and genuinely enjoying every minute seemed impossible to me; yet that had been the case, and I found myself wondering if Tavia had enjoyed the experience as much as I did.
"That must be Tjanath," I said, nodding in the direction of the distant city.
"That has to be Tjanath," I said, nodding towards the distant city.
"Yes," she replied.
"Yeah," she replied.
"You must be glad that the journey is over," I ventured.
"You must be happy that the journey is over," I said.
She looked up at me quickly, her brows contracting suddenly in conjecture. "Perhaps I should be," she replied enigmatically.
She glanced up at me quickly, her eyebrows furrowing in thought. "Maybe I should be," she replied cryptically.
"It is your home," I reminded her.
"It’s your home," I reminded her.
"I have no home," she replied.
"I don't have a home," she replied.
"But your friends are here," I insisted.
"But your friends are here," I insisted.
"I have no friends," she said.
"I don’t have any friends," she said.
"You forget Hadron of Hastor," I reminded her.
"You forgot Hadron of Hastor," I reminded her.
"No," she said, "I do not forget that you have been kind to me, but I remember that I am only an incident in your search for Sanoma Tora. Tomorrow, perhaps, you will be gone and we shall never see each other again."
"No," she said, "I don't forget that you’ve been nice to me, but I remember that I'm just a brief moment in your quest for Sanoma Tora. Maybe tomorrow you’ll leave, and we’ll never see each other again."
I had not thought of that and I found that I did not like to think about it, and yet I knew that it was true. "You will soon make friends here," I said.
I hadn't considered that, and I realized I didn't want to think about it, but I knew it was true. "You'll make friends here soon," I said.
"I hope so," she replied; "but I have been gone a very long time and I was so young when I was taken away that I have but the faintest of memories of my life in Tjanath. Tjanath really means nothing to me. I could be as happy anywhere else in Barsoom with—with a friend."
"I hope so," she said. "But I've been away for a really long time, and I was so young when I was taken that I barely remember anything about my life in Tjanath. Tjanath doesn't mean much to me. I could be just as happy anywhere else in Barsoom—with a friend."
We were now close above the outer wall of the city and our conversation was interrupted by the appearance of a flier, evidently a patrol, bearing down upon us. She was sounding an alarm—the shrill screaming of her horn shattering the silence of the early morning. Almost immediately the warning was taken up by gongs and shrieking sirens throughout the city. The patrol boat changed her course and rose swiftly above us, while from landing stages all about rose scores of fighting planes until we were entirely surrounded.
We were now hovering just above the city’s outer wall when our conversation was interrupted by the sight of a patrol flier coming toward us. She was blaring an alarm—the sharp wail of her horn breaking the silence of the early morning. Almost instantly, the warning was echoed by gongs and howling sirens all over the city. The patrol boat shifted its direction and climbed quickly above us, while from landing pads all around, dozens of fighter planes took to the skies until we were completely surrounded.
I tried to hail the nearer of them, but the infernal din of the warning signals drowned my voice. Hundreds of guns covered us, their crews standing ready to hurl destruction upon us.
I tried to call out to the closer one, but the deafening noise of the warning signals drowned out my voice. Hundreds of guns were aimed at us, their crews poised to unleash destruction.
"Does Tjanath always receive visitors in this hostile manner?" I inquired of Tavia.
"Does Tjanath always greet visitors like this?" I asked Tavia.
She shook her head. "I do not know," she replied. "Had we approached in a strange ship of war, I might understand it; but why this little scout flier should attract half the navy of Tjanath is—Wait!" she exclaimed suddenly. "The design and color of our flier mark its origin as Jahar. The people of Tjanath have seen this color before and they fear it; yet if that is true, why is it that they have not fired upon us?"
She shook her head. "I don't know," she said. "If we had come in a strange warship, I might get it; but why this little scout flyer would draw half the navy of Tjanath is—Wait!" she suddenly exclaimed. "The design and color of our flyer reveal it’s from Jahar. The people of Tjanath have seen this color before and they fear it; but if that's the case, why haven’t they shot at us?"
"I do not know why they did not fire upon us at first," I replied, "but it is obvious why they do not now. Their ships are so thick about us that they could not fire without endangering their own craft and men."
"I don’t know why they didn’t shoot at us initially," I replied, "but it’s clear why they aren’t doing it now. Their ships are so close to us that they can’t fire without putting their own vessels and crew at risk."
"Can't you make them understand that we are friends?" she asked.
"Can't you make them see that we're friends?" she asked.
Immediately I made the signs of friendship and of surrender, but the ships seemed afraid to approach. The alarms had ceased and the ships were circling silently about us.
Immediately, I signaled friendship and surrender, but the ships looked hesitant to come closer. The alarms had stopped, and the ships were quietly circling around us.
Again I hailed a nearby ship. "Do not fire," I shouted; "we are friends."
Again I called out to a nearby ship. "Don't shoot," I shouted; "we're friends."
"Friends do not come to Tjanath in the blue death ships of Jahar," replied an officer upon the deck of the ship I had hailed.
"Friends don't come to Tjanath in the blue death ships of Jahar," replied an officer on the deck of the ship I had called out to.
"Let us come alongside," I insisted, "and at least I can prove to you that we are harmless."
"Let's come over," I insisted, "and at least I can show you that we’re harmless."
"You will not come alongside my ship," he replied. "If you are friends you can prove it by doing as I instruct you."
"You won't come near my ship," he replied. "If you're friends, show it by doing what I say."
"What are your wishes?" I asked.
"What do you wish for?" I asked.
"Come about and take your flier beyond the city walls. Ground her at least a haad beyond the east gate and then, with your companion, walk toward the city."
"Turn around and take your flyer past the city walls. Land her at least a hundred yards beyond the east gate and then, with your friend, walk toward the city."
"Can you promise that we will be well received?" I asked.
"Can you promise that we will be welcomed?" I asked.
"You will be questioned," he replied, "and if you are all right, you have nothing to fear."
"You'll be questioned," he replied, "and if you’re okay, you have nothing to worry about."
"Very well," I replied, "we will do as you say. Signal your other ships to make way for us," and then, through the lane that they opened, we passed slowly back above the walls of Tjanath and came to the ground about a haad beyond the east gate.
"All right," I said, "we'll do what you want. Have your other ships clear the way for us," and then, through the path they opened, we slowly moved back over the walls of Tjanath and landed about a hundred yards past the east gate.
As we approached the city the gates swung open and a detachment of warriors marched out to meet us. It was evident that they were very suspicious and fearful of us. The padwar in charge of them ordered us to halt while there were yet fully a hundred sofads between us.
As we got closer to the city, the gates opened wide and a group of warriors came out to meet us. It was clear they were wary and scared of us. The padwar leading them commanded us to stop while there were still a full hundred sofads separating us.
"Throw down your weapons," he commanded, "and then come forward."
"Drop your weapons," he ordered, "and then step forward."
"But we are not enemies," I replied. "Do not the people of Tjanath know how to receive friends?"
"But we aren't enemies," I replied. "Don't the people of Tjanath know how to welcome friends?"
"Do as you are told or we will destroy you both," was his only reply.
"Do what you're told or we will ruin both of you," was his only response.
I could not refrain a shrug of disgust as I divested myself of my weapons, while Tavia threw down the short sword that I had loaned her. Unarmed we advanced toward the warriors, but even then the padwar was not entirely satisfied, for he searched our harness carefully before he finally conducted us into the city, keeping us well surrounded by warriors.
I couldn't help but shrug in disgust as I took off my weapons, while Tavia dropped the short sword I had lent her. Unarmed, we moved toward the warriors, but even then the padwar wasn’t fully satisfied; he searched our gear thoroughly before finally leading us into the city, keeping us closely surrounded by warriors.
As the east gate of Tjanath closed behind us I realized that we were prisoners rather than the guests that we had hoped to be, but Tavia tried to reassure me by insisting that when they had heard our story we would be set at liberty and accorded the hospitality that she insisted was our due.
As the east gate of Tjanath shut behind us, I realized we were more like prisoners than the guests we had hoped to be. But Tavia tried to comfort me, saying that once they heard our story, we would be freed and treated with the hospitality she believed we deserved.
Our guards conducted us to a building that stood upon the opposite side of the avenue, facing the east gate, and presently we found ourselves upon a broad landing stage upon the roof of the building. Here a patrol flier awaited us and our padwar turned us over to the officer in charge, whose attitude toward us was marked by ill-concealed hatred and distrust.
Our guards led us to a building on the other side of the street, across from the east gate, and soon we found ourselves on a wide landing on the roof of the building. A patrol flier was waiting for us there, and our padwar handed us over to the officer in charge, who clearly felt a strong dislike and mistrust towards us.
As soon as we had been received on board the patrol flier rose and proceeded toward the center of the city.
As soon as we were welcomed aboard, the patrol flyer took off and headed toward the center of the city.
Below us lay Tjanath, giving the impression of a city that had not kept abreast of modern improvements. It was marked by signs of antiquity; the buildings reflected the architecture of the ancients and many of them were in a state of disrepair, though much of the city's ugliness was hidden or softened by the foliage of great trees and climbing vines, so that on the whole the aspect was more pleasing than otherwise. Toward the center of the city was a large plaza, entirely surrounded by imposing public buildings, including the palace of the Jed. It was upon the roof of one of these buildings that the flier landed.
Below us lay Tjanath, resembling a city that hadn’t kept up with modern advancements. It showed signs of age; the buildings represented ancient architecture, and many were falling apart. However, much of the city's unattractiveness was masked or softened by the greenery of large trees and climbing vines, making the overall view more appealing than not. At the heart of the city was a large plaza, completely surrounded by impressive public buildings, including the palace of the Jed. It was on the roof of one of these structures that the flier landed.
Under a strong guard we were conducted into the interior of the building and after a brief wait were ushered into the presence of some high official. Evidently he had already been advised of the circumstances surrounding our arrival at Tjanath, for he seemed to be expecting us and was familiar with all that had transpired up to the present moment.
Under tight security, we were taken inside the building and after a short wait, we were brought before a high-ranking official. He clearly already knew about the situation regarding our arrival at Tjanath, as he seemed to be expecting us and was aware of everything that had happened so far.
"What do you at Tjanath, Jaharian?" he demanded.
"What are you doing at Tjanath, Jaharian?" he asked.
"I am not from Jahar," I replied. "Look at my metal."
"I’m not from Jahar," I said. "Check out my metal."
"A warrior may change his metal," he replied, gruffly.
"A warrior can change his armor," he replied, gruffly.
"This man has not changed his metal," said Tavia. "He is not from Jahar; he is from Hastor, one of the cities of Helium. I am from Jahar."
"This guy hasn't changed his nature," Tavia said. "He's not from Jahar; he's from Hastor, one of the cities in Helium. I'm from Jahar."
The official looked at her in surprise. "So you admit it!" he cried.
The official looked at her in shock. "So you admit it!" he exclaimed.
"But first I was from Tjanath," said the girl.
"But first, I was from Tjanath," the girl said.
"What do you mean?" he demanded.
"What do you mean?" he asked.
"As a little child I was stolen from Tjanath," replied Tavia. "All my life since I have been a slave in the palace of Tul Axtar, Jeddak of Jahar. Only recently I escaped in the same flier upon which we arrived at Tjanath. Near the dead city of Xanator I landed and was captured by the green men of Torquas. This warrior, who is Hadron of Hastor, rescued me from them. Together we came to Tjanath, expecting a friendly reception."
"As a little kid, I was taken from Tjanath," replied Tavia. "Since then, I’ve been a slave in the palace of Tul Axtar, Jeddak of Jahar. I just recently escaped in the same flier we used to get to Tjanath. I landed near the dead city of Xanator and was captured by the green men of Torquas. This warrior, Hadron of Hastor, rescued me from them. Together, we came to Tjanath, thinking we would be welcomed."
"Who are your people in Tjanath?" demanded the official.
"Who are the people you know in Tjanath?" the official asked.
"I do not know," replied Tavia; "I was very young. I remember practically nothing about my life in Tjanath."
"I don't know," replied Tavia; "I was really young. I remember almost nothing about my life in Tjanath."
"What is your name?"
"What's your name?"
"Tavia."
"Tavia."
The man's interest in her story, which had seemed wholly perfunctory, seemed suddenly altered and galvanized.
The man's interest in her story, which had seemed completely superficial, suddenly appeared changed and intense.
"You know nothing about your parents or your family?" he demanded.
"You don't know anything about your parents or your family?" he asked.
"Nothing," replied Tavia.
"Nothing," Tavia replied.
He turned to the padwar who was in charge of our escort. "Hold them here until I return," he said, and, rising from his desk, he left the apartment.
He turned to the petty officer who was in charge of our escort. "Keep them here until I get back," he said, and, standing up from his desk, he left the apartment.
"He seemed to recognize your name," I said to Tavia.
"He seemed to know your name," I said to Tavia.
"How could he?" she asked.
"How could he?" she asked.
"Possibly he knew your family," I suggested; "at least his manner suggested that we are going to be given some consideration."
"Maybe he knew your family," I suggested; "at least the way he acted hinted that we’re going to be given some attention."
"I hope so," she said.
"I hope so," she said.
"I feel that our troubles are about over, Tavia," I assured her; "and for your sake I shall be very happy."
"I think our troubles are almost over, Tavia," I told her; "and for your sake, I'm going to be very happy."
"And you, I suppose," she said, "will endeavor to enlist aid in continuing your search for Sanoma Tora?"
"And you, I guess," she said, "will try to get help in continuing your search for Sanoma Tora?"
"Naturally," I replied. "Could anything less be expected of me?"
"Of course," I replied. "What else would you expect from me?"
"No," she admitted in a very low voice.
"No," she admitted in a barely audible voice.
Notwithstanding the fact that something in the demeanor of the official who had interrogated us had raised my hope for our future, I was still conscious of a feeling of depression as our conversation emphasized the near approach of our separation. It seemed as though I had always known Tavia, for the few days that we had been thrown together had brought us very close indeed. I knew that I should miss her sparkling wit, her ready sympathy and the quiet companionship of her silences, and then the beautiful features of Sanoma Tora were projected upon memory's screen and, knowing where my duty lay, I cast vain regrets aside, for love, I knew, was greater than friendship and I loved Sanoma Tora.
Despite the fact that something about the way the official who interviewed us made me feel hopeful about our future, I was still aware of a sense of sadness as our conversation highlighted how close we were to parting ways. It felt like I had known Tavia forever; the few days we had spent together had brought us really close. I realized I would miss her sharp humor, her understanding nature, and the comfortable silence we shared. Then, the beautiful features of Sanoma Tora flashed in my memory, and knowing what I needed to do, I pushed aside any feelings of regret because I understood that love was greater than friendship, and I loved Sanoma Tora.
After a considerable lapse of time the official re-entered the apartment. I searched his face to read the first tidings of good news there, but his expression was inscrutable; however, his first words, addressed to the padwar, were entirely understandable.
After a long time, the official came back into the apartment. I looked at his face to see if there was any sign of good news, but his expression was unreadable; however, his first words to the padwar were completely clear.
"Confine the woman in the East Tower," he said, "and send the man to the pits."
"Lock the woman in the East Tower," he said, "and send the man to the pits."
That was all. It was like a blow in the face. I looked at Tavia and saw her wide eyes upon the official. "You mean that we are to be held as prisoners?" she demanded; "I, a daughter of Tjanath, and this warrior who came here from a friendly nation seeking your aid and protection?"
That was it. It hit me like a slap in the face. I looked at Tavia and saw her wide eyes fixed on the official. "Are you saying we're going to be held as prisoners?" she asked. "I, a daughter of Tjanath, and this warrior who came here from a friendly nation looking for your assistance and protection?"
"You will each have a hearing later before the Jed," snapped the official. "I have spoken. Take them away."
"You will all have a hearing later before the Jed," the official snapped. "I've spoken. Take them away."
Several of the warriors seized me rather roughly by the arms. Tavia had turned away from the official and was looking at me. "Good-bye, Hadron of Hastor!" she said. "It is my fault that you are here. May my ancestors forgive me!"
Several of the warriors grabbed me quite roughly by the arms. Tavia had turned away from the official and was staring at me. "Goodbye, Hadron of Hastor!" she said. "It's my fault that you're here. May my ancestors forgive me!"
"Do not reproach yourself, Tavia," I begged her, "for who might have foreseen such a stupid reception?"
"Don't blame yourself, Tavia," I pleaded with her, "because who could have predicted such a ridiculous welcome?"
We were taken from the apartment by different doorways and there we turned, each for a last look at the other, and in Tavia's eyes there were tears, and in my heart.
We were led out of the apartment through different doors, and we paused, each taking a final glance at the other. There were tears in Tavia's eyes, and my heart was heavy.
The pits of Tjanath, to which I was immediately conducted, are gloomy, but they are not enveloped in impenetrable darkness as are the pits beneath most Barsoomian cities. Into the dungeon dim light filtered through the iron grating from the corridors, where ancient radium bulbs glowed faintly. Yet it was light and I gave thanks for that, for I have always believed that I should go mad imprisoned in utter darkness.
The pits of Tjanath, to which I was taken right away, are dark, but they're not completely shrouded in darkness like the pits under most Barsoomian cities. Dim light seeped into the dungeon through the iron grating from the corridors, where old radium bulbs glowed faintly. Yet it was light, and I was grateful for it because I've always thought I would go crazy if I were trapped in total darkness.
I was heavily fettered and unnecessarily so, it seemed to me, as they chained me to a massive iron ring set deep in the masonry wall of my dungeon, and then, leaving me, locked also the ponderous iron grating before the doorway.
I was held down and it seemed unnecessary, as they chained me to a huge iron ring embedded deep in the stone wall of my cell, and then, leaving me behind, locked the heavy iron grate in front of the door.
As the footfalls of the warriors diminished to nothingness in the distance I heard the faint sound of something moving nearby me in my dungeon. What could it be? I strained my eyes into the gloomy darkness.
As the warriors' footsteps faded into silence in the distance, I heard a faint sound of something shifting near me in my dungeon. What could it be? I squinted into the murky darkness.
Presently, as my eyes became more accustomed to the dim light in my cell, I saw the figure of what appeared to be a man crouching against the wall near me. Again I heard a sound as he moved and this time it was accompanied by the rattle of a chain, and then I saw a face turn toward me, but I could not distinguish the features.
Right now, as my eyes adjusted to the low light in my cell, I saw what looked like a man crouching against the wall close to me. I heard a noise as he moved, and this time it was followed by the clinking of a chain. Then I saw a face turn toward me, but I couldn’t make out the features.
"Another guest to share the hospitality of Tjanath," said a voice that came from the blurred figure beside me. It was a clear voice—the voice of a man—and there was a quality to its timbre that I liked.
"Another guest to enjoy the hospitality of Tjanath," said a voice that came from the blurry figure beside me. It was a distinct voice—a man's voice—and there was something about its tone that I liked.
"Do our hosts entertain many such as we?" I asked.
"Do our hosts entertain many people like us?" I asked.
"In this cell there was but one," he replied; "now there are two. Are you from Tjanath or elsewhere?"
"In this cell there was only one," he replied; "now there are two. Are you from Tjanath or somewhere else?"
"I am from Hastor, city of the Empire of Tardos Mors, Jeddak of Helium."
"I’m from Hastor, the city in the Empire of Tardos Mors, Jeddak of Helium."
"You are a long way from home," he said.
"You’re really far from home," he said.
"Yes," I replied; "and you?"
"Yeah," I said; "how about you?"
"I am from Jahar," he answered. "My name is Nur An."
"I’m from Jahar," he replied. "My name is Nur An."
"And mine is Hadron," I said. "Why are you here?"
"And mine is Hadron," I said. "What brings you here?"
"I am a prisoner because I am from Jahar," he replied. "What is your crime?"
"I’m a prisoner because I’m from Jahar," he said. "What did you do?"
"It is that they think I am from Jahar," I told him.
"It’s that they think I’m from Jahar," I told him.
"What made them think that? Do you wear the metal of Jahar?"
"What made them think that? Do you wear the metal of Jahar?"
"No, I wear the metal of Helium, but I chanced to come to Tjanath in a Jaharian flier."
"No, I wear the metal of Helium, but I happened to arrive at Tjanath in a Jaharian flier."
He whistled. "That would be hard to explain," he said.
He whistled. "That would be difficult to explain," he said.
"I found it so," I admitted. "They would not believe a word of my story, nor of that of my companion."
"I found it to be true," I admitted. "They wouldn’t believe a single word of my story, or of my companion’s."
"You had a companion, then?" he asked. "Where is he?"
"You had a friend, right?" he asked. "Where is he?"
"It was a woman. She was born in Tjanath, but for long years had been a slave in Jahar. Perhaps later they will believe her story, but for the present we are in prison. I heard them order her to the East Tower, while they sent me here to the prison."
"It was a woman. She was born in Tjanath, but had been a slave in Jahar for many years. Maybe they'll believe her story later, but right now we are in prison. I heard them tell her to go to the East Tower while they sent me here to the prison."
"And here you will stay until you rot, unless you are lucky enough to be called for the games, or unlucky enough to be sentenced to The Death."
"And here you will stay until you decay, unless you're lucky enough to be chosen for the games, or unlucky enough to be sentenced to The Death."
"What is The Death?" I asked, my curiosity piqued by his emphasis of the words.
"What is The Death?" I asked, my curiosity sparked by how he stressed those words.
"I do not know," he replied. "The warriors who come here often speak of it as though it was something quite horrible. Perhaps they do it to frighten me, but if that is true, then they have had very little satisfaction, for, whether or not I have been frightened, I have not let them see it."
"I don't know," he said. "The warriors who come here often talk about it like it's something really terrible. Maybe they do it to scare me, but if that's the case, they haven't had much success because, whether I've been scared or not, I haven't let them see it."
"Let us hope for the games, then," I said.
"Let's hope for the games, then," I said.
"They are dull and stupid people here in Tjanath," said my companion. "The warriors have told me that sometimes many years elapse between games in the arena, but we may hope at least, for surely it would be better to die there with a good long sword in one's hand rather than to rot here in the darkness, or die The Death, whatever it may be."
"They're just boring and ignorant people here in Tjanath," my companion said. "The warriors have mentioned that sometimes several years go by between matches in the arena, but we can at least hope for something better, because it would surely be better to die there with a long sword in hand than to waste away here in the darkness, or to face The Death, whatever that might be."
"You are right," I said. "Let us beseech our ancestors that the Jed of Tjanath decrees games in the near future."
"You’re right," I said. "Let’s ask our ancestors to have the Jed of Tjanath organize games soon."
"So you are from Hastor," he said, musingly, after a moment's silence. "That is a long way from Tjanath. Pressing must have been the service that brought you so far afield!"
"So you're from Hastor," he said thoughtfully, after a brief pause. "That’s quite a distance from Tjanath. It must have been important for you to come all this way!"
"I was searching for Jahar," I replied.
"I was looking for Jahar," I replied.
"Perhaps you are as well off that you found Tjanath first," he said, "for, though I am a Jaharian, I cannot boast the hospitality of Jahar."
"Maybe you're better off having found Tjanath first," he said, "because even though I'm from Jahar, I can't brag about the hospitality of Jahar."
"You think I would not have been accorded a cordial welcome there, then?" I asked.
"You think I wouldn't have received a warm welcome there, then?" I asked.
"By my first ancestor, no," he exclaimed most emphatically. "Tul Axtar would have had you in the pits before he asked your name, and the pits of Jahar are not as light nor as pleasant as these."
"By my first ancestor, no," he said very firmly. "Tul Axtar would have thrown you into the pits before asking your name, and the pits of Jahar are neither as easy nor as pleasant as these."
"I did not intend that Tul Axtar should know that I was visiting him," I said.
"I didn't mean for Tul Axtar to find out that I was visiting him," I said.
"You are a spy?" he asked.
"Are you a spy?" he asked.
"No," I replied. "The daughter of the commander of the umak to which I was attached was abducted by Jaharians, and, I have reason to believe, by the orders of Tul Axtar himself. To effect her rescue was the object of my journey."
"No," I replied. "The daughter of the commander of the umak I was assigned to was kidnapped by Jaharians, and I have strong reason to believe it was ordered by Tul Axtar himself. Rescuing her was the purpose of my journey."
"You tell this to a Jaharian?" he asked lightly.
"You say this to a Jaharian?" he asked playfully.
"With perfect impunity," I replied. "In the first place, I have read in your words and your tone that you are no friend to Tul Axtar, Jeddak of Jahar, and, secondly, there is evidently little chance that you ever will return to Jahar."
"With complete freedom," I replied. "First, I can tell from what you say and how you say it that you're not a fan of Tul Axtar, Jeddak of Jahar. Second, it seems pretty unlikely that you'll ever go back to Jahar."
"You are right in both conjectures," he said. "I most assuredly have no love for Tul Axtar. He is a beast, hated by all decent men. The cause of my hatred for him so closely parallels your own reason to hate Tul Axtar that we are indeed bound by a common tie."
"You’re right about both assumptions," he said. "I definitely have no love for Tul Axtar. He’s a monster, hated by all good people. My hatred for him is so similar to your own reason for hating Tul Axtar that we’re truly connected by a common bond."
"How is that?" I demanded.
"How's that?" I demanded.
"All my life I have never felt aught but contempt for Tul Axtar, Jeddak of Jahar, but this contempt was not transmuted into hatred until he stole a woman, and it was the stealing of a woman, also, that directed your venom against him."
"All my life, I've felt nothing but contempt for Tul Axtar, the Jeddak of Jahar. However, that contempt turned into hatred when he stole a woman, and it was also the act of stealing a woman that fueled your anger towards him."
"A woman of your family?" I asked.
"A woman in your family?" I asked.
"My sweetheart, the woman I was to marry," replied Nur An. "I am a noble. My family is of ancient lineage and great wealth. For these reasons Tul Axtar knew that he had good cause to fear me, and, urged on by this fear, he confiscated my property and sentenced me to death, but I have many friends in Jahar and one of these, a common warrior of the guard, connived at my escape after I had been imprisoned in the pits.
"My sweetheart, the woman I was going to marry," replied Nur An. "I come from a noble family with an ancient lineage and significant wealth. Because of this, Tul Axtar had every reason to be afraid of me. Driven by that fear, he took my property and sentenced me to death. However, I have many friends in Jahar, and one of them, a regular warrior from the guard, helped me escape after I had been locked up in the pits."
"I made my way to Tjanath and told my story to Haj Osis, the Jed, and, laying my sword at his feet, I offered him my services, but Haj Osis is a suspicious old fool and saw in me only a spy from Jahar. He ordered me to the pits and here I have lain for a long time."
"I went to Tjanath and shared my story with Haj Osis, the Jed. I placed my sword at his feet and offered my services, but Haj Osis is a cautious old fool and saw me only as a spy from Jahar. He sent me to the pits, and here I have been for a long time."
"Jahar must be, indeed, an unhappy country," I said, "ruled over, as she is, by such a man as Tul Axtar. Recently I have heard much of him, but as yet I have not heard him credited with a single virtue."
"Jahar must really be an unhappy country," I said, "being ruled by someone like Tul Axtar. I've heard a lot about him lately, but so far, I haven't heard anyone say he has a single good quality."
"He has none," said Nur An. "He is a cruel tyrant, rotten with corruption and vice. If any of the great powers of Barsoom could have guessed what was in his mind, Jahar would have been reduced long ago and Tul Axtar destroyed."
"He has nothing," said Nur An. "He's a cruel tyrant, filled with corruption and bad intentions. If any of the major powers of Barsoom had any idea what he was planning, Jahar would have been taken down a long time ago and Tul Axtar would be gone."
"What do you mean?" I asked.
"What do you mean?" I asked.
"For at least two hundred years Tul Axtar has fostered a magnificent dream, the conquest of all Barsoom. During all this time he has made manpower his fetich; no eggs might be destroyed, each woman being compelled to preserve all that she laid. (Note: Martians are oviparous.) An army of officials and inspectors took a record of the production of each female. Those that had the greatest number of males were rewarded; the unproductive were destroyed. When it was discovered that marriage tended to reduce the productivity of the females of Jahar, marriage among any classes beneath the nobility was proscribed by imperial edict.
"For at least two hundred years, Tul Axtar has had a grand vision: the conquest of all Barsoom. Throughout this time, he has treated manpower as his obsession; no eggs could be destroyed, and every woman was required to keep all that she laid. (Note: Martians are oviparous.) An army of officials and inspectors recorded the production of each female. Those with the highest number of males were rewarded, while the unproductive were eliminated. When it was found that marriage lowered the productivity of the females of Jahar, marriage among any classes below the nobility was banned by imperial decree."
"The result has been an appalling increase in population until many of the provinces of Jahar cannot support the incalculable numbers that swarm like ants in a hill. The richest agricultural land upon Barsoom could not support such numbers; every natural resource has been exhausted; millions are starving, and in large districts cannibalism is prevalent.
"The outcome has been a shocking surge in population to the point where many provinces of Jahar can’t support the overwhelming numbers that flood in like ants in a hill. The richest farmland on Barsoom cannot sustain such numbers; every natural resource has been drained; millions are starving, and in large areas, cannibalism is common."
"During all this time Tul Axtar's officers have been training the males for war. From earliest consciousness the thought of war has been implanted within their minds. To war and to war alone do they look for relief from the hideous conditions which oppress them until today countless millions are clamoring for war, realizing that victory means loot, and that loot means food and riches. Already Tul Axtar commands an army of such vast proportions that the fate of Barsoom might readily lie in the palm of his hand were it not for but a single obstacle."
"Throughout this time, Tul Axtar's officers have been training the men for battle. From a young age, the idea of war has been instilled in their minds. They seek relief only through war from the terrible conditions that burden them, and today, countless millions are eager for conflict, understanding that victory brings treasure, and treasure means food and wealth. Tul Axtar already leads such a massive army that the fate of Barsoom could easily be at his fingertips, were it not for one single obstacle."
"And what is that?" I asked.
"And what is that?" I asked.
"Tul Axtar is a coward," replied Nur An. "Having fulfilled his dream of manpower, he is afraid to use it lest by some accident of fate his military plans should fail and his troops meet defeat. Therefore, he has waited while he urged on the scientists of Jahar to produce some weapon that would be so far superior in its destructive power to anything possessed by any other nation of Barsoom that his armies would be invincible.
"Tul Axtar is a coward," Nur An replied. "Now that he has gathered his forces, he’s scared to make a move in case his military plans backfire and his troops end up losing. So, he’s just been waiting while pushing the scientists of Jahar to create a weapon that’s way more destructive than anything any other nation on Barsoom has, making his armies unbeatable."
"For years the best minds of Jahar labored with the problem until at last one of our most eminent scientists, an old man named Phor Tak, developed a rifle of amazing properties. The success of Phor Tak aroused the jealousies of other scientists, and though the old man had given Tul Axtar what he sought, yet the tyrant showed no gratitude, and Phor Tak was subjected to such indignities and oppressions that eventually he fled from Jahar.
"For years, the brightest minds in Jahar worked on the problem until finally, one of our top scientists, an elderly man named Phor Tak, created a rifle with incredible abilities. Phor Tak's success sparked jealousy among other scientists, and even though the old man had provided Tul Axtar with what he wanted, the tyrant showed no appreciation. As a result, Phor Tak faced such mistreatment and oppression that he ultimately left Jahar."
"That, however, is of no import; all that Phor Tak could do for Tul Axtar he had done, and with the new rifle in his possession, the Jeddak was glad to be rid of the old scientist."
"That, however, doesn't matter; all that Phor Tak could do for Tul Axtar, he had done, and with the new rifle in his possession, the Jeddak was happy to be rid of the old scientist."
Naturally I was much interested in the rifle which Nur An had mentioned and I hoped that he would go into a further and more detailed description of it, but I dared not suggest that for fear that the natural loyalty which every man feels for the country of his birth might restrain him from divulging her military secrets to a stranger. I was to learn, however, that those lofty sentiments of patriotism, which are a part of every man of Helium, were induced as much by the love and respect in which we held our great jeddaks as by our natural attachment to the land of our birth; while, upon the other hand, the Jaharians looked only with contempt and loathing upon the head of their state and feeling no loyalty for him, who was in effect the state, they looked upon patriotism as nothing more than an empty catchword, which an unworthy master had used to his own end until it had become meaningless, and so, while at the moment I was surprised, I later came to understand why it was that Nur An voluntarily explained in detail to me all that he knew about the strange new weapon of Jahar and the means of defense against it.
Naturally, I was very interested in the rifle Nur An had mentioned, and I hoped he would give me a more detailed description. However, I didn’t want to suggest that because I was worried that his loyalty to his homeland might prevent him from sharing military secrets with a stranger. I would later learn that the strong sense of patriotism among the people of Helium came from both our love and respect for our great jeddaks and our natural attachment to our homeland. In contrast, the Jaharians held only contempt and disgust for their leader, feeling no loyalty to him, who essentially embodied the state. To them, patriotism was simply an empty phrase, used by an unworthy ruler for his own benefit until it lost its meaning. So, while I was surprised at the time, I later understood why Nur An willingly explained in detail everything he knew about the strange new weapon from Jahar and how to defend against it.
"This new rifle," he continued after a moment's silence, "would render all the other armies and navies of Barsoom impotent before us. It projects an invisible ray, the vibrations of which effect such a change in the constitution of metals as to cause them to disintegrate. I am not a scientist; I do not fully understand the exact explanation of the phenomenon, but from what I was able to gather while the new weapon was being discussed in Jahar I am under the impression that these rays change the polarity of the protons in metallic substances, releasing the whole mass as free electrons. I have also heard the theory expounded that Phor Tak, in his investigation, discovered that the fundamental principle underlying time, matter and space are identical, and that what the rays projected from his rifle really accomplish is to translate any mass of metal upon which it is directed into the most elementary constituents of space.
"This new rifle," he continued after a moment of silence, "would make all the other armies and navies of Barsoom powerless against us. It shoots an invisible ray that alters the structure of metals, causing them to break apart. I'm not a scientist, so I don't completely grasp the exact explanation of this phenomenon, but from what I gathered while the new weapon was being talked about in Jahar, I believe that these rays change the polarity of protons in metallic substances, turning the whole mass into free electrons. I've also heard the theory that Phor Tak, in his research, found that the basic principles of time, matter, and space are the same, and that what the rays from his rifle really do is convert any piece of metal it hits into the simplest building blocks of space."
"But be that as it may, Tul Axtar had the manpower and the weapon, yet still he hesitated. He was afraid and he sought for some excuse further to delay the war of conquest and loot which his millions of subjects now demanded, and to this end he hit upon the plan of insisting upon some medium of defense against this new rifle, basing his demands upon the possibility that some other power might also have discovered a similar weapon or would eventually, by the use of spies or informers, learn the secret from Jahar. Probably greatly to his surprise and unquestionably to his embarrassment, a man who had been an assistant in Phor Tak's laboratory presently developed a substance which dissipated the rays of the new weapon, rendering them harmless. With this substance, which is of a bluish color, the metal portions of the ships, weapons and harness of Jahar are now painted.
"But anyway, Tul Axtar had the people and the weapons, yet he still hesitated. He was afraid and looked for some excuse to delay the war of conquest and looting that his millions of subjects were demanding. To achieve this, he came up with the idea of demanding some form of defense against this new rifle, claiming that another power might also have developed a similar weapon or would eventually learn the secret from Jahar through spies or informants. Probably much to his surprise and undoubtedly to his embarrassment, a man who had been an assistant in Phor Tak's lab soon created a substance that diffused the rays of the new weapon, making them harmless. With this bluish substance, the metal parts of the ships, weapons, and harness of Jahar are now coated."
"But yet again Tul Axtar postponed his war, insisting upon the production of an enormous quantity of the new rifles and a mighty fleet of warships upon which to mount them. Then, he says, he will sail forth and conquer all Barsoom."
"But once again, Tul Axtar delayed his war, insisting on the production of a massive number of new rifles and a powerful fleet of warships to equip them. Then, he claims, he will set sail and conquer all of Barsoom."
The destruction of the patrol boat above Helium the night of the abduction of Sanoma Tora was now quite clear to me, and when Nur An told me later that Tul Axtar had sent experimental fliers to attack Tjanath, I understood why it was that the blue flier in which Tavia and I had arrived had caused such consternation, but the thought that upset my mind now almost to the exclusion of the plight of Sanoma Tora was that somewhere in the thin air of dying Barsoom a great Heliumetic fleet was moving to attack Jahar, or at least that was what I supposed since I had no reason to doubt that the message that I had given to the majordomo of Tor Hatan's palace had not been delivered to the Warlord. To lie here enchained in the pits of Tjanath, while the great fleet of Helium sped to its destruction, filled me with horror. With my own eyes had I seen the effects of this terrible new weapon and I knew that it was no idle dream upon the part of Nur An when he had stated that with it Tul Axtar could conquer a world; but there was a defense against it. If I could but regain my freedom, I might not only warn the ships of Helium and save them from inevitable doom, but also in connection with my quest for Sanoma Tora in the city of Jahar, I might discover the secret of the defense against the weapon which the Jaharians had evolved.
The destruction of the patrol boat above Helium on the night Sanoma Tora was abducted became clear to me. When Nur An later told me that Tul Axtar had sent experimental fliers to attack Tjanath, I understood why the blue flier Tavia and I had arrived in caused such alarm. But what troubled me even more than Sanoma Tora's situation was the thought that somewhere in the thin air above dying Barsoom, a massive Helium fleet was on its way to attack Jahar. I assumed this was true since I had no reason to doubt that the message I had given to the majordomo of Tor Hatan's palace had reached the Warlord. The idea of being here, chained in the pits of Tjanath, while the Helium fleet raced toward destruction, horrified me. I had witnessed the effects of this terrible new weapon, and I knew Nur An wasn't just dreaming when he said Tul Axtar could conquer a world with it. However, there was a way to defend against it. If I could regain my freedom, I could warn the Helium ships and save them from inevitable doom. Plus, while searching for Sanoma Tora in the city of Jahar, I might uncover the secret to the defense against the weapon the Jaharians had developed.
Freedom! Before it had only seemed the most desirable thing in the world; now it had become imperative.
Freedom! Before, it had only seemed like the most desirable thing in the world; now it had become essential.
VI
VI
SENTENCED TO DIE
SENTENCED TO DEATH
I was not long in the pits of Tjanath before warriors came, and, removing my fetters, led me from my dungeon. There were only two of them and I could not but note their carelessness and the laxness of their discipline as they escorted me to an upper level of the palace, but at the time I thought it meant only that the attitude of the officials had altered and that I was to be free.
I wasn't in the dungeons of Tjanath for long before some warriors showed up and took off my chains, leading me out of my cell. There were just two of them, and I couldn't help but notice how careless they were and how lax their discipline was as they took me to a higher level of the palace. At that moment, I thought it just meant that the officials had changed their minds and I was going to be freed.
There was nothing remarkable about the palace of the Jed of Tjanath. It was a poor place by comparison with the palaces of some of the great nobles of Helium, yet never before, I imagined, had I challenged with greater interest every detail of architecture, every corridor and doorway, or the manners, harness and decorations of the people that passed us, for, though in my heart was the hope that I was about to be free, yet I considered this place my prison and these people my jailers, and, as my one object in life was to escape, I was determined to let no detail elude my eye that might possibly in any way aid me if the time should come when I must make a break for liberty.
There was nothing special about the palace of the Jed of Tjanath. It was a modest place compared to the palaces of some of the great nobles of Helium, yet I had never been more interested in every detail of the architecture, every corridor and doorway, or the style, harness, and decorations of the people passing by. In my heart, I held onto the hope that I was about to be free, but I saw this place as my prison and these people as my captors. Since my only goal in life was to escape, I was determined to notice every detail that might help me if the time came for me to make a break for freedom.
It was such thoughts that were uppermost in my mind as I was ushered through wide portals into the presence of a bejeweled warrior. As my eyes first alighted upon him I knew at once that I was in the presence of Haj Osis, Jed of Tjanath.
It was those thoughts that occupied my mind as I was led through large doors into the presence of a jeweled warrior. The moment I laid my eyes on him, I realized I was in the presence of Haj Osis, Jed of Tjanath.
As my guard halted me before him, the Jed scrutinized me intently with that air of suspicion which is his most marked characteristic.
As my guard stopped me in front of him, the Jed looked me over closely with that skeptical vibe that he’s known for.
"Your name and country?" he demanded.
"What's your name and where are you from?" he asked.
"I am Hadron of Hastor, padwar in the navy of Helium," I replied.
"I’m Hadron of Hastor, a junior officer in the navy of Helium," I replied.
"You are from Jahar," he accused. "You came here from Jahar with a woman of Jahar in a flier of Jahar. Can you deny it?"
"You’re from Jahar," he said accusingly. "You came here from Jahar with a woman from Jahar in a Jahar flier. Can you deny that?"
I told Haj Osis in detail everything that had led up to my arrival at Tjanath. I told him Tavia's story as well, and I must at least credit him with listening to me in patience, though I was constantly impressed by a feeling that my appeal was being directed at a mind already so prejudiced against me that nothing that I might say could alter its convictions.
I told Haj Osis everything that had brought me to Tjanath in detail. I shared Tavia's story too, and I have to give him credit for listening patiently, even though I couldn't shake the feeling that my plea was aimed at a mind that was already so biased against me that nothing I said could change its beliefs.
The chiefs and courtiers that surrounded the Jed evinced open skepticism in their manner until I became convinced that fear of Tul Axtar so obsessed them that they were unable to consider intelligently any matter connected with the activities of the Jeddak of Jahar. Terror made them suspicious and suspicion sees everything through distorted lenses.
The chiefs and courtiers around the Jed showed clear skepticism in their behavior until I realized that their fear of Tul Axtar consumed them to the point where they couldn’t think rationally about anything related to the Jeddak of Jahar's actions. Their terror turned them into suspicious people, and suspicion distorts everything.
When I had finished my story, Haj Osis ordered me removed from the room and I was held in a small ante-chamber for some time while, I imagined, he discussed my case with his advisors.
When I finished my story, Haj Osis had me taken out of the room, and I waited in a small ante-chamber for a while, while I figured he was talking about my case with his advisors.
When I was again ushered into his presence I felt that the whole atmosphere of the chamber was charged with antagonism, as for the second time I was halted before the dais upon which the Jed sat in his carved throne-chair.
When I was escorted back into his presence, I sensed that the entire atmosphere of the room was filled with hostility, as for the second time I was stopped in front of the raised platform where the Jed sat in his intricately designed throne.
"The laws of Tjanath are just," proclaimed Haj Osis, glaring at me, "and the Jed of Tjanath is merciful. The enemies of Tjanath shall receive justice, but they may not expect mercy. You, who call yourself Hadron of Hastor, have been adjudged a spy of our most malignant enemy, Tul Axtar of Jahar, and as such I, Haj Osis, Jed of Tjanath, sentence you to die The Death. I have spoken." With an imperious gesture he signalled the guards to remove me.
"The laws of Tjanath are fair," declared Haj Osis, glaring at me, "and the Jed of Tjanath is compassionate. The enemies of Tjanath will face justice, but they shouldn’t expect mercy. You, who call yourself Hadron of Hastor, have been judged a spy for our most dangerous enemy, Tul Axtar of Jahar, and because of that, I, Haj Osis, Jed of Tjanath, sentence you to die The Death. I have spoken." With a commanding gesture, he signaled the guards to take me away.
There was no appeal. My doom was sealed, and in silence I turned and left the chamber, escorted by a guard of warriors, but for the honor of Helium I may say that my step was firm and my chin high.
There was no way out. My fate was sealed, and in silence I turned and left the room, guided by a group of warriors, but for the honor of Helium, I can say that my step was steady and my chin held high.
On my return to the pits I questioned the padwar in charge of my escort relative to Tavia, but if the fellow knew aught of her he refused to divulge it to me and presently I found myself again fettered in the gloomy dungeon by the side of Nur An of Jahar.
On my way back to the pits, I asked the officer in charge of my escort about Tavia, but if he knew anything about her, he wouldn’t share it with me. Soon enough, I found myself locked up again in the dark dungeon next to Nur An of Jahar.
"Well?" he asked.
"What's up?" he asked.
"The Death," I replied.
"The Death," I said.
He extended a manacled hand through the darkness and placed it upon one of mine. "I am sorry, my friend," he said.
He reached out with his hand in shackles through the darkness and touched one of mine. "I'm sorry, my friend," he said.
"Man has but one life," I replied; "if he is permitted to give it in a good cause, he should not complain."
"People only get one life," I replied; "if they're allowed to give it for a good cause, they shouldn't complain."
"You die for a woman," he said.
"You'd die for a woman," he said.
"I die for a woman of Helium," I corrected.
"I would die for a woman from Helium," I corrected.
"Perhaps we shall die together," he said.
"Maybe we'll die together," he said.
"What do you mean?"
"What do you mean?"
"While you were gone a messenger came from the majordomo of the palace advising me to make peace with my ancestors as I should die The Death in a short time."
"While you were away, a messenger from the palace's majordomo came to tell me to make peace with my ancestors since I would soon face death."
"I wonder what The Death is like," I said.
"I wonder what death is like," I said.
"I do not know," replied Nur An, "but from the awe-hushed tones in which they mention it, I imagine that it must be very terrible."
"I don't know," replied Nur An, "but from the hushed, awe-filled tones in which they talk about it, I imagine it must be really scary."
"Torture, do you imagine?" I asked.
"Torture, really?" I asked.
"Perhaps," he replied.
"Maybe," he replied.
"They will find that the men of Helium who know so well how to live, know also how to die," I said.
"They will find that the men of Helium, who know so well how to live, also know how to die," I said.
"I shall hope to render a good account of myself also," said Nur An. "I shall not give them the satisfaction of knowing that I suffer. Still, I wish I might know beforehand what it is like that I might better be prepared to meet it."
"I hope to do well too," said Nur An. "I won’t give them the satisfaction of knowing that I'm in pain. Still, I wish I could know in advance what it’s like so I could be better prepared for it."
"Let us not depress our thoughts by dwelling upon it," I suggested. "Let us rather take the part of men and consider only plans for thwarting our enemies and effecting our escape."
"Let's not bring ourselves down by thinking about it," I suggested. "Instead, let's act like men and focus on making plans to outsmart our enemies and find a way to escape."
"I am afraid that is hopeless," he said.
"I'm afraid that's hopeless," he said.
"I may answer that," I said, "in the famous words of John Carter: 'I still live!'"
"I can respond to that," I said, "with the famous words of John Carter: 'I’m still alive!'"
"The blind philosophy of absolute courage," he said admiringly, "but yet futile."
"The blind belief in absolute courage," he said admirably, "but still pointless."
"It served him well many a time," I insisted, "for it gave him the will to attempt the impossible and to succeed. We still live, Nur An; do not forget that—we still live!"
"It has helped him a lot over the years," I insisted, "because it gave him the determination to try the impossible and actually succeed. We’re still alive, Nur An; don’t forget that—we’re still alive!"
"Make the best of it while you can," said a gruff voice from the corridor, "for it will not long be true."
"Make the most of it while you can," said a gruff voice from the corridor, "because it won't last long."
The speaker entered our dungeon—a warrior of the guard, and with him was a single companion. I wondered how much of our conversation they had overheard, but I was soon reassured, for the very next words of the warrior that had first spoken revealed the fact that they had heard nothing but my assertion that we still lived.
The speaker walked into our dungeon—a guard warrior, and he had one companion with him. I was curious about how much they had heard from our conversation, but I quickly felt better, because the very next words from the warrior who first spoke revealed that they hadn’t heard anything except my claim that we were still alive.
"What did you mean by that," he asked, "'remember, Nur An, we still live'?"
"What did you mean by that," he asked, "'remember, Nur An, we’re still alive'?"
I pretended not to hear his question and he did not repeat it, but came directly to me and unlocked my fetters. As he turned to unlock those which held Nur An, he turned his back to me and I could not but note his inexcusable carelessness. His companion lolled at the doorway while the first warrior bent over the padlock that held the fetters of Nur An.
I acted like I didn't hear his question, and he didn't ask it again. Instead, he came right over to me and unlocked my restraints. When he turned to unlock the ones holding Nur An, he faced away from me, and I couldn't help but notice his reckless carelessness. His partner lounged in the doorway while the first warrior focused on the padlock securing Nur An's restraints.
My ancestors were kind to me; little had I expected such an opportunity as this, yet I waited—like a great banth ready to spring I waited until he should have released Nur An, and then, as the fetters fell away from my companion, I flung myself upon the back of the warrior. He sprawled forward upon his face on the stone flagging, falling heavily beneath my weight, and as he did so I snatched his dagger from its sheath and plunged it between his shoulder blades. With a single cry he died, but I had no fear that the echo of that cry would carry upward out of the gloomy pits of Tjanath to warn his fellows upon the level above.
My ancestors were good to me; I never expected an opportunity like this, yet I waited—like a huge predator ready to pounce I waited until he released Nur An, and then, as the chains fell off my friend, I leaped onto the warrior's back. He collapsed forward onto the stone floor, falling heavily under my weight, and as he did, I grabbed his dagger from its sheath and drove it into his back. With a single cry, he died, but I wasn’t worried that the echo of that cry would travel up from the dark pits of Tjanath to alert his friends above.
But the fellow's companion had seen and heard and with a bound he was across the dungeon, his long sword ready in his hand, and now I was to see the mettle of which Nur An was made.
But the guy's companion had seen and heard everything, and with a leap he was across the dungeon, his longsword ready in hand, and now I was about to see the true character that Nur An was made of.
The affair had occurred so quickly, like a bolt of lightning out of a clear sky, that any man might have been excused had he been momentarily stunned into inactivity by the momentousness of my act, but Nur An was guilty of no fatal delay. As though we had planned the thing together it seemed that he leaped forward the instant that I sprang for the warrior and ran to meet his companion. Barehanded, he faced the long sword of his antagonist.
The event happened so fast, like a lightning strike from a clear sky, that anyone could have been forgiven for being momentarily shocked into inaction by the seriousness of my action. However, Nur An was not guilty of any serious delay. It was as if we had coordinated the move; he seemed to jump into action the moment I went for the warrior and ran to confront his partner. Unarmed, he stood up to the long sword of his opponent.
The gloom of the dungeon reduced the advantage of the armed man. He saw a figure leaping to meet his attack and in the excitement of the moment and in the dark of the cell, he did not know that Nur An was unarmed. He hesitated, paused and stepped back to receive the impetuous attack coming out of the darkness, and in that instant I had whipped the long sword of the fallen warrior from its scabbard and was charging the fellow at a slightly different angle from Nur An.
The darkness of the dungeon took away the advantage of the armed man. He saw a figure leaping to confront him, and in the heat of the moment, he didn’t realize that Nur An was unarmed. He hesitated, paused, and stepped back to brace for the reckless attack emerging from the shadows, and in that split second, I had drawn the long sword of the fallen warrior from its sheath and was rushing at the guy from a slightly different angle than Nur An.
An instant later we were engaged and I found the fellow no mean swordsman; yet from the instant that our blades crossed I knew that I was his master and he must soon have realized it, too, for he fell back, fully on the defensive, evidently bent upon escaping to the corridor. This, however, I was determined not to permit and so I pressed him so closely that he dared not turn to run; nor did he call for help, and this, I guess, was because he realized the futility of so doing.
An instant later, we were fighting, and I quickly realized he was a decent swordsman. However, from the moment our blades clashed, I knew I had the upper hand, and he must have figured it out too, because he fell back, completely on the defensive, clearly trying to escape to the corridor. I was determined not to let that happen, so I cornered him closely, forcing him to stay and fight instead of running away. He didn’t call for help, probably because he understood it would be pointless.
With the desperation of caged animals Nur An and I were fighting for our lives. There could be no question here of the scrupulous observance of the niceties of combat. It was his life or ours. Realizing this, Nur An snatched the short sword from the corpse of the fallen warrior and an instant later the second man was lying in a pool of his own blood.
With the urgency of trapped animals, Nur An and I were fighting for our lives. There was no room for following the rules of combat here. It was either his life or ours. Realizing this, Nur An grabbed the short sword from the body of the fallen warrior, and in an instant, the second man was lying in a pool of his own blood.
"And now what?" asked Nur An.
"And now what?" asked Nur An.
"Are you familiar with the palace?" I asked.
"Do you know about the palace?" I asked.
"No," he replied.
"No," he said.
"Then we must depend upon what little I was able to glean from my observation of it," I said. "Let us get into the harnesses of these two men at once. Perhaps they will offer a sufficient disguise to permit us to reach one of the upper levels at least, for without an intimate knowledge of the pits it is useless for us to try to seek escape below ground."
"Then we have to rely on what little I managed to observe," I said. "Let’s put on the harnesses of these two guys right away. Maybe they’ll provide enough of a disguise to help us get to at least one of the upper levels, because trying to escape underground is pointless without a deep understanding of the pits."
"You are right," he said, and a few moments later we emerged into the corridors, to all intents and purposes, two warriors of the guard of Haj Osis, Jed of Tjanath. Believing that up to a certain point boldness of demeanor would be our best safeguard against detection, I led the way toward the ground level of the palace without attempting in any way to resort to stealth or secrecy.
"You’re right," he said, and a few moments later we stepped out into the corridors, effectively two warriors of the guard of Haj Osis, Jed of Tjanath. Thinking that a certain level of confidence would be our best protection against being noticed, I took the lead toward the ground level of the palace without trying to be stealthy or secretive.
"There are many warriors at the main entrance of the palace," I told Nur An, "and without knowing something of the regulations governing the coming and going of the inmates of the building, it would be suicidal to attempt to reach the avenue beyond the palace by that route."
"There are a lot of guards at the main entrance of the palace," I told Nur An, "and without knowing the rules about who can come and go in the building, it would be dangerous to try to get to the street beyond the palace this way."
"What do you suggest then?" he asked.
"What do you recommend then?" he asked.
"The ground level of the palace is a busy place, people are coming and going constantly through the corridors. Doubtless some of the upper levels are less frequented. Let us therefore seek a hiding place higher up and from the vantage point of some balcony we may be able to work out a feasible plan of escape."
"The ground level of the palace is busy, with people constantly coming and going through the corridors. Surely, some of the upper levels are less crowded. So, let’s find a hiding spot higher up, and from the viewpoint of a balcony, we might be able to come up with a workable escape plan."
"Good!" he said. "Lead on!"
"Awesome!" he said. "Go ahead!"
Ascending the winding ramp from the lower pits, we passed two levels before we reached the ground level of the palace, without meeting a single person, but the instant that we emerged upon the ground level we saw people everywhere; officers, courtiers, warriors, slaves and merchants moved to and fro upon their various duties or in pursuit of the business that had brought them to the palace, but their very numbers proved a safeguard for us.
Ascending the winding ramp from the lower pits, we passed two levels before reaching the ground level of the palace, without encountering anyone. But the moment we stepped onto the ground level, we saw people everywhere; officers, courtiers, warriors, servants, and merchants were bustling around, fulfilling their various responsibilities or attending to the business that had brought them to the palace. However, their sheer numbers offered us protection.
Upon the side of the corridor opposite from the point at which we entered it lay an arched entrance to another ramp running upward. Without an instant's hesitation I crossed through the throng of people, and, with Nur An at my side, passed beneath the arch and entered the ascending ramp.
Upon the side of the corridor opposite from where we entered was an arched doorway leading to another ramp going up. Without a second thought, I pushed through the crowd, and, with Nur An beside me, went under the arch and stepped onto the ascending ramp.
Scarcely had we started upward when we met a young officer descending. He accorded us scarcely a glance as we passed and I breathed more easily as I realized that our disguises did, in fact, disguise us.
Scarcely had we started up when we met a young officer coming down. He barely glanced at us as we passed, and I felt relieved as I realized that our disguises really did conceal us.
There were fewer people on the second level of the palace, but yet far too many to suit me and so we continued on upward to the third level, the corridors of which we found almost deserted.
There were fewer people on the second level of the palace, but still way too many for my liking, so we moved up to the third level, where the corridors were almost empty.
Near the mouth of the ramp lay the intersection of two main corridors. Here we hesitated for an instant to reconnoiter. There were people approaching from both directions along the corridor into which we had emerged, but in one direction the transverse corridor seemed deserted and we quickly entered it. It was a very long corridor, apparently extending the full length of the palace. It was flanked at intervals upon both sides by doorways, the doors to some of which were open, while others were closed or ajar. Through some of the open doorways we saw people, while the apartments revealed through others appeared vacant. The location of these we noted carefully as we moved slowly along, carefully observing every detail that might later prove of value to us.
Near the end of the ramp was the intersection of two main hallways. We paused for a moment to survey the area. People were coming from both directions along the hallway we had entered, but one way led into a side corridor that seemed empty, so we quickly went into it. This corridor was very long, clearly stretching the entire length of the palace. Along both sides, there were doorways at intervals, some with doors wide open and others either shut or slightly ajar. Through some of the open doorways, we could see people, while the rooms visible through the others appeared empty. We took careful note of their locations as we moved slowly along, paying close attention to every detail that might be useful to us later.
We had traversed about two-thirds of this long corridor when a man stepped into it from a doorway a couple of hundred feet ahead of us. He was an officer, apparently a padwar of the guard. He halted in the middle of the corridor as a file of warriors emerged from the same doorway, and, forming in a column of twos, marched in our direction, the officer bringing up the rear.
We had walked about two-thirds down this long hallway when a man stepped out from a doorway a couple of hundred feet in front of us. He was an officer, probably a lower-ranking guard. He stopped in the middle of the hallway as a line of soldiers came out of the same doorway, forming in pairs and marching toward us, with the officer following at the back.
Here was a test for our disguises that I did not care to risk. There was an open doorway at our left; beyond it I could see no one. "Come!" I said to Nur An, and without accelerating our speed we walked nonchalantly into the chamber, and as Nur An crossed the threshold, I closed the door behind him and as I did so I saw a young woman standing at the opposite side of the apartment looking squarely at us.
Here was a challenge for our disguises that I wasn’t willing to take. There was an open doorway to our left; I couldn’t see anyone beyond it. “Come on!” I said to Nur An, and without speeding up, we casually walked into the room. As Nur An stepped over the threshold, I shut the door behind him, and when I did, I noticed a young woman standing at the far side of the room, staring right at us.
"What do you here, warriors?" she demanded.
"What are you doing here, warriors?" she demanded.
Here, indeed, was an embarrassing situation. In the corridor without I could hear the clank of the accoutrements of the approaching warriors and I knew that the girl must hear it, too. If I did aught to arouse her suspicion, she had but to call for help, and how might I allay her suspicion when I had not the faintest conception of what might pass for a valid excuse for the presence of two warriors in this particular apartment, which for all I knew, might be the apartment of a princess of the royal house, to enter which without permission might easily mean death to a common warrior. I thought quickly, or perhaps I did not think at all; often we act rightly upon impulse and then credit the result to super-intelligence.
Here was a really awkward situation. In the hallway outside, I could hear the clanking of the warriors' gear as they approached, and I knew the girl could hear it, too. If I did anything to raise her suspicion, she could just call for help, and how was I supposed to reassure her when I had no idea how to explain why two warriors were in this specific room, which could easily belong to a princess of the royal family? Entering without permission could easily lead to death for a regular warrior. I thought quickly, or maybe I just acted on instinct; often we make the right choice on impulse and then attribute the outcome to superior intelligence.
"We have come for the girl," I stated brusquely. "Where is she?"
"We're here for the girl," I said bluntly. "Where is she?"
"What girl?" demanded the young woman in surprise.
"What girl?" the young woman asked in surprise.
"The prisoner, of course," I replied.
"The prisoner, of course," I said.
"The prisoner?" she looked more puzzled than before.
"The prisoner?" she looked even more confused than before.
"Of course," said Nur An, "the prisoner. Where is she?" and I almost smiled for I knew that Nur An had not the faintest idea of what was in my mind.
"Of course," said Nur An, "the prisoner. Where is she?" I almost smiled because I knew that Nur An had no clue what I was thinking.
"There is no prisoner here," said the young woman. "These are the apartments of the infant son of Haj Osis."
"There’s no prisoner here," said the young woman. "These are the apartments of Haj Osis's infant son."
"The fool misdirected us," I said. "We are sorry that we intruded. We were sent to fetch the girl, Tavia, who is a prisoner in the palace."
"The idiot led us the wrong way," I said. "We apologize for barging in. We were sent to get the girl, Tavia, who is being held in the palace."
It was only a guess. I did not know that Tavia was a prisoner, but after the treatment that had been accorded me I surmised as much.
It was just a guess. I didn't know that Tavia was a prisoner, but after the way I had been treated, I figured as much.
"She is not here," said the young woman, "and as for you, you had better leave these apartments at once for if you are discovered here it will go ill with you."
"She’s not here," said the young woman, "and you should really leave this place immediately because if you’re found here, things will go badly for you."
Nur An, who was standing beside me, had been looking at the young woman intently. He stepped forward now, closer to her.
Nur An, who was standing next to me, had been staring at the young woman intently. He took a step closer to her now.
"By my first ancestor," he exclaimed in a low voice, "it is Phao!"
"By my first ancestor," he said softly, "it's Phao!"
The girl stepped back, her eyes wide with surprise and then slowly recognition dawned within them. "Nur An!" she exclaimed.
The girl stepped back, her eyes wide with surprise, and then slowly, realization set in. "Nur An!" she exclaimed.
Nur An came close to the girl and took her hand in his. "All these years, Phao, I have thought that you were dead," he said. "When the ship returned the captain reported that you and a number of others were killed."
Nur An came close to the girl and took her hand in his. "All these years, Phao, I've thought you were dead," he said. "When the ship returned, the captain reported that you and several others were killed."
"He lied," said the girl. "He sold us into slavery here in Tjanath; but you, Nur An, what are you doing here in the harness of Tjanath?"
"He lied," said the girl. "He sold us into slavery here in Tjanath; but you, Nur An, why are you here in the servitude of Tjanath?"
"I am a prisoner," replied my companion, "as is this warrior also. We have been confined in the pits beneath the palace and today we were to have died The Death, but we killed the two warriors who were sent to fetch us and now we are trying to find our way out of the palace."
"I’m a prisoner," my companion replied, "and so is this warrior. We’ve been locked up in the pits beneath the palace, and today we were supposed to die. But we managed to kill the two warriors who came to get us, and now we’re trying to find our way out of the palace."
"Then you are not looking for the girl, Tavia?" she asked.
"Then you’re not looking for the girl, Tavia?" she asked.
"Yes," I said, "we are looking for her, too. She was made a prisoner at the same time that I was."
"Yes," I said, "we're looking for her, too. She was captured at the same time I was."
"Perhaps I can help you," said Phao; "perhaps," she added wistfully, "we may all escape together."
"Maybe I can help you," Phao said; "maybe," she added with a touch of longing, "we can all get away together."
"I shall not escape without you, Phao," said Nur An.
"I can't escape without you, Phao," said Nur An.
"My ancestors have been good to me at last," said the girl.
"My ancestors have finally been good to me," said the girl.
"Where is Tavia?" I asked.
"Where's Tavia?" I asked.
"She is in the East Tower," replied Phao.
"She's in the East Tower," Phao replied.
"Can you lead us there, or tell us how we may reach it?" I asked.
"Can you show us how to get there, or tell us the way?" I asked.
"It would do no good to lead you to it," she replied, "as the door is locked and guards stand before it. But there is another way."
"It won't help to take you there," she said, "since the door is locked and there are guards in front of it. But there's another way."
"And that?" I asked.
"And that?" I said.
"I know where the keys are," she said, "and I know other things that will prove helpful."
"I know where the keys are," she said, "and I know other things that will be useful."
"May our ancestors protect and reward you, Phao," I said. "And now tell me where I may find the keys."
"May our ancestors watch over you and bless you, Phao," I said. "Now, please tell me where I can find the keys."
"I shall have to lead you to the place myself," she replied, "but we shall stand a better chance to succeed if there are not too many of us. I, therefore, suggest that Nur An remain here. I shall place him in hiding where he will not be found. I will then lead you to the prisoner, and, if possible, we will make our way back to this apartment. I am in charge here. Only at regular hours, twice a day, night and morning, does any other visit the apartment of the little prince. Here I can hide you and feed you for a long time and perhaps eventually we shall be able to evolve some feasible plan for escape."
"I'll have to take you to the place myself," she said, "but we have a better chance of succeeding if there aren't too many of us. So, I suggest Nur An stays here. I’ll hide him where he won't be found. Then I'll lead you to the prisoner, and if we can, we'll make our way back to this apartment. I'm in charge here. Only at scheduled times, twice a day, morning and night, does anyone else visit the little prince's apartment. Here, I can hide you and feed you for a long time, and hopefully, we can come up with a solid escape plan."
"We are in your hands, Phao," said Nur An. "If there is to be fighting, though, I should like to accompany Hadron."
"We're in your hands, Phao," said Nur An. "But if there's going to be a fight, I want to go with Hadron."
"If we succeed there will be no fighting," replied the girl. She stepped quickly across the room to a door, which she opened, revealing a large closet. "Here, Nur An," she said, "is where you must remain until we return. There is no reason why anyone should open this door, and in so far as I know, it never has been opened since I have occupied these quarters, except by me."
"If we succeed, there won't be any fighting," the girl replied. She quickly walked across the room to a door, which she opened to reveal a large closet. "Here, Nur An," she said, "is where you need to stay until we come back. There's no reason for anyone to open this door, and as far as I know, it hasn't been opened since I've been here, except by me."
"I do not like the idea of hiding," said Nur An with a grimace, "but—I have had to do many things recently that I did not like," and without more words he crossed the apartment and entered the closet. Their eyes met for an instant before Phao closed the door, and I read in the depth of both that which made me wonder, remembering as I did the story that Nur An had told me of the other woman whom Tul Axtar had stolen from him. But such matters were no concern of mine, nor had they any bearing upon the business at hand.
"I really don’t like the idea of hiding," said Nur An, making a face, "but—I’ve had to do a lot of things lately that I didn’t like," and without saying anything more, he crossed the apartment and went into the closet. Their eyes met for a moment before Phao closed the door, and I saw in both of their expressions something that made me curious, recalling the story Nur An had shared with me about the other woman that Tul Axtar had taken from him. But those issues weren't my concern, nor did they affect the task at hand.
"Here is my plan, warrior," said Phao as she returned to my side. "When you entered this apartment you came saying that you were looking for the prisoner, Tavia. Although she was not here, I believed you. We will go, therefore, to Yo Seno, the keeper of the keys, and you will tell him the same story that you have been sent to fetch the prisoner, Tavia. If Yo Seno believes you, all will be well, for he will go himself and release the prisoner, turning her over to you."
"Here’s my plan, warrior," Phao said as she came back to my side. "When you entered this apartment, you said you were looking for the prisoner, Tavia. Even though she wasn’t here, I believed you. So we’re going to Yo Seno, the keeper of the keys, and you’ll tell him the same story—that you were sent to get the prisoner, Tavia. If Yo Seno believes you, everything will be fine because he’ll go and release her, handing her over to you."
"And if he does not believe me?" I asked.
"And what if he doesn't believe me?" I asked.
"He is a beast," she said, "who is better dead than alive. Therefore you will know what to do."
"He's a monster," she said, "who's better off dead than alive. So you'll know what to do."
"I understand," I said. "Lead the way."
"I get it," I said. "Show me the way."
The office of Yo Seno, the keeper of the keys, was upon the fourth level of the palace, almost directly above the quarters of the infant prince. At the doorway Phao halted, and drawing my ear down to her lips, whispered her final instructions. "I shall enter first," she said, "upon some trivial errand. A moment later you may enter, but pay no attention to me. It must not appear that we have come together."
The office of Yo Seno, the keeper of the keys, was on the fourth floor of the palace, almost directly above the baby prince's rooms. At the doorway, Phao stopped and leaned in to whisper her final instructions. "I'll go in first," she said, "on some minor errand. A moment later, you can come in, but don't pay any attention to me. It can't look like we've arrived together."
"I understand," I said, and walked a few paces along the corridor so that I should not be in sight when the door opened. She told me afterward that she asked Yo Seno to have a new key made for one of the numerous doors in the apartment of the little prince.
"I get it," I said, and walked a few steps down the hallway to make sure I wasn't visible when the door opened. She later told me that she asked Yo Seno to get a new key made for one of the many doors in the little prince's apartment.
I waited but a moment, and then I, too, entered the apartment. It was a gloomy room without windows. Upon its walls hung keys of every imaginable size and shape. Behind a large desk sat a coarse looking man, who looked up quickly and scowled at the interruption as I entered.
I waited just a moment, and then I also stepped into the apartment. It was a dark room with no windows. Keys of every size and shape hung on its walls. Behind a large desk sat a rough-looking man, who glanced up quickly and scowled at me for interrupting as I came in.
"Well?" he demanded.
"Well?" he asked.
"I have come for the woman, Tavia," I said, "the prisoner from Jahar."
"I've come for the woman, Tavia," I said, "the prisoner from Jahar."
"Who sent you? What do you want of her?" he demanded.
"Who sent you? What do you want from her?" he asked.
"I have orders to bring her to Haj Osis," I replied.
"I've been told to bring her to Haj Osis," I replied.
He looked at me suspiciously. "You bring a written order?" he asked.
He looked at me with suspicion. "Do you have a written order?" he asked.
"Of course not," I replied, "it is not necessary. She is not to be taken out of the palace; merely from one apartment to another."
"Of course not," I replied, "that’s not necessary. She just needs to be moved from one room to another in the palace."
"I must have a written order," he snapped.
"I need a written order," he said sharply.
"Haj Osis will not be pleased," I said, "when he learns that you have refused to obey his command."
"Haj Osis won't be happy," I said, "when he finds out that you didn't follow his orders."
"I am not refusing," said Yo Seno. "Do not dare to say that I refuse. I cannot turn a prisoner over without a written order. Show me your authority and I will give you the keys."
"I’m not refusing," said Yo Seno. "Don’t even think about saying that I am. I can’t hand over a prisoner without a written order. Show me your authority, and I’ll give you the keys."
I saw that the plan had failed; other measures must be taken. I whipped out my long sword. "Here is my authority!" I exclaimed, leaping toward him.
I saw that the plan had failed; other steps needed to be taken. I pulled out my long sword. "This is my authority!" I shouted, jumping toward him.
With an oath he drew his own sword, but instead of facing me with it he stepped quickly back, the desk still between us and, turning, struck a copper gong heavily with the flat of his blade.
With an oath, he pulled out his sword, but instead of facing me with it, he quickly stepped back, keeping the desk between us, and then he turned and hit a copper gong hard with the flat side of his blade.
As I rushed toward him I heard the sound of hurrying feet and the clank of metal from an adjoining room. Yo Seno, still backing away, sneered sardonically, and then the lights went out and the windowless room was plunged into darkness. Soft fingers grasped my left hand and a low voice whispered in my ear, "Come with me."
As I rushed toward him, I heard hurried footsteps and the sound of metal clanking from a nearby room. Yo Seno, still backing away, sneered sarcastically, and then the lights went out, plunging the windowless room into darkness. Gentle fingers grabbed my left hand, and a quiet voice whispered in my ear, "Come with me."
Quickly I was drawn to one side and through a narrow aperture just as a door upon the opposite side of the chamber was flung open, revealing the forms of half a dozen warriors silhouetted against the light from the room behind them. Then the door closed directly in front of my face and I was again in utter darkness, but Phao's fingers still grasped my hand.
Quickly, I was pulled to one side and through a narrow opening just as a door on the opposite side of the room swung open, revealing the figures of half a dozen warriors outlined against the light from the room behind them. Then the door shut right in front of me, plunging me back into complete darkness, but Phao's fingers were still holding my hand.
"Silence!" a soft voice whispered.
"Shh!" a soft voice whispered.
From beyond the panels I heard angry and excited voices. Above the others one voice rose in tones of authority. "What is wrong here?"
From beyond the panels, I heard angry and excited voices. Above the others, one voice stood out with authority. "What’s going on here?"
There were muttered exclamations and curses as men bumped against pieces of furniture and ran into one another.
There were soft exclamations and curses as men collided with furniture and bumped into each other.
"Give us a light," cried a voice, and a moment later, "That is better."
"Can someone light this?" shouted a voice, and a moment later, "That's much better."
"Where is Yo Seno? Oh, there you are, you fat rascal. What is amiss?"
"Where are you, Yo Seno? Oh, there you are, you chubby rascal. What’s wrong?"
"By Issus! he is gone." The voice was that of Yo Seno.
"By Issus! He's gone." The voice belonged to Yo Seno.
"Who is gone?" demanded the other voice. "Why did you summon us?"
"Who’s missing?" the other voice asked. "Why did you call us?"
"I was attacked by a warrior," explained Yo Seno, "who came demanding the key to the apartment where Haj Osis keeps the daughter of—." I could not hear the rest of the sentence.
"I was attacked by a warrior," Yo Seno explained, "who showed up demanding the key to the apartment where Haj Osis is keeping the daughter of—." I couldn’t hear the rest of the sentence.
"Well, where is the man?" demanded the other.
"Well, where's the guy?" asked the other.
"He is gone—and the key, too. The key is gone," Yo Seno's voice rose almost to a wail.
"He’s gone—and the key, too. The key is gone," Yo Seno's voice rose almost to a wail.
"Quick, then, to the apartment where the girl is kept," cried the first speaker, doubtless the officer of the guard, and almost at once I heard them hasten from the apartment.
"Quick, then, to the apartment where the girl is kept," shouted the first speaker, probably the officer in charge, and almost immediately I heard them rush out of the apartment.
The girl at my side moved a little and I heard a low laugh. "They will not find the key," she said.
The girl next to me shifted slightly, and I heard a soft laugh. "They won’t find the key," she said.
"Why?" I asked.
"Why?" I asked.
"Because I have it," she replied.
"Because I have it," she said.
"Little good it will do us," I said ruefully. "They will keep the door well guarded now and we cannot use the key."
"That won't help us much," I said with a sigh. "They'll keep the door locked up tight now and we can't use the key."
Phao laughed again. "We do not need the key," she said. "I took it to throw them off the track. They will watch the door while we enter elsewhere."
Phao laughed again. "We don't need the key," she said. "I took it to throw them off the scent. They'll be watching the door while we go in somewhere else."
"I do not understand," I said.
"I don't get it," I said.
"This corridor leads between the partitions to the room where the prisoner is kept. I know that because, when I was a prisoner in that room, Yo Seno came thus to visit me. He is a beast. I hope he has not visited this girl—I hope it for your sake, if you love her."
"This corridor goes between the partitions to the room where the prisoner is held. I know this because, when I was a prisoner in that room, Yo Seno came to visit me like this. He’s a monster. I hope he hasn’t visited this girl—I hope that for your sake, if you love her."
"I do not love her," I said. "She is only a friend." But I scarcely knew what I was saying, the words seemed to come mechanically for I was in the grip of such an emotion as I never before had experienced or endured. It had seized me the instant that Phao had suggested that Yo Seno might have visited Tavia through this secret corridor. I experienced a sensation that was almost akin to a convulsion—a sensation that left me a changed man. Before, I could have killed Yo Seno with my sword and been glad; now I wanted to tear him to pieces; I wanted to mutilate him and make him suffer. Never before in my life had I experienced such a bestial desire. It was hideous, and yet I gloated in its possession.
"I don’t love her," I said. "She’s just a friend." But I barely knew what I was saying; the words felt automatic because I was overwhelmed by emotions I had never felt before. It hit me the moment Phao suggested that Yo Seno might have seen Tavia through this secret corridor. I felt a jolt that was almost like a seizure—a feeling that completely changed me. Before, I could have killed Yo Seno with my sword and felt fine about it; now I wanted to rip him apart; I wanted to mutilate him and make him suffer. Never before had I felt such a primal urge. It was dreadful, yet I reveled in it.
"What is the matter?" exclaimed Phao. "I thought I felt you tremble then."
"What’s wrong?" exclaimed Phao. "I thought I felt you shiver just now."
"I trembled," I said.
"I shivered," I said.
"For what?" she asked.
"For what?" she asked.
"For Yo Seno," I replied, "but let us hasten. If this corridor leads to the apartment where Tavia is in prison, I cannot reach her too soon, for when Haj Osis learns that the key has been stolen he will have her removed to another prison."
"For Yo Seno," I replied, "but let's hurry. If this hallway leads to the apartment where Tavia is being held, I need to get to her as quickly as possible, because when Haj Osis finds out the key is missing, he'll transfer her to another prison."
"He will not learn it if Yo Seno and the padwar of the guard can prevent," said Phao, "for if this reached the ears of Haj Osis it might easily cost them both their lives. They will wait for you to come that they may kill you and get the key, but they will wait outside the prison door and you will not come that way."
"He won't learn it if Yo Seno and the guard's padwar can help it," said Phao, "because if Haj Osis hears about this, it could easily cost them both their lives. They'll wait for you to show up so they can kill you and get the key, but they'll be waiting outside the prison door, and you won't come that way."
As she spoke she started to walk along the narrow, dark corridor, leading me by the hand behind her. It was slow work for Phao had to grope her way slowly because the corridor turned sharply at right angles as it followed the partitions of the apartments between which it passed, and there were numerous stairways that led up over doorways and finally a ladder to the level above.
As she talked, she began to walk down the narrow, dark hallway, holding my hand as she went. It was a slow process because Phao had to feel her way cautiously; the hallway turned sharply at right angles as it followed the walls of the apartments, and there were several stairways leading up over doorways, eventually reaching a ladder to the floor above.
Presently she halted. "We are there," she whispered, "but we must listen first to make sure that no one has entered the apartment with the prisoner."
Presently, she stopped. "We're here," she whispered, "but we need to listen first to make sure that no one has entered the apartment with the prisoner."
I could see absolutely nothing in the darkness, and how Phao knew that she had reached her destination, I could not guess.
I couldn't see anything in the dark, and I had no idea how Phao knew she had arrived at her destination.
"It is all right," she said presently, and simultaneously she pushed a wooden panel ajar and in the opening I saw a portion of the interior of a circular apartment with narrow windows heavily barred. Opposite the opening, upon a pile of sleeping silks and furs, I saw a woman reclining. Only a bare shoulder, a tiny ear and a head of tousled hair were visible. At the first glance I knew that they were Tavia's.
"It’s okay," she said after a moment, and at the same time, she pushed a wooden panel aside. In the opening, I saw part of a round room with narrow, heavily barred windows. Across from the opening, on a pile of sleeping silks and furs, there was a woman lying down. Only a bare shoulder, a small ear, and a head of messy hair were visible. At first glance, I recognized that they belonged to Tavia.
As we stepped into the apartment Phao closed the panel behind us. Attracted by the sound of our entrance, quietly executed though it was, Tavia sat up and looked at us and then, as she recognized me, sprang to her feet. Her eyes were wide with surprise and there was an exclamation upon her lips, which I silenced by a warning forefinger placed against my own. I crossed the apartment toward her, and she came to meet me, almost running. As I looked into her eyes I saw an expression there that I have never seen in the eyes of any other woman—at least not for me—and if I had ever doubted Tavia's friendship, such a doubt would have vanished in that instant, but I had not doubted it and I was only surprised now to realize the depth of it. Had Sanoma Tora ever looked at me like that I should have read love in the expression, but I had never spoken of love to Tavia and so I knew that it was only friendship that she felt. I had always been too much engrossed in my profession to make any close friendships so that I had never realized until that moment what a wonderful thing friendship might be.
As we walked into the apartment, Phao closed the door behind us. Drawn by the noise of our arrival, though we tried to be quiet, Tavia sat up and looked at us. When she recognized me, she jumped to her feet. Her eyes were wide with surprise, and she was about to exclaim, but I silenced her with a finger pressed to my lips. I moved across the apartment toward her, and she rushed to meet me. As I looked into her eyes, I saw an expression I've never seen in any other woman—at least not for me. If I'd ever doubted Tavia's friendship, that doubt would have faded in an instant, but I never really doubted it; I was just surprised by how deep it really was. If Sanoma Tora had ever looked at me like that, I would have recognized love in her gaze, but I had never talked about love with Tavia, so I knew she only felt friendship. I had always been too absorbed in my career to form close friendships, so I hadn’t realized until that moment what a truly amazing thing friendship could be.
As we met in the center of the room her eyes, moist with tears, were upturned to mine. "Hadron," she whispered, her voice husky with emotion, and then I put my arm about her slender shoulders and drew her to me and something that was quite beyond my volition impelled me to kiss her upon the forehead. Instantly she disengaged herself and I feared that she had misunderstood that impulsive kiss of friendship, but her next words reassured me.
As we stood in the middle of the room, her eyes, glistening with tears, were focused on mine. "Hadron," she whispered, her voice thick with emotion. I wrapped my arm around her thin shoulders and pulled her close, and something beyond my control made me kiss her on the forehead. She immediately stepped back, and I worried she had misinterpreted that spontaneous kiss of friendship, but her next words calmed my fears.
"I thought never to see you again, Hadron of Hastor," she said. "I feared that they had killed you. How comes it that you are here and in the metal of a warrior of Tjanath?"
"I never thought I'd see you again, Hadron of Hastor," she said. "I was worried they had killed you. How is it that you’re here and wearing the armor of a Tjanath warrior?"
I told her briefly of what had occurred to me since we had been separated and of how I had temporarily, at least, escaped The Death. She asked me what The Death was, but I could not tell her.
I quickly explained what had happened to me since we were apart and how I had managed to escape The Death, at least for now. She asked me what The Death was, but I couldn't explain it to her.
"It is very horrible," said Phao.
"It's so bad," said Phao.
"What is it?" I asked.
"What's that?" I asked.
"I do not know," replied the girl, "only that it is horrible. There is a deep pit, some say a bottomless pit, beneath the lower pits of the palace; horrible noises—groans and moans arise perpetually from it and into this pit those that are to die The Death are cast, but in such a way that the fall will not kill them. They must reach the bottom alive to endure all the horrors of The Death that await them there. That the torture is almost interminable is evidenced by the fact that the moans and groans of the victims never cease, no matter how long a period may have elapsed between executions."
"I don’t know," the girl replied, "only that it’s terrible. There’s a deep pit, some say a bottomless pit, beneath the lower pits of the palace; horrible noises—groans and moans come up from it constantly, and those who are to face The Death are thrown into this pit, but in a way that the fall won’t kill them. They must reach the bottom alive to endure all the horrors of The Death that await them there. The torture seems almost endless, as the moans and groans of the victims never stop, no matter how long it’s been since the last execution."
"And you have escaped it," exclaimed Tavia. "My prayers have been answered. For days and nights have I been praying to my ancestors that you might be spared. Now if you can but escape this hateful place. Have you a plan?"
"And you've gotten away from it," Tavia shouted. "My prayers have been answered. For days and nights, I've been praying to my ancestors that you would be safe. Now, if you can just get out of this awful place. Do you have a plan?"
"We have a plan that with the help of Phao here may prove successful. Nur An, of whom I told you, is hiding in a closet in one of the apartments of the little prince. We shall return to that apartment at the first opportunity and there Phao will hide all three of us until some opportunity for escape presents itself."
"We have a plan that, with Phao's help, might actually work. Nur An, the person I mentioned, is hiding in a closet in one of the little prince's apartments. We'll go back to that apartment as soon as we can, and there, Phao will hide all three of us until we find a chance to escape."
"And we should lose no more time in returning," said Phao. "Come, let us go at once."
"And we shouldn't waste any more time getting back," said Phao. "Come on, let's go right now."
As we turned toward the panel through which we had entered I saw that it was ajar, though I was confident that Phao had closed it after us when we entered and simultaneously I could have sworn that I saw an eye glued to the narrow crack, as though someone watched us from the dark interior of the secret corridor.
As we turned toward the panel we had come in through, I noticed it was slightly open, even though I was sure that Phao had shut it behind us when we entered. At the same time, I could have sworn I saw an eye pressed against the narrow crack, as if someone was watching us from the shadowy depths of the secret corridor.
In a single bound I was across the room and had drawn the panel aside. My sword was ready in my hand, but there was no one in the corridor beyond.
In one quick leap, I crossed the room and pulled the panel aside. My sword was ready in my hand, but there was nobody in the corridor outside.
VII
VII
THE DEATH
THE PASSING
With Phao in the lead and Tavia between us, we traversed the dark corridor back toward the apartment of Yo Seno. When we reached the panel marking the end of our journey, Phao halted and together we listened intently for any sound that might evidence the presence of an occupant in the room beyond. All was silent as the tomb.
With Phao leading the way and Tavia in between us, we walked down the dark hallway back to Yo Seno's apartment. When we got to the panel marking the end of our journey, Phao stopped, and we all listened carefully for any sound that might indicate someone was in the room beyond. It was completely silent.
"I believe," said Phao, "that it will be safer if you and Tavia remain here until night. I shall return to my apartment and go about my duties in the usual manner and after the palace has quieted down, these levels will be almost deserted; then I can come and get you with far less danger of detection than were I to take you to the apartment now."
"I think," said Phao, "it would be safer for you and Tavia to stay here until night. I’ll head back to my apartment and continue with my usual tasks. Once the palace quiets down, these floors will be nearly empty; then I can come back and get you with a much lower risk of being caught than if I took you to the apartment now."
We agreed that her plan was a good one, and bidding us a temporary farewell, she opened the panel sufficiently to permit her to survey the apartment beyond. It was quite empty. She stepped from the corridor, closing the panel behind her, and once again Tavia and I were plunged into darkness.
We all agreed that her plan was a solid one, and after saying a temporary goodbye to us, she opened the panel enough to see inside the apartment. It was completely empty. She stepped out of the corridor, closing the panel behind her, and once again Tavia and I were thrown back into darkness.
The long hours of our wait in the darkness of the corridor should have seemed interminable, but they did not. We made ourselves as comfortable as possible upon the floor, our backs against one of the walls, and, leaning close together so that we might converse in low whispers, we found more entertainment than I should have guessed possible, both in our conversation and in the long silences that broke it, so that it really did not seem a long time at all before the panel was swung open and we saw Phao in the subdued light of the apartment beyond. She motioned us to follow her, and, in silence, we obeyed. The corridor beyond the chamber of Yo Seno was deserted, as also was the ramp leading to the level below and the corridor upon which it opened. Fortune seemed to favor us at every step and there was a prayer of thanksgiving upon my lips as Phao pushed open the door leading into the apartment of the prince and motioned us to enter.
The long wait in the dark corridor should have felt endless, but it didn’t. We made ourselves as comfortable as we could on the floor, leaning against one of the walls, and huddling close together to talk in soft whispers. We found more entertainment than I would have expected, both in our conversations and in the long silences in between, so it really didn’t feel like we waited long at all before the panel swung open and we saw Phao in the dim light of the apartment beyond. She gestured for us to follow her, and silently, we did. The corridor beyond Yo Seno’s chamber was empty, as was the ramp leading down to the level below and the corridor it opened into. Luck seemed to be on our side at every turn, and there was a prayer of gratitude on my lips as Phao opened the door to the prince's apartment and signaled for us to enter.
But at the same instant my heart sank within me, for, as I entered the apartment with Tavia, I saw warriors standing upon either side of the room awaiting us. With an exclamation of warning I drew Tavia behind me and backed quickly toward the door, but as I did so I heard a rush of feet and the clank of accoutrements in the corridor behind me, and, casting a quick glance over my shoulder, I saw other warriors running from the doorway of an apartment upon the opposite side of the corridor.
But at that exact moment, my heart dropped, because as I entered the room with Tavia, I saw warriors standing on either side of the space waiting for us. Letting out a warning shout, I pulled Tavia behind me and quickly backed toward the door. But as I did that, I heard a rush of footsteps and the sound of armor clanking in the hallway behind me. Glancing over my shoulder, I saw more warriors charging out from the doorway of a room on the opposite side of the corridor.
We were surrounded. We were lost, and my first thought was that Phao had betrayed us, leading us into this trap from which there could be no escape. They hustled us back into the room and surrounded us, and for the first time I saw Yo Seno. He stood there, a sneering grin upon his face, and but for the fact that Tavia had assured me that he had not harmed her I should have leaped upon him there, though a dozen swords had been at my vitals the next instant.
We were surrounded. We were lost, and my first thought was that Phao had betrayed us, leading us into this trap with no way out. They pushed us back into the room and closed in on us, and for the first time, I saw Yo Seno. He stood there, a mocking grin on his face, and if Tavia hadn't assured me that he hadn’t harmed her, I would have jumped at him right then, even if a dozen swords had been aimed at me in that moment.
"So!" sneered Yo Seno. "You thought to fool me, did you? Well, I am not so easily fooled. I guessed the truth and I followed you through the corridor and overheard all your plans as you discussed them with the woman, Tavia. We have you all now," and turning to one of the warriors, he motioned to the closet upon the opposite side of the chamber. "Fetch the other," he commanded.
"So!" sneered Yo Seno. "You thought you could trick me, huh? Well, I'm not so easily fooled. I figured out the truth and followed you down the hallway, listening to all your plans while you talked with the woman, Tavia. We've got you all now," and turning to one of the warriors, he signaled to the closet on the other side of the room. "Get the other one," he ordered.
The fellow crossed to the door and, opening it, revealed Nur An lying bound and gagged upon the floor.
The guy walked over to the door and, opening it, showed Nur An lying on the floor, tied up and gagged.
"Cut his bonds and remove the gag," ordered Yo Seno. "It is too late now for him to thwart my plans by giving the others a warning."
"Cut his ties and take off the gag," commanded Yo Seno. "It's too late for him to ruin my plans by warning the others."
Nur An came toward us, with a firm step, his head high and a glance of haughty contempt for our captors.
Nur An approached us with a confident stride, his head held high and a look of disdainful contempt for our captors.
The four of us stood facing Yo Seno, the sneer upon whose face had been replaced by a glare of hatred.
The four of us stood facing Yo Seno, the sneer on his face replaced by a look of pure hatred.
"You have been sentenced to die The Death," he said. "It is the death for spies. No more terrible punishment can be inflicted. Could there be, it would be meted to you two," as he looked first at me and then at Nur An, "that you might suffer more for the murder of our two comrades."
"You've been sentenced to die the Death," he said. "It's the death for spies. There's no harsher punishment possible. If there were, it would be given to you two," he said, first looking at me and then at Nur An, "so that you could suffer more for the murder of our two comrades."
So they had found the warriors we had dispatched. Well, what of it? Evidently it had not rendered our position any worse than it had been before. We were to die The Death and that was the worst that they could accord us.
So they had found the warriors we sent out. So what? It clearly hadn’t made our situation any worse than it already was. We were going to die, and that was the worst they could give us.
"Have you anything to say?" demanded Yo Seno.
"Do you have anything to say?" asked Yo Seno.
"We still live!" I exclaimed, and laughed in his face.
"We're still alive!" I said, laughing in his face.
"Before long you will be beseeching your first ancestors for death," hissed the keeper of the keys, "but you will not have death too soon, and remember that no one knows how long it takes to die The Death. We cannot add to your physical suffering, but for the torment of your mind let me remind you that we are sending you to The Death without letting you know what the fate of your accomplices will be," and he nodded toward Tavia and Phao.
"Before long, you'll be begging your first ancestors for death," hissed the keeper of the keys, "but death won't come too soon for you. Remember, no one knows how long it takes to die The Death. We can't increase your physical suffering, but to torment your mind, let me remind you that we’re sending you to The Death without telling you what will happen to your accomplices," and he nodded toward Tavia and Phao.
That was a nice point, well chosen. He could not have hit upon any means more certain to inflict acute torture upon me than this, but I would not give him the satisfaction of witnessing my true emotion, and so, once again, I laughed in his face. His patience had about reached the limit of its endurance, for he turned abruptly to a padwar of the guard and ordered him to remove us at once.
That was a good point, well made. He couldn't have picked a better way to cause me real pain than this, but I wouldn't give him the satisfaction of seeing my true feelings, so I laughed in his face again. His patience was wearing thin, and he abruptly turned to a guard and ordered him to take us away immediately.
As we were hustled from the room, Nur An called a brave good-bye to Phao.
As we were rushed out of the room, Nur An shouted a brave goodbye to Phao.
"Good-bye, Tavia!" I cried, "and remember that we still live."
"Goodbye, Tavia!" I exclaimed, "and remember that we are still alive."
"We still live, Hadron of Hastor!" she called back. "We still live!" and then she was swept from my view as we were pushed along down the corridor.
"We're still alive, Hadron of Hastor!" she shouted back. "We're still alive!" and then she was taken out of my sight as we were moved along the corridor.
Down ramp after ramp we were conducted to the uttermost depths of the palace pits and then into a great chamber where I saw Haj Osis sitting upon a throne, surrounded again by his chiefs and his courtiers as he had been upon the occasion that he had interviewed me. Opposite the Jed, and in the middle of the chamber, hung a great iron cage, suspended from a heavy block set in the ceiling. Into this cage we were roughly pushed; the door was closed and secured with a large lock. I wondered what it was all about and what this had to do with The Death, and while I wondered a dozen men pushed a huge trap door from beneath the cage. A rush of cold, clammy air enveloped us and I experienced a chill that seemed to enter my marrow, as though I lay in the cold arms of death. Hollow moans and groans came faintly to my ears and I knew that we were above the pits where The Death lay.
Down ramp after ramp we were taken down to the deepest parts of the palace and then into a large room where I saw Haj Osis sitting on a throne, surrounded once again by his chiefs and courtiers, just like when I had met with him before. Across from the Jed, in the center of the room, there was a huge iron cage hanging from a heavy block in the ceiling. We were roughly shoved into this cage; the door was shut and locked with a big padlock. I wondered what was happening and how this related to The Death, and while I was pondering that, a dozen men opened a massive trapdoor beneath the cage. A rush of cold, damp air surrounded us, and I felt a chill that seemed to penetrate my bones, as if I were lying in the cold embrace of death. Faint hollow moans and groans reached my ears, and I realized we were above the pits where The Death lay.
No word was spoken within the chamber, but at a signal from Haj Osis strong men lowered the cage slowly into the aperture beneath us. Here the cold and the damp were more obvious and penetrating than before, while the ghastly sounds appeared to redouble in volume.
No one said a word in the room, but at a signal from Haj Osis, strong men slowly lowered the cage into the opening below us. The cold and damp were more intense and noticeable than before, and the horrifying sounds seemed to grow louder.
Down, down we slid into an abyss of darkness. The horror of the silence in the chamber above was forgotten in the horror of the pandemonium of uncanny sounds that rose from beneath.
Down, down we slid into a pit of darkness. The terrifying silence in the room above was forgotten in the chaos of strange noises that came from below.
How far we were lowered thus I may not even guess, but to Nur An it seemed at least a thousand feet and then we commenced to detect a slight luminosity about us. The moaning and the groaning had become a constant roar. As we approached, it seemed less like moans and groans and more like the sound of wind and rushing waters.
How far we were lowered, I can't even guess, but to Nur An, it felt like at least a thousand feet, and then we started to notice a faint glow around us. The moaning and groaning had turned into a constant roar. As we got closer, it sounded less like groans and more like the sound of wind and rushing water.
Suddenly, without the slightest warning, the bottom of the cage, which evidently must have been hinged upon one side, and held by a catch that could be sprung from above, swung downward. It happened so quickly that we hardly had time for conjecture before we were plunged into rushing water.
Suddenly, without any warning, the bottom of the cage, which was obviously hinged on one side and held by a catch that could be released from above, swung down. It happened so fast that we barely had time to think before we were thrown into rushing water.
As I rose to the surface I discovered that I could see. Wherever we were, it was not shrouded in impenetrable darkness, but was lighted dimly.
As I surfaced, I realized that I could see. Wherever we were, it wasn't covered in complete darkness, but was lit up softly.
Almost immediately Nur An's head bobbed up at arm's length from me. A strong current was bearing us onward and I realized at once that we were in the grip of a great underground river, one of those to which the remaining waters of dying Barsoom have receded. In the distance I descried a shoreline dimly visible in the subdued light, and, shouting to Nur An to follow me, I struck out toward it. The water was cold, but not sufficiently so to alarm me and I had no doubt but that we would reach the shore.
Almost instantly, Nur An's head popped up an arm's length away from me. A powerful current was carrying us along, and I quickly realized we were caught in a huge underground river, one of those that the last waters of dying Barsoom have retreated to. In the distance, I spotted a shoreline faintly visible in the soft light, and, yelling to Nur An to follow me, I swam toward it. The water was cold, but not cold enough to worry me, and I was confident that we would make it to the shore.
By the time that we had attained our goal and crawled out upon the rocky shore, our eyes had become accustomed to the dim light of the interior, and now, with astonishment, we gazed about us. What a vast cavern! Far, far above us its ceiling was discernible in the light of the minute radium particles with which the rock that formed its walls and ceiling was impregnated, but the opposite bank of the rushing torrent was beyond the range of our vision.
By the time we reached our goal and crawled out onto the rocky shore, our eyes had adjusted to the dim light inside, and now, in amazement, we looked around. What a huge cavern! Far above us, we could see the ceiling illuminated by the tiny radium particles embedded in the rock that made up its walls and ceiling, but the other side of the rushing torrent was out of our sight.
"So this is The Death!" exclaimed Nur An.
"So this is The Death!" exclaimed Nur An.
"I doubt if they know what it is themselves," I replied. "From the roaring of the river and the moaning of the wind, they have conjured something horrible in their own imaginations."
"I doubt they even know what it is themselves," I replied. "From the roaring of the river and the moaning of the wind, they’ve created something terrible in their own imaginations."
"Perhaps the greatest suffering that the victim must endure lies in his anticipation of what awaits him in these seemingly horrid depths," suggested Nur An, "whereas the worst that realization might bring would be death by drowning."
"Maybe the worst pain that the victim has to face is in his fear of what’s coming in these seemingly awful depths," Nur An suggested, "while the worst that could happen from realizing it would be dying from drowning."
"Or by starvation," I suggested.
"Or by starvation," I said.
Nur An nodded. "Nevertheless," he said, "I wish I might return just long enough to mock them and witness their disappointment when they find that The Death is not so horrible after all."
Nur An nodded. "Still," he said, "I wish I could go back just long enough to tease them and see their faces drop when they realize that The Death isn't as terrible as they think."
"What a mighty river," he added after a moment's silence. "Could it be a tributary of Iss?"
"What a powerful river," he said after a brief silence. "Could it be a tributary of Iss?"
"Perhaps it is Iss herself," I said.
"Maybe it's Iss herself," I said.
"Then we are bound upon the last long pilgrimage down to the lost sea of Korus in the valley Dor," said Nur An gloomily. "It may be a lovely place, but I do not wish to go there yet."
"Then we are headed on the final long journey down to the lost sea of Korus in the valley Dor," said Nur An sadly. "It might be a beautiful place, but I don't want to go there just yet."
"It is a place of horror," I replied.
"It’s a place of horror," I replied.
"Hush," he cautioned; "that is sacrilege."
"Shh," he warned; "that's rude."
"It is sacrilege no longer since John Carter and Tars Tarkas snatched the veil of secrecy from the valley Dor and disposed of the myth of Issus, Goddess of Life Eternal." Even after I had told him the whole tragic story of the false gods of Mars, Nur An remained skeptical, so closely are the superstitions of religion woven into every fiber of our being.
"It’s no longer sacrilege now that John Carter and Tars Tarkas lifted the veil of secrecy from the valley of Dor and debunked the myth of Issus, the Goddess of Eternal Life." Even after I shared the entire tragic story of Mars' false gods, Nur An still remained skeptical, as the superstitions of religion are tightly woven into every aspect of our existence.
We were both a trifle fatigued after our battle with the strong current of the river, and perhaps, too, we were suffering from reaction from the nervous shock of the ordeal through which we had passed. So we remained there, resting upon the rocky shore of the river of mystery. Eventually our conversation turned to what was uppermost in the minds of both and yet which each hesitated to mention—the fate of Tavia and Phao.
We were both a bit tired after our struggle with the strong current of the river, and maybe we were also feeling the effects of the nervous shock from the ordeal we had just gone through. So we stayed there, resting on the rocky shore of the mysterious river. Eventually, our conversation shifted to what was on both our minds but that we both hesitated to bring up—the fate of Tavia and Phao.
"I wish that they, too, had been sentenced to The Death," I said, "for then at least we might be with them and protect them."
"I wish they had been sentenced to death too," I said, "because then we could at least be with them and protect them."
"I am afraid that we shall never see them again," said Nur An gloomily. "What a cruel fate that I should have found Phao only to lose her again irretrievably so quickly."
"I’m afraid we’ll never see them again," Nur An said sadly. "What a cruel twist of fate that I found Phao only to lose her again so quickly and beyond reach."
"It is indeed a strange trick of fate that after Tul Axtar stole her from you, he should have lost her too, and then that you should find her in Tjanath."
"It’s really a weird twist of fate that after Tul Axtar took her from you, he ended up losing her too, and then you found her in Tjanath."
He looked at me with a slightly puzzled expression for a moment and then his face cleared. "Phao is not the woman of whom I told you in the dungeon at Tjanath," he said. "Phao I loved long before; she was my first love. After I lost her I thought that I never could care for a woman again, but this other one came into my life and, knowing that Phao was gone forever, I found some consolation in my new love, but I realize now that it was not the same, that no love could ever displace that which I felt for Phao."
He looked at me with a slightly confused expression for a moment, and then his face cleared up. "Phao isn't the woman I told you about in the dungeon at Tjanath," he said. "I loved Phao long before; she was my first love. After I lost her, I thought I would never be able to love another woman again, but then this other one came into my life. Knowing that Phao was gone forever, I found some comfort in my new love, but I realize now that it wasn't the same and that no love could ever replace what I felt for Phao."
"You lost her irretrievably once before," I reminded him, "but you found her again; perhaps you will find her once more."
"You lost her for good once before," I reminded him, "but you found her again; maybe you'll find her again."
"I wish that I might share your optimism," he said.
"I wish I could share your optimism," he said.
"We have little else to buoy us up," I reminded him.
"We don’t have much else to lift our spirits," I reminded him.
"You are right," he said, and then with a laugh, added, "we still live!"
"You’re right," he said, and then with a laugh, added, "we're still alive!"
Presently, feeling rested, we set out along the shore in the direction that the river ran, for we had decided that that would be our course if for no other reason than that it would be easier going down hill than up. Where it would lead, we had not the slightest idea; perhaps to Korus; perhaps to Omean, the buried sea where lay the ships of the First Born.
Currently, feeling refreshed, we started along the shore in the direction the river flowed, since we figured that would be our best route, if for no other reason than it would be easier to go downhill than uphill. We had no clue where it would take us; maybe to Korus; maybe to Omean, the sunken sea where the ships of the First Born rested.
Over tumbled rock masses we clambered and along level stretches of smooth gravel we pursued our rather aimless course, knowing not whither we were going, having no goal toward which to strive. There was some vegetation, weird and grotesque, but almost colorless for want of sunlight. There were tree-like plants with strange, angular branches that snapped off at the lightest touch, and as the trees did not look like trees, there were blossoms that did not look like flowers. It was a world as unlike the outer world as the figments of imagination are unlike realities.
We climbed over rocky masses and walked along flat stretches of smooth gravel, following our aimless path without knowing where we were headed or having any specific goal. The vegetation was strange and odd, almost colorless due to the lack of sunlight. There were plant-like structures with weird, angular branches that broke off at the slightest touch, and since these didn't resemble typical trees, the blossoms looked nothing like flowers. It was a world as different from the outside world as fantasies are from reality.
But whatever musing upon the flora of this strange land I may have been indulging in was brought to a sudden termination as we rounded the shoulder of a jutting promontory and came face to face with as hideous a creature as ever I had laid my eyes upon. It was a great white lizard with gaping jaws large enough to engulf a man at a single swallow. At sight of us it emitted an angry hiss and advanced menacingly toward us.
But any thoughts I had about the plants in this strange land were abruptly interrupted as we rounded the edge of a jutting cliff and came face to face with one of the ugliest creatures I'd ever seen. It was a giant white lizard with gaping jaws wide enough to swallow a man whole. Upon seeing us, it let out an angry hiss and moved threateningly towards us.
Being unarmed and absolutely at the mercy of any creature that attacked us, we pursued the only plan that our intelligence could dictate—we retreated—and I am not ashamed to admit that we retreated rapidly.
Being unarmed and completely at the mercy of any creature that attacked us, we followed the only plan our intelligence allowed—we retreated—and I’m not ashamed to say that we retreated quickly.
Running quickly around the end of the promontory, we turned sharply up the bank away from the river. The bottom of the cavern rose sharply and as I clambered upward I glanced behind me occasionally to note the actions of our pursuer. He was now in plain sight, having followed us around the end of the promontory and there he stood looking about as though in search of us. Though we were not far from him, he did not seem to see us, and I soon became convinced that his eyesight was faulty; but not wishing to depend upon this I kept on climbing until presently we came to the top of the promontory, and, looking down upon the other side, I saw a considerable stretch of smooth gravel, stretching out into the dim distance along the river shore. If we could clamber down the opposite side of the barrier and reach this level stretch of gravel, I felt that we might escape the attentions of the huge monster. A final glance at him showed him still standing, peering first in one direction and then in another as though in search of us.
Running quickly around the edge of the cliff, we turned sharply up the bank away from the river. The bottom of the cave rose steeply, and as I climbed up, I glanced back occasionally to check on our pursuer. He was now in clear view, having followed us around the edge of the cliff, and he stood there looking around as if searching for us. Although we weren't far from him, he didn't seem to notice us, and I soon became convinced that his eyesight was poor; but not wanting to rely on that, I kept climbing until we finally reached the top of the cliff. Looking down on the other side, I saw a significant stretch of smooth gravel extending into the dim distance along the riverbank. If we could carefully climb down the other side of the barrier and reach this flat stretch of gravel, I felt that we might escape the attention of the enormous creature. A final glance at him showed he was still standing there, peering first in one direction and then in another as if on the lookout for us.
Nur An had followed close behind me and now together we slipped over the edge of the escarpment, and, though the rough rocks scratched us severely, we finally reached the gravel below, whereupon, having eluded our menacer, we set out upon a brisk run down the river. We had covered scarcely more than fifty paces when Nur An stumbled over an obstacle and as I stooped to give him a hand up, I saw that the thing that had tripped him was the rotting harness of a warrior and a moment later I saw the hilt of a sword protruding from the gravel. Seizing it, I wrenched it from the ground. It was a good long sword and I may tell you that the feel of it in my hand did more to restore my self confidence than aught else that might have transpired. Being made of non-corrosive metal, as are all Barsoomian weapons, it remained as sound today as the moment that it had been abandoned by its owner.
Nur An had followed closely behind me, and together we slipped over the edge of the cliff. Even though the rough rocks scratched us badly, we finally reached the gravel below. After escaping our pursuer, we started running briskly down the river. We had gone barely fifty paces when Nur An tripped over something. As I bent down to help him up, I realized that what had tripped him was the decaying harness of a warrior, and a moment later, I spotted the hilt of a sword sticking out of the gravel. I grabbed it and pulled it from the ground. It was a good, long sword, and I can tell you that holding it in my hand did more to boost my confidence than anything else that could have happened. Made of non-corrosive metal like all Barsoomian weapons, it was just as solid today as it had been the moment its owner abandoned it.
"Look," said Nur An, pointing, and there at a little distance we saw another harness and another sword. This time there were two, a long sword and a short sword, and these Nur An took. No longer did we run. I have always felt that there is little upon Barsoom that two well-armed warriors need run from.
"Look," said Nur An, pointing, and there at a short distance we saw another set of gear and another sword. This time there were two, a long sword and a short sword, and Nur An took them. We stopped running. I've always felt that there's not much on Barsoom that two well-armed warriors need to run from.
As we continued along our way across the level stretch of gravel we sought to solve the mystery of these abandoned weapons, a mystery that was still further heightened by our discovery of many more. In some cases the harness had rotted away entirely, leaving nothing but the metal parts, while in others it was comparatively sound and new. Presently we discerned a white mound ahead of us, but in the dim light of the cavern we could not at first determine of what it consisted. When we did, we were filled with horror, for the white mound was of the bones and skulls of human beings. Then, at last, I thought I had an explanation of the abandoned harness and weapons. This was the lair of the great lizard. Here he took his toll of the unhappy creatures that passed down the river, but how was it that armed men had come here. We had been cast into the cavern unarmed, as I was positive all of the condemned prisoners of Tjanath must have been. From whence came the others? I do not know, doubtless I shall never know. It was a mystery from the first. It will remain a mystery to the last.
As we continued along the flat stretch of gravel, we tried to figure out the mystery of these abandoned weapons, a mystery that only deepened with our discovery of many more. In some cases, the harness had completely rotted away, leaving just the metal parts, while in others, it was still relatively intact and new. Soon, we spotted a white mound ahead of us, but in the dim light of the cavern, we couldn't initially tell what it was. When we finally realized what it was, we were filled with horror: the white mound was made up of human bones and skulls. Then it finally struck me—I thought I understood the reason behind the abandoned harness and weapons. This was the lair of the great lizard. Here, it claimed the lives of the unfortunate creatures that passed down the river, but how did armed men end up here? We had been thrown into the cavern unarmed, just as I was sure all of Tjanath's condemned prisoners had been. Where did the others come from? I don't know, and I probably never will. It was a mystery from the start, and it will remain a mystery to the end.
As we passed on we found harness and weapons scattered all about, but there was infinitely more harness than weapons.
As we moved forward, we noticed harnesses and weapons strewn everywhere, but there were way more harnesses than weapons.
I had added a good short sword to my equipment, as well as a dagger, as had also Nur An, and I was stooping to examine another weapon which we had found—a short sword with a beautifully ornamented hilt and guard—when Nur An suddenly voiced an exclamation of warning.
I had added a good short sword to my gear, along with a dagger, just like Nur An had. I was bending down to look at another weapon we had discovered—a short sword with a beautifully designed hilt and guard—when Nur An suddenly let out a warning shout.
"On guard," he cried, "Hadron! It comes!"
"Watch out," he shouted, "Hadron! It's coming!"
Leaping to my feet, I wheeled about, the short sword still in my hand, and there, bearing down upon us at considerable speed and with wide distended jaws, came the great white lizard hissing ominously. He was a hideous sight, a sight such as to make even a brave man turn and run, which I am now convinced is what practically all of his victims did; but here were two who did not run. Perhaps he was so close that we realized the futility of flight without giving the matter conscious thought, but be that as it may, we stood there—Nur An with his long sword in his hand, I with the ornately carved short sword that I had been examining, though instantly I realized that it was not the weapon with which to defend myself against this great hulking brute.
Jumping to my feet, I turned around, the short sword still in my hand, and there, rushing toward us at a fast pace with its jaws wide open, came the massive white lizard hissing threateningly. It was a grotesque sight, the kind that would make even the bravest person want to flee, and I’m now sure that was the reaction of almost all its victims; yet here we were, two who did not run. Maybe he was so close that we instinctively understood fleeing was pointless without even thinking about it, but whatever the reason, we stood our ground—Nur An with his long sword in hand and I with the intricately designed short sword I had been inspecting, though I quickly realized it wasn’t the right weapon to defend myself against this huge, imposing creature.
Yet I could not bear to waste a weapon already in my hand, especially in view of an accomplishment of mine in which I took considerable pride.
Yet I couldn't bring myself to waste a weapon I already had in my hand, especially considering an achievement of mine that I took great pride in.
In Helium, both officers and men often wager large amounts upon the accuracy with which they can hurl daggers and short swords and I have seen considerable sums change hands within an hour, but so proficient was I that I had added considerably to my pay through my winning until my fame had spread to such an extent that I could find no one willing to pit his skill against mine.
In Helium, both the officers and the soldiers often bet big on how accurately they can throw daggers and short swords. I've seen a lot of money change hands in just an hour, but I was so skilled that I made a good amount of extra cash from my wins. Eventually, my reputation got so big that I couldn’t find anyone willing to challenge me.
Never had I hurled a weapon with a more fervent prayer for the accuracy of my throw than now as I launched the short sword swiftly at the mouth of the oncoming lizard. It was not a good throw. It would have lost me money in Helium, but in this instance, I think, it saved my life. The sword, instead of speeding in a straight line, point first, as it should have, turned slowly upward until it was travelling at an angle of about forty-five degrees, with the point forward and downward. In this position the point struck just inside of the lower jaw of the creature, while the heavy hilt, carried forward by its own momentum, lodged in the roof of the monster's mouth.
Never had I thrown a weapon with a more intense prayer for accuracy than I did now as I quickly launched the short sword at the approaching lizard. It wasn't a good throw. It would have cost me money in Helium, but in this situation, I think it saved my life. Instead of flying straight, point first as it should have, the sword slowly arced upward until it was at about a forty-five-degree angle, with the point facing down. In this position, the point struck just inside the creature's lower jaw, while the heavy hilt, propelled by its own momentum, got stuck in the roof of the monster's mouth.
Instantly it was helpless; the point of the sword had passed through its tongue into the bony substance of its lower jaw, while the hilt was lodged in its upper jaw behind its mighty fangs. It could not dislodge the sword, either forward or backward, and for an instant it halted in hissing dismay, and simultaneously Nur An and I leaped to opposite sides of its ghastly white body. It tried to defend itself with its tail and talons, but we were too quick for it and presently it was lying in a pool of its own purple blood in the final spasmodic muscular reaction of dissolution.
Instantly, it was defenseless; the tip of the sword had pierced its tongue and entered the bony part of its lower jaw, while the hilt was stuck in its upper jaw behind its powerful fangs. It couldn't pull the sword out, either forward or backward, and for a moment, it paused in hissing panic as Nur An and I jumped to opposite sides of its terrifying white body. It tried to fight back with its tail and claws, but we were too fast for it, and soon it was lying in a pool of its own purple blood, undergoing the final violent convulsions of death.
There was something peculiarly disgusting and loathsome about the purple blood of the creature, not only in its appearance, but in its odor, which was almost nauseating, and Nur An and I lost no time in quitting the scene of our victory. At the river we washed our blades and then continued on upon our fruitless quest.
There was something really gross and repulsive about the creature's purple blood, not just in how it looked but also in its smell, which was almost sickening. Nur An and I wasted no time getting away from the scene of our victory. At the river, we cleaned our blades and then carried on with our pointless quest.
As we had washed our blades we had noticed fish in the river and after we had put sufficient distance between the lair of the lizard and ourselves, we determined to bend our energies for awhile toward filling our larder and our stomachs.
As we cleaned our blades, we saw fish in the river, and after putting enough distance between ourselves and the lizard's lair, we decided to focus our efforts for a while on stocking our supplies and satisfying our hunger.
Neither one of us had ever caught a fish or eaten one, but we knew from history that they could be caught and that they were edible. Being swordsmen, we naturally looked to our swords as the best means for procuring our flesh and so we waded into the river with drawn long swords prepared to slaughter fish to our heart's content, but wherever we went there was no fish. We could see them elsewhere, but not within reach of our swords.
Neither of us had ever caught a fish or eaten one, but we knew from history that it was possible to catch them and that they were good to eat. As swordsmen, we naturally thought our swords were the best way to get our food, so we waded into the river with our long swords drawn, ready to slay fish to our heart's content. However, wherever we went, there were no fish. We could see them in other spots, but not close enough to reach with our swords.
"Perhaps," said Nur An, "fish are not such fools as they appear. They may see us approaching and question our motives."
"Maybe," said Nur An, "fish aren't as foolish as they seem. They might notice us coming and wonder what we're up to."
"I can readily believe that you are right," I replied. "Suppose we try strategy."
"I can easily believe you're right," I replied. "How about we try a different approach?"
"How?" he asked.
"How?" he inquired.
"Come with me," I said, "and return to the bank." After a little search down stream I found a rocky ledge overhanging the river. "We will lie here at intervals," I said, "with only our eyes and the points of our swords over the edge of the bank. We must not talk or move, lest we frighten the fish. Perhaps in this way we shall procure one," for I had long since given up the idea of a general slaughter.
"Come with me," I said, "and let’s go back to the bank." After searching downstream for a bit, I found a rocky ledge that jutted over the river. "We’ll lie here from time to time," I said, "with just our eyes and the tips of our swords over the edge of the bank. We shouldn't talk or move, so we don’t scare off the fish. Maybe this way we’ll catch one," because I had long since abandoned the idea of a big catch.
To my gratification my plan worked and it was not long before we each had a large fish.
To my delight, my plan worked, and it wasn't long before we each caught a big fish.
Naturally, like other men, we prefer our flesh cooked, but being warriors we were accustomed to it either way, and so we broke our long fast upon raw fish from the river of mystery.
Naturally, like other men, we prefer our meat cooked, but as warriors, we were used to it either way, so we ended our long fast by eating raw fish from the river of mystery.
Both Nur An and I felt greatly refreshed and strengthened by our meal, however unpalatable it might have been. It had been some time since we had slept and though we had no idea whether it was still night upon the outer surface of Barsoom, or whether dawn had already broken, we decided that it would be best for us to sleep and so Nur An stretched out where we were while I watched. After he awoke, I took my turn. I think that neither one of us slept more than a single zode, but the rest did us quite as much good as the food that we had eaten and I am sure that I have never felt more fit than I did when we set out again upon our goalless journey.
Both Nur An and I felt really refreshed and energized by our meal, no matter how unappetizing it might have been. It had been a while since we last slept, and even though we didn’t know if it was still night on the surface of Barsoom or if dawn had already come, we decided it was best to sleep. So, Nur An lay down where we were while I kept watch. After he woke up, it was my turn to rest. I think neither of us slept more than a single zode, but the rest did us just as much good as the food we had eaten, and I’m sure I’ve never felt fitter than I did when we set out again on our aimless journey.
I do not know how long we had been travelling after our sleep, for by now the journey was most monotonous, there being little change in the dimly seen landscape surrounding us and only the ceaseless roar of the river and the howling of the wind to keep us company.
I have no idea how long we had been traveling after our rest, because by this point the trip was really dull, with hardly any change in the faintly visible landscape around us and just the constant noise of the river and the wind howling to keep us company.
Nur An was the first to discern the change; he seized my arm and pointed ahead. I must have been walking with my eyes upon the ground in front of me, else I must have seen what he saw simultaneously.
Nur An was the first to notice the change; he grabbed my arm and pointed ahead. I must have been looking down at the ground in front of me, or else I would have seen what he saw at the same time.
"It is daylight," I exclaimed. "It is the sun."
"It’s daytime," I shouted. "It’s the sun."
"It can be nothing else," he said.
"It can't be anything else," he said.
There, far ahead of us, lay a great archway of light. That was all that we could see from the point at which we discovered it, but now we hastened on almost at a run, so anxious were we for a solution, so hopeful that it was indeed the sunlight and that in some inexplicable and mysterious way the river had found its way to the surface of Barsoom. I knew that this could not be true and Nur An knew it, and yet each knew how great his disappointment would be when the true explanation of the phenomenon was revealed.
There, far ahead of us, was a huge arch of light. That was all we could see from where we were, but now we hurried on almost at a run, so eager we were for an answer, so hopeful that it was really sunlight and that somehow the river had reached the surface of Barsoom. I knew this couldn't be true, and Nur An knew it too, yet each of us was aware of how disappointed we would be when the real explanation of the phenomenon came to light.
When we approached the great patch of light it became more and more evident that the river had broken from its dark cavern out into the light of day, and when we reached the edge of that mighty portal we looked out upon a scene that filled our hearts with warmth and gladness, for there, stretching before us, lay a valley—a small valley it is true—a valley hemmed in, as far as we could see, by mighty cliffs, but yet a valley of life and fertility and beauty bathed in the hot light of the sun.
When we got closer to the bright area, it became clearer that the river had flowed out from its dark cave into the daylight. When we finally reached the edge of that massive opening, we looked out at a scene that filled us with warmth and happiness. Before us was a valley—it's small, for sure—a valley surrounded, as far as we could see, by towering cliffs, but still a valley full of life, fertility, and beauty bathed in the hot sunlight.
"It is not quite the surface of Barsoom," said Nur An, "but it is the next best thing."
"It’s not exactly the surface of Barsoom," Nur An said, "but it’s the next best thing."
"And there must be a way out," I said. "There must be. If there is not, we will make one."
"And there has to be a way out," I said. "There has to be. If there isn’t, we’ll create one."
"Right you are, Hadron of Hastor," he cried. "We will make a way. Come!"
"You're right, Hadron of Hastor," he said. "We'll find a way. Let's go!"
Before us the banks of the roaring river were lined with lush vegetation; great trees raised their leafy branches far above the waters; the brilliant, scarlet sward was lapped by the little wavelets and everywhere bloomed gorgeous flowers and shrubs of many hues and shapes. Here was a vegetation such as I had never seen before upon the surface of Barsoom. Here were forms similar to those with which I was familiar and others totally unknown to me, yet all were lovely, though some were bizarre.
Before us, the banks of the roaring river were lined with lush plants; tall trees stretched their leafy branches high above the water; the bright red grass was gently touched by little waves, and everywhere there were beautiful flowers and bushes of various colors and shapes. This vegetation was unlike anything I had ever seen on the surface of Barsoom. There were some familiar forms and others that were completely new to me, yet all were beautiful, though some were unusual.
Emerging, as we had, from the dark and gloomy bowels of the earth, the scene before us presented a view of wondrous beauty, and, while doubtless enhanced by contrast, it was nevertheless such an aspect as is seldom given to the eyes of a Barsoomian of today to view. To me it seemed a little garden spot upon a dying world preserved from an ancient era when Barsoom was young and meteorological conditions were such as to favor the growth of vegetation that has long since become extinct over practically the entire area of the planet. In this deep valley, surrounded by lofty cliffs, the atmosphere doubtless was considerably denser than upon the surface of the planet above. The sun's rays were reflected by the lofty escarpment, which must also hold the heat during the colder periods of night, and, in addition to this, there was ample water for irrigation which nature might easily have achieved through percolation of the waters of the river through and beneath the top soil of the valley.
Emerging, as we had, from the dark and gloomy depths of the earth, the scene before us revealed a breathtaking view, and while it was certainly made more beautiful by the contrast, it was still a sight rarely seen by a modern Barsoomian. To me, it felt like a small paradise on a dying world, preserved from a time when Barsoom was young and the climate was perfect for the growth of plants that have long since disappeared across most of the planet. In this deep valley, surrounded by towering cliffs, the atmosphere was likely much denser than above on the planet's surface. The sun's rays bounced off the high cliffs, which must also retain heat during the colder nights, and there was plenty of water for irrigation that nature might have easily brought through the river seeping through and beneath the soil of the valley.
For several minutes Nur An and I stood spellbound by the bewitching view, and then, espying luscious fruit hanging in great clusters from some of the trees, and bushes loaded with berries, we subordinated the esthetic to the corporeal and set forth to supplement our meal of raw fish with the exquisite offerings which hung so temptingly before us.
For several minutes, Nur An and I stood mesmerized by the stunning view, and then, noticing ripe fruit hanging in large clusters from some of the trees, and bushes full of berries, we put aside the beauty of the moment and decided to enhance our meal of raw fish with the delicious offerings that looked so inviting.
As we started to move through the vegetation we became aware of thin threads of a gossamer-like substance festooned from tree to tree and bush to bush. So fine as to be almost invisible, yet they were so strong as to impede our progress. It was surprisingly difficult to break them, and when there were a dozen or more at a time barring our way, we found it necessary to use our daggers to cut a way through them.
As we began to navigate through the plants, we noticed thin threads of a delicate substance hanging from tree to tree and bush to bush. They were so fine they were almost invisible, yet they were strong enough to slow us down. It was surprisingly hard to break them, and when there were a dozen or more blocking our path, we had to use our knives to cut through them.
We had taken only a few steps into the deeper vegetation, cutting our way through the gossamer strands, when we were confronted by a new and surprising obstacle to our advance—a large, venomous-looking spider that scurried toward us in an inverted position, clinging with a dozen legs to one of the gossamer strands, which served both as its support and its pathway, and if its appearance was any index to its venomousness it must, indeed, have been a deadly insect.
We had only taken a few steps into the thicker vegetation, pushing our way through the delicate strands, when we faced a new and surprising obstacle— a large, venomous-looking spider that quickly approached us upside down, gripping one of the delicate strands with a dozen legs. This strand served as both its support and its path, and judging by how it looked, it must have indeed been a deadly creature.
As it came toward me, apparently with the most sinister intentions, I hastily returned my dagger to its scabbard and drew my short sword, with which I struck at the fearsome looking creature. As the blow descended, it drew back so that my point only slightly scratched it, whereupon it opened its hideous mouth and emitted a terrific scream so out of proportion to its size and to the nature of such insects with which I was familiar that it had a most appalling effect upon my nerves. Instantly the scream was answered by an unearthly chorus of similar cries all about us and immediately a swarm of these horrid insects came racing toward us upon their gossamer threads. Evidently this was the only position which they assumed in moving about and their webs the only means to that end, for their twelve legs grew upward from their backs, giving them a most uncanny appearance.
As it approached me, seemingly with the most sinister intent, I quickly sheathed my dagger and pulled out my short sword, with which I swung at the terrifying creature. As the strike came down, it recoiled just enough that my blade barely grazed it. Then, it opened its grotesque mouth and let out an ear-piercing scream that was so disproportionate to its size and unlike any insects I knew that it had a deeply unsettling effect on my nerves. Instantly, its scream was met with an eerie chorus of similar cries all around us, and suddenly a swarm of these dreadful insects came racing toward us on their delicate threads. Clearly, this was the only way they moved and their webs were their only means of doing so, as their twelve legs protruded upward from their backs, giving them an incredibly strange appearance.
Fearing that the creatures might be poisonous, Nur An and I retreated hastily to the mouth of the cavern, and as the spiders could not go beyond the ends of their threads, we were soon quite safe from them and now the luscious fruit looked more tempting than ever, since it seemed to be denied to us.
Fearing that the creatures might be poisonous, Nur An and I quickly backed away to the entrance of the cave, and since the spiders couldn't go beyond the ends of their threads, we were soon safe from them. Now the delicious fruit looked more tempting than ever, since it seemed to be out of our reach.
"The road down the river is well guarded," said Nur An with a rueful smile, "which might indicate a most desirable goal."
"The road along the river is well protected," Nur An said with a wry smile, "which could suggest a very appealing destination."
"At present that fruit is the most desirable thing in the world to me," I replied, "and I am going to try to discover some means of obtaining it."
"Right now, that fruit is the most desirable thing in the world to me," I replied, "and I'm going to find a way to get it."
Moving to the right, away from the river, I sought for an entrance into the forest that would be free from the threads of the spiders and presently I came to a point where there was a well-defined trail about four or five feet wide, apparently cut by man from the vegetation. Across the mouth of it, however, were strung thousands of gossamer strands. To touch them, we knew, would be the signal for myriads of the angry spiders to swarm upon us. While our greatest fear was, of course, that the insects might be poisonous, their cruelly fanged mouths also suggested that, poisonous or not, they might in their great numbers constitute a real menace.
Moving to the right, away from the river, I looked for an entrance into the forest that would be clear of spider webs. Soon, I found a well-defined trail about four or five feet wide, clearly made by humans cutting through the vegetation. However, across the entrance were thousands of delicate strands. We knew that touching them would trigger a swarm of angry spiders. While our biggest fear was that the insects could be poisonous, their sharp fangs hinted that, whether poisonous or not, their sheer numbers could pose a real threat.
"Do you notice," I said to Nur An, "that these threads seem stretched across the entrance to the pathway only. Beyond them I cannot detect any, though of course they are so tenuous that they might defy one's vision even at a short distance."
"Do you see," I said to Nur An, "that these threads seem to be stretched just across the entrance to the pathway? I can't spot any beyond that, although they are so thin that they might be invisible even up close."
"I do not see any spiders here," said Nur An. "Perhaps we can cut our way through with impunity at this point."
"I don't see any spiders around," said Nur An. "Maybe we can cut our way through without any problems at this point."
"We shall experiment," I said, drawing my long sword.
"We're going to experiment," I said, pulling out my long sword.
Advancing, I cut a few strands, when immediately there swarmed out of the trees and bushes upon either side great companies of the insects, each racing along its own individual strand. Where the strands were intact the creatures crossed and re-crossed the trail, staring at us with their venomous, beady eyes, their powerful, gleaming fangs bared threateningly toward us.
Advancing, I cut a few strands, and suddenly there swarmed out of the trees and bushes on either side large groups of insects, each racing along its own individual strand. Where the strands were intact, the creatures crossed and recrossed the trail, staring at us with their venomous, beady eyes and their powerful, gleaming fangs bared menacingly towards us.
The cut strands floated in the air until borne down by the weight of the approaching spiders, who followed to the severed ends but no further. Here they either hung glaring at us or else clambered up and down excitedly, but not one of them ever ventured from his strand.
The cut strands floated in the air until they were pulled down by the weight of the approaching spiders, who followed to the severed ends but didn’t go any further. Here, they either hung glaring at us or climbed up and down excitedly, but none of them ever dared to leave their strand.
As I watched them, their antics suggested a plan. "They are helpless when their web is severed," I said to Nur An. "Therefore if we cut all their webs they cannot reach us." Whereupon, advancing, I swung my long sword above my head and cut downward through the remaining strands. Instantly the creatures set up their infernal screaming. Several of them, torn from their webs by the blow of my sword, lay upon the ground upon their bellies, their feet sticking straight up into the air. They seemed utterly helpless, and though they screamed loudly and frantically waved their legs, they were clearly unable to move; nor could those hanging at either side of the trail reach us. With my sword I destroyed those that lay in the path and then, followed by Nur An, I entered the forest. I turned about to have a last look at the discomfited insects to see what they might be about. They had stopped screaming now and were slowly returning into the foliage, evidently to their lairs, and as they seemed to offer no further menace we continued upon our way. The trees and bushes along the pathway were innocent of fruit or berries, though just beyond reach we saw them growing in profusion, behind a barrier of those gossamer webs that we had so quickly learned to avoid.
As I watched them, their actions hinted at a plan. "They're defenseless when their web is cut," I said to Nur An. "So if we cut all their webs, they can't get to us." With that, I stepped forward, swung my long sword over my head, and sliced down through the remaining strands. Immediately, the creatures started their awful screaming. Several of them, yanked from their webs by the impact of my sword, lay on the ground on their bellies, their feet sticking straight up in the air. They appeared completely helpless, and even though they screamed loudly and waved their legs frantically, they clearly couldn't move; nor could those hanging beside the path reach us. With my sword, I took out those blocking the way and then, followed by Nur An, I entered the forest. I looked back for one last glimpse of the defeated insects to see what they might do next. They had stopped screaming now and were slowly retreating into the foliage, likely heading back to their lairs, and since they posed no further threat, we continued on our way. The trees and bushes along the path bore no fruit or berries, though just out of reach we could see them growing abundantly, behind a barrier of those delicate webs that we had quickly learned to avoid.
"This trail appears to have been made by man," said Nur An.
"This trail seems to have been made by humans," said Nur An.
"Whoever made it, or when," I said, "there is no doubt but that some creature still uses it. The absence of fruit along it would alone be ample proof of that."
"Whoever made it, or whenever," I said, "there's no doubt that some creature is still using it. The lack of fruit along it is enough proof of that."
We moved cautiously along the winding trail, not knowing at what moment we might be confronted by some new menace in the form of man or beast. Presently we saw ahead of us what appeared to be an opening in the forest and a moment later we emerged into a clearing. Looming in front of us at a distance of perhaps less than a haad was a towering pile of masonry. It was a gloomy pile, apparently built of black volcanic rock. For some thirty feet above the ground there was a blank wall, pierced by but a single opening—a small doorway almost directly in front of us. This part of the structure appeared to be a wall, beyond it rose buildings of weird and grotesque outlines and dominating all was a lofty tower, from the summit of which a wisp of smoke curled upward into the quiet air.
We moved carefully along the winding path, uncertain of when we might face some new threat from either man or beast. Soon, we spotted what looked like an opening in the forest, and moments later, we stepped into a clearing. Standing in front of us, not far away, was a tall structure made of stone. It was a dark building, seemingly constructed from black volcanic rock. About thirty feet above the ground, there was a featureless wall with only one entrance—a small door almost directly in front of us. This section of the structure seemed to be a wall, while beyond it rose buildings with strange and twisted shapes, and dominating everything was a tall tower, from the top of which a thin plume of smoke drifted into the still air.
From this new vantage point we had a better view of the valley than had at first been accorded us, and now, more marked than ever, were the indications that it was the crater of some gigantic and long extinct volcano. Between us and the buildings, which suggested a small walled city, the clearing contained a few scattered trees, but most of the ground was given over to cultivation, being traversed by irrigation ditches of an archaic type which has been abandoned upon the surface for many ages, having been superceded by a system of sub-irrigation when the diminishing water supply necessitated the adoption of conservation measures.
From this new perspective, we had a better view of the valley than we initially thought, and now it was clearer than ever that this used to be the crater of a massive, long-extinct volcano. Between us and the buildings, which looked like a small walled city, there were a few scattered trees in the clearing, but most of the land was used for farming, crisscrossed by old-fashioned irrigation ditches that hadn’t been maintained for ages. These had been replaced by a sub-irrigation system as the decreasing water supply forced the implementation of conservation practices.
Satisfied that no further information could be gained by remaining where we were, I started boldly into the clearing toward the city. "Where are you going?" asked Nur An.
Satisfied that we couldn't gather any more information by staying where we were, I confidently walked into the clearing toward the city. "Where are you going?" Nur An asked.
"I am going to find out who dwells in that gloomy place," I replied. "Here are fields and gardens, so they must have food and that, after all, is the only favor that I shall ask of them."
"I’m going to figure out who lives in that dark place," I replied. "There are fields and gardens, so they must have food, and that, after all, is the only request I’ll make of them."
Nur An shook his head. "The very sight of the place depresses me," he said. But he came with me as I knew he would, for Nur An is a splendid companion upon whose loyalty one may always depend.
Nur An shook his head. "Just looking at this place brings me down," he said. But he came with me as I knew he would, because Nur An is a fantastic companion whose loyalty you can always count on.
We had traversed about two-thirds of the distance across the clearing toward the city before we saw any signs of life and then a few figures appeared at the top of the wall above the entrance. They carried long, thin scarfs, which they seemed to be waving in greeting to us and when we had come yet closer I saw that they were young women. They leaned over the parapet and smiled and beckoned to us.
We had crossed about two-thirds of the distance through the clearing toward the city when we finally spotted signs of life. A few figures appeared at the top of the wall above the entrance. They were waving long, thin scarves to greet us, and as we got even closer, I noticed that they were young women. They leaned over the wall, smiled, and gestured for us to come closer.
As we came within speaking distance below the wall, I halted. "What city is this," I asked, "and who is jed here?"
As we got close enough to talk below the wall, I stopped. "What city is this?" I asked, "and who is in charge here?"
"Enter, warriors," cried one of the girls, "and we will lead you to the jed." She was very pretty and she was smiling sweetly, as were her companions.
"Come in, warriors," one of the girls called, "and we'll take you to the jed." She was very cute and smiling warmly, just like her friends.
"This is not such a depressing place as you thought," I said in a low voice to Nur An.
"This isn't as depressing a place as you thought," I said quietly to Nur An.
"I was mistaken," said Nur An. "They seem to be a kindly, hospitable people. Shall we enter?"
"I was wrong," said Nur An. "They seem to be kind and welcoming people. Should we go in?"
"Come," called another of the girls; "behind these gloomy walls lie food and wine and love."
"Come," called another girl; "behind these gloomy walls are food, wine, and love."
Food! I would have entered a far more forbidding place than this for food.
Food! I would have gone into a much scarier place than this for food.
As Nur An and I strode toward the small door, it slowly withdrew to one side. Beyond, across a black paved avenue, rose buildings of black volcanic rock. The avenue seemed deserted as we stepped within. We heard the faint click of a lock as the door slid into place behind us and I had a sudden foreboding of ill that made my right hand seek the hilt of my long sword.
As Nur An and I walked toward the small door, it gradually opened to one side. Beyond it, across a dark paved street, stood buildings made of black volcanic rock. The street felt empty as we entered. We heard a faint click of a lock as the door closed behind us, and I suddenly felt a sense of dread that made my right hand reach for the hilt of my long sword.
VIII
VIII
THE SPIDER OF GHASTA
The Ghasta Spider
For a moment we stood undecided in the middle of the empty avenue, looking about us, and then our attention was attracted to a narrow stairway running up the inside of the wall, upon the summit of which the girls had appeared and welcomed us.
For a moment we stood unsure in the middle of the vacant street, looking around, and then we noticed a narrow staircase going up the inside of the wall, where the girls had emerged and greeted us.
Down the stairway the girls were coming. There were six of them. Their beautiful faces were radiant with happy smiles of welcome that instantly dispelled the gloom of the dark surroundings as the rising sun dissipates night's darkness and replaces her shadows with light and warmth and happiness.
Down the stairway, the girls were coming. There were six of them. Their beautiful faces were bright with happy smiles of welcome that quickly chased away the gloom of the dark surroundings, just like the rising sun dispels the darkness of night and replaces its shadows with light, warmth, and happiness.
Beautifully wrought harness, enriched by many a sparkling jewel, accentuated the loveliness of faultless figures. As they approached a vision of Tavia sprang to my mind. Beautiful as these girls unquestionably were, how much more beautiful was Tavia!
Beautifully crafted harness, adorned with many sparkling jewels, highlighted the beauty of flawless figures. As they got closer, a vision of Tavia came to my mind. As beautiful as these girls definitely were, Tavia was even more beautiful!
I recall distinctly, even now, that in that very instant with all that was transpiring to distract my attention, I was suddenly struck by wonder that it should have been Tavia's face and figure that I saw rather than those of Sanoma Tora. You may believe that I brought myself up with a round turn and thereafter it was a vision of Sanoma Tora that I saw, and that, too, without any disloyalty to my friendship for Tavia—that blessed friendship which I looked upon as one of my proudest and most valuable possessions.
I clearly remember, even now, that in that moment with everything happening around me to catch my attention, I was suddenly amazed that it was Tavia's face and figure I was seeing instead of Sanoma Tora's. You can be sure that I pulled myself together and after that, I saw the image of Sanoma Tora, and it didn’t feel like I was being disloyal to my friendship with Tavia—that precious friendship that I considered one of my proudest and most valuable treasures.
As the girls reached the pavement they came eagerly toward us. "Welcome, warriors," cried one, "to happy Ghasta. After your long journey you must be hungry. Come with us and you shall be fed, but first the great jed will wish to greet you and welcome you to our city, for visitors to Ghasta are few."
As the girls got to the sidewalk, they hurried over to us. "Welcome, warriors," shouted one, "to joyful Ghasta. After your long trip, you must be starving. Come with us and we’ll get you something to eat, but first the great jed will want to meet you and welcome you to our city since we hardly have visitors in Ghasta."
As they led us along the avenue I could not but note the deserted appearance of the city. There was no sign of life about any of the buildings that we passed nor did we see another human being until we had come to an open plaza, in the center of which rose a mighty building surmounted by the lofty tower that we had seen when we first emerged from the forest. Here we saw a number of people, both men and women—sad, dejected looking people, who moved with bent shoulders and downcast eyes. There was no animation in their step and their whole demeanor seemed that of utter hopelessness. What a contrast they presented to the gay and happy girls who so joyously conducted us toward the main entrance of what I assumed to be the palace of the jed. Here, burly warriors were on guard—fat, oily looking fellows, whose appearance was not at all to my liking. As we approached them an officer emerged from the interior of the building. If possible, he was even fatter and more greasy looking than his men, but he smiled and bowed as he welcomed us.
As they took us down the avenue, I couldn’t help but notice how deserted the city looked. There were no signs of life around any of the buildings we passed, and we didn’t see another person until we reached an open plaza, where a huge building loomed with the tall tower we had spotted when we first came out of the forest. Here, we found a number of people, both men and women—sad, dejected individuals who walked with hunched shoulders and downcast eyes. Their steps had no energy, and their whole demeanor seemed completely hopeless. They were such a contrast to the cheerful and happy girls who had joyfully led us toward what I assumed was the palace of the jed. There, burly guards stood watch—big, greasy-looking guys whose appearance I really didn’t like. As we got closer, an officer came out from inside the building. If anything, he looked even fatter and greasier than his men, but he smiled and bowed as he welcomed us.
"Greetings!" he exclaimed. "May the peace of Ghasta be upon the strangers who enter her gates."
"Hello!" he exclaimed. "May the peace of Ghasta be with the strangers who come through her gates."
"Send word to Ghron, the great jed," said one of the girls to him, "that we are bringing two strange warriors who wish to do honor to him before partaking of the hospitality of Ghasta."
"Tell Ghron, the great jed," said one of the girls to him, "that we're bringing two unusual warriors who want to pay their respects to him before enjoying the hospitality of Ghasta."
As the officer dispatched a warrior to notify the jed of our coming, we were escorted into the interior of the palace. The furnishings were striking, but extremely fantastic in design and execution. The native wood of the forests had been used to fine advantage in the construction of numerous pieces of beautifully carved furniture, the grain of the woods showing lustrously in their various natural colors, the beauties of which were sometimes accentuated by delicate stain and by high polishes, but perhaps the most striking feature of the interior decorations was the gorgeously painted fabric of unbelievable lightness, which gave the impression of spun silver. So closely woven was it that, as I was to learn later, it would hold water and of such great strength that it was almost impossible to tear it.
As the officer sent a warrior to inform the jed of our arrival, we were led into the heart of the palace. The furnishings were impressive, yet incredibly imaginative in design and craftsmanship. The native wood from the forests was skillfully used in creating numerous beautifully carved pieces of furniture, showcasing the grain in their various natural colors. These natural beauties were sometimes enhanced by fine stains and high polish, but the most remarkable aspect of the interior decor was the exquisitely painted fabric that felt almost weightless, resembling spun silver. It was so tightly woven that, as I would later discover, it could hold water, and it was so strong that it was nearly impossible to tear.
Upon it were painted in brilliant colors the most fantastic scenes that imagination might conceive. There were spiders with the heads of beautiful women, and women with the heads of spiders. There were flowers and trees that danced beneath a great red sun, and great lizards, such as we had passed within the gloomy cavern on our journey down from Tjanath. In all the figures that were depicted there was nothing represented as nature had created it. It was as though some mad mind had conceived the whole.
Upon it were painted in bright colors the most amazing scenes that imagination could come up with. There were spiders with the heads of beautiful women, and women with the heads of spiders. There were flowers and trees that danced beneath a huge red sun, and large lizards, like the ones we had seen in the dark cave on our journey down from Tjanath. In all the figures depicted, nothing looked as nature intended. It was as if some crazed mind had imagined the whole thing.
As we waited in the great entrance hall of the palace of the jed, four of the girls danced for our entertainment—a strange dance such as I had never before seen upon Barsoom. Its steps and movements were as weird and fantastic as the mural decorations of the room in which it was executed, and yet with all there was a certain rhythm and suggestiveness in the undulations of those lithe bodies that imparted to us a feeling of well being and content.
As we waited in the large entrance hall of the jed's palace, four of the girls danced for our amusement—a peculiar dance that I had never seen before on Barsoom. Its steps and movements were as strange and extraordinary as the mural decorations of the room where it took place, yet there was a certain rhythm and allure in the flowing movements of those agile bodies that gave us a sense of well-being and satisfaction.
The fat and greasy padwar of the guard moistened his thick lips as he watched them and though he had doubtless seen them dance upon many occasions, he seemed to be much more affected than we, but perhaps he had no Phao or Sanoma Tora to occupy his thoughts.
The overweight and greasy guard moistened his thick lips as he watched them, and although he had surely seen them dance many times before, he seemed to be much more affected than we were. But maybe he didn't have a Phao or Sanoma Tora to distract him.
Sanoma Tora! The chiseled beauty of her noble face stood out clearly upon the screen of memory for a brief instant and then slowly it began to fade. I tried to recall it, to see again the short, haughty lip and the cold, level gaze, but it receded into a blue from which there presently emerged a pair of wondrous eyes, moist with tears, a perfect face and a head of tousled hair.
Sanoma Tora! The striking beauty of her noble face appeared vividly in my memory for a moment and then slowly began to fade. I tried to remember it, to see again the short, proud lip and the cold, steady gaze, but it slipped away into a blur from which a pair of amazing eyes, glistening with tears, a flawless face, and a head of messy hair eventually emerged.
It was then that the warrior returned to say that Ghron, the Jed, would receive us at once. Only the girls accompanied us, the fat padwar remaining behind, though I could have sworn that it was not through choice.
It was then that the warrior came back to let us know that Ghron, the Jed, would see us right away. Only the girls went with us, while the overweight padwar stayed behind, though I could have sworn it wasn't by choice.
The room in which the jed received us was upon the second level of the palace. It was a large room, even more grotesquely decorated than those through which we had passed. The furniture was of weird shapes and sizes, nothing harmonized with anything else and yet the result was a harmony of discord that was not at all unpleasing.
The room where the jed welcomed us was on the second floor of the palace. It was a large space, even more bizarrely decorated than the ones we had walked through. The furniture had strange shapes and sizes, nothing matched anything else, yet somehow it created a pleasing chaos.
The jed sat upon a perfectly enormous throne of volcanic glass. It was, perhaps, the most ornate and remarkable piece of furniture that I have ever seen and was the outstanding specimen of craftsmanship in the entire city of Ghasta, but if it caught my eye at the time it was only for an instant as nothing could for long distract one's attention from the jed himself. In the first glance he looked more like a hairy ape than a man. He was massively built with great, heavy, stooping shoulders and long arms covered with shaggy, black hair, the more remarkable, perhaps, because there is no race of hairy men upon Barsoom. His face was broad and flat and his eyes were so far apart that they seemed literally to be set in the corners of his face. As we were halted before him, he twisted his mouth into what I imagined at the time was intended for a smile, but which only succeeded in making him look more horrible than before.
The jed sat on an enormous throne made of volcanic glass. It was probably the most ornate and impressive piece of furniture I’ve ever seen and the finest example of craftsmanship in the entire city of Ghasta. But if it caught my eye for a moment, it was only because nothing could hold my attention for long like the jed himself. At first glance, he resembled a hairy ape more than a man. He was hugely built with broad, heavy shoulders and long arms covered in shaggy black hair, which was particularly striking since there are no races of hairy men on Barsoom. His face was wide and flat, and his eyes were so far apart that they seemed to be positioned in the corners of his face. As we stood before him, he twisted his mouth into what I thought was meant to be a smile, but it only made him look even more terrifying than before.
As is customary, we laid our swords at his feet and announced our names and our cities.
As usual, we placed our swords at his feet and introduced ourselves and our cities.
"Hadron of Hastor, Nur An of Jahar," he repeated. "Ghron, the Jed, welcomes you to Ghasta. Few are the visitors who find their way to our beautiful city. It is an event, therefore, when two such illustrious warriors honor us with a visit. Seldom do we receive word from the outer world. Tell us, then, of your journey and of what is transpiring upon the surface of Barsoom above us."
"Hadron of Hastor, Nur An of Jahar," he said again. "Ghron, the Jed, welcomes you to Ghasta. Not many visitors make it to our beautiful city. So, it’s a special occasion when two such renowned warriors come to see us. We rarely hear from the outside world. So please, tell us about your journey and what’s happening on the surface of Barsoom above us."
His words and his manner were those of a most solicitous host bent upon extending a proper and cordial welcome to strangers, but I could not rid myself of the belying suggestion of his repulsive countenance, though I could do no less than play the part of a grateful and appreciative guest.
His words and his demeanor were those of a very caring host eager to give a warm and friendly welcome to newcomers, but I couldn't shake the unsettling impression of his disgusting face, even though I had to act like a thankful and appreciative guest.
We told our stories and gave him much news of those portions of Barsoom with which each of us was familiar and as Nur An spoke, I looked about me at the assemblage in the great chamber. They were mostly women and many of them were young and beautiful. The men, for the most part, were gross looking, fat and oily, and there were certain lines of cruelty about their eyes and their mouths that did not escape me, though I tried to attribute it to the first depressing impression that the black and somber buildings and the deserted avenues had conveyed to my mind.
We shared our stories and told him a lot about the parts of Barsoom each of us knew. As Nur An spoke, I looked around the gathering in the large room. Most of them were women, and many were young and attractive. The men, on the other hand, mostly looked unappealing—heavyset and greasy—and I couldn't help but notice the hints of cruelty in their eyes and mouths, even though I tried to chalk it up to the bleak feelings the dark, gloomy buildings and empty streets had left me with.
When we had finished our recitals, Ghron announced that a banquet had been prepared in our honor and in person he led the procession from the throne room down a long corridor to a mighty banquet hall, in the center of which stood a great table, down the entire length of which was a magnificent decoration consisting entirely of the fruits and flowers of the forest through which we had passed. At one end of the table was the jed's throne and at the other were smaller thrones, one for Nur An and one for me. Seated on either side of us were the girls who had welcomed us to the city and whose business, it seemed, now was to entertain us.
When we finished our performances, Ghron announced that a banquet had been prepared in our honor and personally led the procession from the throne room down a long hallway to an impressive banquet hall. In the center was a large table adorned along its entire length with beautiful decorations made entirely from the fruits and flowers of the forest we had traveled through. At one end of the table was the jed's throne, and at the other were smaller thrones, one for Nur An and one for me. Seated on either side of us were the girls who had welcomed us to the city, and it seemed their role now was to entertain us.
The design of the dishes with which the table was set was quite in keeping with all the other mad designs of the palace of Ghron. No two plates or goblets or platters were of the same shape or size or design and nothing seemed suited to the purpose for which it was intended. My wine was served in a shallow, triangular-shaped saucer, while my meat was crammed into a tall, slender-stemmed goblet. However, I was too hungry to be particular, and, I hoped, too well conversant with the amenities of polite society to reveal the astonishment that I felt.
The design of the dishes on the table matched all the other crazy designs in the palace of Ghron. No two plates, goblets, or platters were the same shape, size, or style, and nothing seemed practical for its intended use. My wine was served in a shallow, triangular saucer, while my meat was stuffed into a tall, slim goblet. However, I was too hungry to be picky and, I hoped, too familiar with the niceties of polite society to show my surprise.
Here, as in other parts of the palace, the wall coverings were of the gossamer-like silver fabric that had attracted my attention and admiration the moment that I had entered the building and so fascinated was I by it that I could not refrain from mentioning it to the girl who sat at my right.
Here, just like in other areas of the palace, the walls were covered with the delicate silver fabric that had caught my eye and impressed me the moment I walked in. I was so taken with it that I couldn't help but mention it to the girl sitting beside me.
"There is no such fabric anywhere else in Barsoom," she said. "It is made here and only here."
"There’s no fabric like it anywhere else on Barsoom," she said. "It’s made right here and nowhere else."
"It is very beautiful," I said. "Other nations would pay well for it."
"It’s really beautiful," I said. "Other countries would pay a lot for it."
"If we could get it to them," she said, "but we have no intercourse with the world above us."
"If we could get it to them," she said, "but we have no connection with the world above us."
"Of what is it woven?" I asked.
"What's it made of?" I asked.
"When you entered the valley Hohr," she said, "you saw a beautiful forest, running down to the banks of the river Syl. Doubtless you saw fruit in the forest and, being hungry, you sought to gather it, but you were set upon by huge spiders that sped along silver threads, finer than a woman's hair."
"When you walked into the valley Hohr," she said, "you saw a gorgeous forest stretching down to the banks of the river Syl. I'm sure you noticed fruit in the forest and, feeling hungry, you tried to pick some, but you were attacked by enormous spiders that raced along silver threads, thinner than a woman's hair."
"Yes," I said, "that is just what happened."
"Yeah," I said, "that's exactly what happened."
"It is from this web, spun by those hideous spiders, that we weave our fabric. It is as strong as leather and as enduring as the rocks of which Ghasta is built."
"It is from this web, created by those ugly spiders, that we make our fabric. It’s as strong as leather and as lasting as the rocks that form Ghasta."
"Do women of Ghasta spin this wonderful fabric?" I asked.
"Do the women of Ghasta make this amazing fabric?" I asked.
"The slaves," she said, "both men and women."
"The slaves," she said, "both men and women."
"And from whence come your slaves?" I asked, "if you have no intercourse with the upper world?"
"And where do your slaves come from?" I asked, "if you have no connection with the outside world?"
"Many of them come down the river from Tjanath, where they have died The Death, and there are others who come from further up the river, but why they come or from whence we never know. They are silent people, who will not tell us, and sometimes they come from down the river, but these are few and usually are so crazed by the horrors of their journey that we can glean no knowledge from them."
"Many of them come down the river from Tjanath, where they have died the Death, and there are others who come from further up the river, but we never know why they come or where they are from. They are silent people who won’t tell us anything, and sometimes they come from down the river, but these are few and usually are so traumatized by the horrors of their journey that we can't gain any knowledge from them."
"And do any ever go on down the river from Ghasta?" I asked; for it was in that direction that Nur An and I hoped to make our way in search of liberty, as deep within me was the hope that we might reach the valley Dor and the lost sea of Korus, from which I was convinced I could escape, as did John Carter and Tars Tarkas.
"And do any ever go down the river from Ghasta?" I asked, because that was the direction Nur An and I planned to go in our quest for freedom. Deep inside, I hoped we could reach the valley Dor and the lost sea of Korus, from which I was sure I could escape, just like John Carter and Tars Tarkas.
"A few, perhaps," she said, "but we never know what becomes of these, for none returns."
"A few, maybe," she said, "but we never know what happens to them, since none ever comes back."
"You are happy here?" I asked.
"Are you happy here?" I asked.
She forced a smile to her beautiful lips, but I thought that a shudder ran through her frame.
She forced a smile onto her beautiful lips, but I sensed a shudder run through her body.
The banquet was elaborate and the food delicious. There was a great deal of laughter at the far end of the table where the jed sat, for those about him watched him closely, and when he laughed, which he always did at his own jokes, the others all laughed uproariously.
The banquet was extravagant and the food was tasty. There was a lot of laughter at the far end of the table where the jed sat, as everyone around him watched him closely, and whenever he laughed, which he always did at his own jokes, the others laughed loudly in response.
Toward the end of the meal a troupe of dancers entered the apartment. My first view of them almost took my breath away, for, with but a single exception, they were all horribly deformed. That one exception was the most beautiful girl I have ever seen—the most beautiful girl I have ever seen, with the saddest face that I have ever seen. She danced divinely and about her hopped and crawled the poor, unhappy creatures whose sad afflictions should have made them the objects of sympathy rather than ridicule and yet it was obvious that they had been selected for their part for the sole purpose of giving the audience an opportunity to vent its ridicule upon them. The sight of them seemed to incite Ghron to a pitch of frenzied mirth, and, to add to his own pleasure and to the discomforts of the poor, pathetic performers, he hurled food and plates at them as they danced about the banquet table.
Toward the end of the meal, a group of dancers came into the room. My first look at them nearly took my breath away because, with just one exception, they were all horribly deformed. That one exception was the most beautiful girl I have ever seen—the most beautiful girl I have ever seen, with the saddest face I have ever encountered. She danced beautifully, and around her hopped and crawled the poor, unhappy people whose sad conditions should have made them the subjects of sympathy rather than mockery. Yet it was clear they were chosen for this role solely to give the audience a chance to laugh at them. The sight of them seemed to drive Ghron into a frenzy of laughter, and, to heighten his enjoyment and increase the discomfort of the poor, pathetic performers, he threw food and plates at them as they danced around the banquet table.
I tried not to look at them, but there was a fascination in their deformities which attracted my gaze and presently it became apparent to me that the majority of them were artificially deformed, that they had been thus broken and bent at the behest of some malign mind and as I looked down the long board at the horrid face of Ghron, distorted by maniacal laughter, I could not but guess the author of their disfigurement.
I tried not to look at them, but their deformities were oddly fascinating and drew my attention. It soon became clear to me that most of them were artificially deformed, broken and twisted at the command of some malicious person. As I looked down the long board at the grotesque face of Ghron, twisted by maniacal laughter, I couldn't help but guess who was behind their disfigurement.
When at last they were gone, three large goblets of wine were borne into the banquet hall by a slave; two of them were red goblets and one was black. The black goblet was set before Ghron and the red ones before Nur An and me. Then Ghron rose and the whole company followed his example.
When they finally left, a servant brought in three large wine goblets to the banquet hall; two of them were red and one was black. The black goblet was placed in front of Ghron, and the red ones were set before Nur An and me. Then Ghron stood up, and everyone followed his lead.
"Ghron, the jed, drinks to the happiness of his honored guests," announced the ruler, and, raising the goblet to his lips, he drained it to the bottom.
"Ghron, the jed, drinks to the happiness of his honored guests," announced the ruler, and, raising the goblet to his lips, he emptied it completely.
It seemed obvious that this little ceremony would conclude the banquet and that it was intended Nur An and I should drink the health of our host. I, therefore, raised my goblet. It was the first time that anything had been served to me in the proper receptacle and I was glad that at last I might drink without incurring the danger of spilling most of the contents of the receptacle into my lap.
It was clear that this small ceremony was meant to wrap up the banquet and that Nur An and I were expected to toast our host. So, I lifted my goblet. It was the first time I was given something to drink in an appropriate vessel, and I was relieved that I could finally enjoy my drink without the risk of spilling most of it onto my lap.
"To the health and power of the great jed, Ghron," I said, and following my host's example, drained the contents of the goblet.
"To the health and power of the great jed, Ghron," I said, and following my host's lead, finished the drink in the goblet.
As Nur An followed my example with some appropriate words, I felt a sudden lethargy stealing over me and in the instant before I lost consciousness I realized that I had been given drugged wine.
As Nur An mimicked my actions with some fitting words, I felt a sudden wave of tiredness wash over me, and just before I passed out, I realized I had been given drugged wine.
When I regained consciousness I found myself lying upon the bare floor of a room of a peculiar shape that suggested it was the portion of the arc of a circle lying between the peripheries of two concentric circles. The narrow end of the room curved inward, the wider end outward. In the latter was a single, grated window; no door or other openings appeared in any of the walls, which were covered with the same silver fabric that I had noticed upon the walls and ceilings of the palace of the jed. Near me lay Nur An, evidently still under the influence of the opiate that had been administered to us in the wine.
When I woke up, I found myself lying on the bare floor of a strangely shaped room that seemed to be part of a circle lying between the edges of two concentric circles. The narrow end of the room curved inward, while the wider end curved outward. In the wider end, there was a single grated window; there were no doors or other openings in the walls, which were covered with the same silver fabric I had noticed on the walls and ceilings of the jed's palace. Nearby, Nur An was lying, clearly still under the effects of the drug that had been given to us in the wine.
Again I looked about the room. I arose and went to the window. Far below me I saw the roofs of the city. Evidently we were imprisoned in the lofty tower that rose from the center of the palace of the jed, but how had we been brought into the room? Certainly not through the window, which must have been fully two hundred feet above the city. While I was pondering this seemingly unanswerable problem, Nur An regained consciousness. At first he did not speak; he just lay there looking at me with a rueful smile upon his lips.
Again, I looked around the room. I got up and went to the window. Far below, I saw the rooftops of the city. Clearly, we were trapped in the tall tower that stood in the center of the jed's palace, but how had we ended up in this room? Definitely not through the window, which had to be at least two hundred feet above the city. While I was trying to figure out this seemingly impossible puzzle, Nur An woke up. At first, he didn't say anything; he just lay there, looking at me with a sad smile on his lips.
"Well?" I asked.
"Well?" I asked.
Nur An shook his head. "We still live," he said dismally, "but that is about the best that one may say."
Nur An shook his head. "We're still alive," he said gloomily, "but that's about the best thing you can say."
"We are in the palace of a maniac, Nur An," I said. "There is no doubt in my mind as to that. Everyone here lives in constant terror of Ghron and from what I have seen today they are warranted in feeling terror."
"We're in the palace of a madman, Nur An," I said. "I have no doubt about that. Everyone here lives in constant fear of Ghron, and from what I've seen today, their fear is completely justified."
"Yet I believe we saw little or nothing at that," said Nur An.
"Still, I think we didn't see much of anything at that," said Nur An.
"I saw enough," I replied.
"I've seen enough," I replied.
"Those girls were so beautiful," he said after a moment's silence. "I could not believe that such beauty and such duplicity could exist together."
"Those girls were so beautiful," he said after a moment of silence. "I couldn't believe that such beauty and such deception could exist together."
"Perhaps they were the unwilling tools of a cruel master," I suggested.
"Maybe they were the unwilling tools of a cruel boss," I suggested.
"I shall always like to think so," he said.
"I'll always like to think that," he said.
The day waned and night fell; no one came near us, but in the meantime I discovered something. Accidentally leaning against the wall at the narrow end of our room I found that it was very warm, in fact quite hot, and from this I inferred that the flue of the chimney from which we had seen the smoke issuing rose through the center of the tower and the wall of the chimney formed the rear wall of our apartment. It was a discovery, but at the moment it meant nothing to us.
The day faded and night set in; no one approached us, but during that time, I found something out. As I accidentally leaned against the wall at the narrow end of our room, I noticed it was very warm, actually quite hot. From this, I figured that the flue of the chimney, from which we had seen the smoke coming out, rose through the center of the tower and that the wall of the chimney was the back wall of our apartment. It was a discovery, but at that moment, it didn't mean anything to us.
There were no lights in our apartment, and, as only Cluros was in the heavens and he upon the opposite side of the tower, our prison was in almost total darkness. We were sitting in gloomy contemplation of our predicament, each wrapped in his own unhappy thoughts, when I heard footsteps apparently approaching from below. They came nearer and nearer until finally they ceased in an adjoining apartment, seemingly the one next to ours. A moment later there was a scraping sound and a line of light appeared at the bottom of one of the side walls. It kept growing in width until I finally realized that the entire partition wall was rising. In the opening we saw at first the sandaled feet of warriors, and finally, little by little, their entire bodies were revealed—two stalwart, brawny men, heavily armed. They carried manacles and with them they fastened our wrists behind our backs. They did not speak, but with a gesture one of them directed us to follow him, and, as we filed out of the room, the second warrior fell in behind us. In silence we entered a steep, spiral ramp, which we descended to the main body of the palace, but yet our escorts conducted us still lower until I knew that we must be in the pits beneath the palace.
There were no lights in our apartment, and since only Cluros was in the sky and he was on the opposite side of the tower, our prison was almost completely dark. We were sitting in a gloomy silence, each lost in our own unhappy thoughts, when I heard footsteps coming up from below. They got closer and closer until they stopped in an adjacent apartment, likely the one next to ours. A moment later, there was a scraping sound, and a line of light appeared at the bottom of one of the side walls. It widened until I realized that the entire partition wall was rising. In the opening, we first saw the sandaled feet of warriors, and little by little, their full bodies came into view—two strong, muscular men, heavily armed. They carried handcuffs and used them to secure our wrists behind our backs. They didn’t speak, but one of them signaled for us to follow him, and as we filed out of the room, the second warrior fell in behind us. In silence, we entered a steep, spiral ramp, which we descended to the main part of the palace, but our escorts took us even lower until I knew we must be in the pits beneath the palace.
The pits! Inwardly I shuddered. I much preferred the tower for I have always possessed an inherent horror of the pits. Perhaps these would be utterly dark and doubtless over-run by rats and lizards.
The pits! Inside, I shuddered. I much preferred the tower because I’ve always had a deep fear of the pits. Maybe they would be completely dark and definitely overrun with rats and lizards.
The ramp ended in a gorgeously decorated apartment in which was assembled about the same company of men and women that had partaken of the banquet with us earlier in the day. Here, too, was Ghron upon a throne. This time he did not smile as we entered the room. He did not seem to realize our presence. He was sitting, leaning forward, his eyes fixed upon something at the far end of the room over which hung a deadly silence that was suddenly shattered by a piercing scream of anguish. The scream was but a prelude to a series of similar cries of agony.
The ramp led to a beautifully decorated apartment where the same group of men and women who had joined us for the banquet earlier were gathered. Ghron was also there, sitting on a throne. This time, he didn't smile when we entered the room. He seemed unaware of us, leaning forward with his eyes locked on something at the far end of the room, which was shrouded in a tense silence that was abruptly broken by a chilling scream of pain. The scream was just the beginning of a series of similar cries of torment.
I looked quickly in the direction from which the screams came, the direction in which Ghron's gaze was fastened. I saw a naked woman chained to a grill before a hot fire. Evidently they had just placed her there as I had entered the room and it was her first shrill scream of agony that had attracted my attention.
I glanced quickly toward the source of the screams, where Ghron's gaze was fixed. I saw a naked woman chained to a grill over a hot fire. Clearly, they had just put her there right when I entered the room, and it was her first piercing scream of pain that caught my attention.
The grill was mounted upon wheels so that it could be removed to any distance from the fire that the torturer chose, or completely turned about presenting the other side of the victim to the blaze.
The grill was set on wheels so it could be moved any distance from the fire that the torturer wanted, or completely turned around to face the other side of the victim to the flames.
As my eyes wandered back to the audience I saw that most of the girls sat there glaring straight ahead, their eyes fixed with horror upon the horrid scene. I do not believe that they enjoyed it; I know that they did not. They were equally the unwilling victims of the cruel vagaries of Ghron's diseased mind, but like the poor creature upon the grill they were helpless.
As my eyes drifted back to the audience, I noticed that most of the girls were staring straight ahead, their eyes filled with fear as they watched the terrible scene. I don’t think they enjoyed it; I know they didn’t. They were just as much unwilling victims of Ghron's twisted mind, but like the unfortunate creature on the grill, they were powerless.
Next to the torture itself, the most diabolical conceit of the mind that had directed it was the utter silence enjoined upon all spectators against the background of which the shrieks and moans of the tortured victim evidently achieved their highest effectiveness upon the crazed mind of the jed.
Next to the torture itself, the most wicked idea from the mind that orchestrated it was the complete silence enforced on all spectators, against which the screams and moans of the tortured victim clearly had their greatest impact on the disturbed mind of the jed.
The spectacle was sickening. I turned my eyes away. Presently one of the warriors who had fetched us touched me on the arm and motioned me to follow him.
The scene was disgusting. I looked away. Soon, one of the warriors who had brought us here touched my arm and signaled for me to follow him.
He led us from this apartment to another and there we witnessed a scene infinitely more terrible than the grilling of the human victim. I cannot describe it; it tortures my memory even to think of it. Long before we reached that hideous apartment we heard the screams and curses of its inmates. In utter silence, our guard ushered us within. It was the chamber of horrors in which the Jed of Ghasta was creating abnormal deformities for his cruel dance of the cripples.
He took us from this apartment to another, and there we saw a scene that was far more horrifying than the torture of the human victim. I can’t describe it; just thinking about it torments my memory. Long before we got to that awful apartment, we could hear the screams and curses of the people inside. In complete silence, our guard led us in. It was a chamber of horrors where the Jed of Ghasta was creating grotesque deformities for his cruel dance of the cripples.
Still in silence, we were led from this horrid place and now our guide conducted us upward to a luxuriously furnished apartment. Upon divans lay two of the beautiful girls who had welcomed us to Ghasta.
Still in silence, we were led from this awful place, and now our guide took us up to a lavishly furnished apartment. On the couches lay two of the beautiful girls who had welcomed us to Ghasta.
For the first time since we had left our room in the tower one of our escort broke the silence. "They will explain," he said, pointing to the girls. "Do not try to escape. There is only one exit from this room. We will be waiting outside." He then removed our manacles and with his companion left the apartment, closing the door after them.
For the first time since we left our room in the tower, one of our escorts broke the silence. "They'll explain," he said, pointing to the girls. "Don't try to escape. There’s only one exit from this room. We’ll be waiting outside." He then took off our handcuffs and, along with his companion, left the room, closing the door behind them.
One of the occupants of the room was the same girl who had sat at my right during the banquet. I had found her most gracious and intelligent and to her I now turned.
One of the people in the room was the same girl who had sat to my right during the banquet. I had found her to be very gracious and smart, and so I turned to her now.
"What is the meaning of this?" I demanded. "Why are we made prisoners? Why have we been brought here?"
"What does this mean?" I asked. "Why are we being held captive? Why were we brought here?"
She beckoned me to come to the divan on which she reclined and as I approached she motioned to me to sit down beside her.
She signaled for me to come over to the couch where she was lounging, and as I got closer, she gestured for me to sit next to her.
"What you have seen tonight," she said, "represents the three fates that lie in store for you. Ghron has taken a fancy to you and he is giving you your choice."
"What you’ve seen tonight," she said, "represents the three paths that await you. Ghron has taken an interest in you and he’s offering you your choice."
"I do not yet quite understand," I said.
"I still don't quite understand," I said.
"You saw the victim before the grill?" she asked.
"You saw the victim before the grill?" she asked.
"Yes," I replied.
"Yeah," I replied.
"Would you care to suffer that fate?"
"Would you want to suffer that fate?"
"Scarcely."
"Hardly."
"You saw the unhappy ones being bent and broken for the dance of the cripples," she pursued.
"You saw the unhappy ones being twisted and broken for the dance of the disabled," she continued.
"I did," I answered.
"I did," I replied.
"And now you see this luxurious room—and me. Which would you choose?"
"And now you see this fancy room—and me. Which one would you pick?"
"I cannot believe," I replied, "that the final alternative is without conditions, which might make it appear less attractive than it now seems, for otherwise there could be no possible question as to which I would choose."
"I can't believe," I replied, "that the final option is unconditional, which could make it seem less appealing than it does now, because otherwise there would be no doubt about which one I would choose."
"You are right," she said. "There are conditions."
"You’re right," she said. "There are conditions."
"What are they?" I asked.
"What are those?" I asked.
"You will become an officer in the palace of the jed and as such you will conduct tortures similar to those you have witnessed in the pits of the palace. You will be guided by whatever whim may possess your master."
"You will become an officer in the palace of the jed, and as such, you will carry out tortures similar to those you have seen in the palace pits. You will be guided by whatever whim your master desires."
I drew myself to my full height. "I choose the fire," I said.
I stood tall. "I choose the fire," I said.
"I knew that you would," she said sadly, "and yet I hoped that you might not."
"I knew you would," she said sadly, "but I still hoped you might not."
"It is not because of you," I said quickly. "It is the other conditions which no man of honor could accept."
"It’s not because of you," I said quickly. "It’s the other conditions that no man of honor could accept."
"I know," she said, "and had you accepted them I must eventually have despised you as I despise the others."
"I know," she said, "and if you had accepted them, I would have eventually come to despise you like I do the others."
"You are unhappy here?" I asked.
"You aren't happy here?" I asked.
"Of course," she said. "Who but a maniac could be happy in this horrid place? There are, perhaps, six hundred people in the city and there is not one who knows happiness. A hundred of us form the court of the jed; the others are slaves. As a matter of fact, we are all slaves, subject to every mad whim or caprice of the maniac who is our master."
"Obviously," she replied. "Who but a crazy person could be happy in this terrible place? There are maybe six hundred people in the city, and not one of them knows happiness. A hundred of us make up the jed's court; the rest are slaves. Actually, we’re all slaves, at the mercy of every crazy whim or fancy of the maniac who's our master."
"And there is no escape?" I asked.
"And there's no way out?" I asked.
"None."
"None."
"I shall escape," I said.
"I'm going to escape," I said.
"How?"
"How?"
"The fire," I replied.
"The fire," I said.
She shuddered. "I do not know why I should care so much," she said, "unless it is that I liked you from the first. Even while I was helping to lure you into the city for the human spider of Ghasta, I wished that I might warn you not to enter, but I was afraid, just as I am afraid to die. I wish that I had your courage to escape through the fire."
She shuddered. "I don’t know why I care so much," she said, "unless it’s because I liked you from the start. Even when I was helping to draw you into the city for the human spider of Ghasta, I wanted to warn you not to go in, but I was scared, just like I’m scared to die. I wish I had your courage to escape through the fire."
I turned to Nur An, who had been listening to our conversation. "You have reached your decision?" I asked.
I turned to Nur An, who had been listening to our conversation. "Have you made your decision?" I asked.
"Certainly," he said. "There could be but one decision for a man of honor."
"Of course," he said. "A man of honor can only have one choice."
"Good!" I exclaimed, and then I turned to the girl. "You will notify Ghron of our decision?" I asked.
"Great!" I said, then I turned to the girl. "Will you let Ghron know about our decision?" I asked.
"Wait," she said; "ask for time in which to consider it. I know that it will make no difference in the end, but yet—Oh, even yet there is a germ of hope within me that even utter hopelessness cannot destroy."
"Wait," she said. "Ask for some time to think about it. I know it won't change anything in the end, but still—Oh, there’s still a tiny bit of hope inside me that even complete hopelessness can't take away."
"You are right," I said. "There is always hope. Let him think that you have half persuaded us to accept the life of luxury and ease that he has offered as an alternative to death or torture, and that if you are given a little more time you may succeed. In the meantime we may be able to work out some plan of escape."
"You’re right," I said. "There’s always hope. Let him believe that you’ve almost convinced us to choose the luxurious and easy life he’s offering instead of death or torture, and that if you just get a little more time, you might succeed. In the meantime, we might be able to figure out a plan to escape."
"Never," she said.
"Not a chance," she said.
IX
IX
PHOR TAK OF JHAMA
Phor tak of jhama
Back in our quarters in the chimney tower, Nur An and I discussed every mad plan of escape that entered our brains. For some reason our fetters had not been replaced, which gave us at least as much freedom of action as our apartment afforded and you may rest assured that we took full advantage of it, examining minutely every square inch of the floor and the walls as far up as we could reach, but our combined efforts failed to reveal any means for raising the partition which closed the only avenue of escape from our prison, with the exception of the window which, while heavily barred and some two hundred feet above the ground, was by no means, therefore, eliminated from our plans.
Back in our room in the chimney tower, Nur An and I talked about every crazy escape plan that popped into our heads. For some reason, our shackles hadn’t been put back on, which gave us as much freedom of movement as our space allowed, and you can be sure we made the most of it, closely inspecting every square inch of the floor and the walls as high as we could reach. However, despite our efforts, we couldn’t find any way to lift the partition that blocked our only escape route from our prison, aside from the window, which, while heavily barred and about two hundred feet above the ground, was still very much part of our plans.
The heavy vertical bars which protected the window withstood our combined efforts when we sought to bend them, though Nur An is a powerful man, while I have always been lauded for my unusual muscular development. The bars were set a little too close together to permit our bodies to pass through, but the removal of one of them would leave an opening of ample size; yet to what purpose? Perhaps the same answer was in Nur An's mind that was in mine—that when hope was gone and the sole alternative remaining was the fire within the grill, we might at least cheat Ghron could we but hurl ourselves from this high flung window to the ground far below.
The heavy vertical bars protecting the window stood firm against our combined attempts to bend them, even though Nur An is a strong man and I've always been praised for my exceptional muscle development. The bars were set a bit too close together for us to squeeze through, but removing one of them would leave a large enough opening; yet for what purpose? Maybe we both thought the same thing—that when all hope was lost and the only option left was the fire in the grill, we could at least outsmart Ghron if we could throw ourselves from this high window to the ground far below.
But whatever end each of us may have had in view, he kept it to himself and when I started digging at the mortar at the bottom of one of the bars with the prong of a buckle from my harness, Nur An asked no questions but set to work similarly upon the mortar at the top of the same bar. We worked in silence and with little fear of discovery, as no one had entered our prison since we had been incarcerated there. Once a day the partition was raised a few inches and food slipped in to us beneath it, but we did not see the person who brought it, nor did anyone communicate with us from the time that the guards had taken us to the palace that first night up to the moment that we had finally succeeded in loosening the bar so that it could be easily removed from its seat.
But whatever goal each of us might have had in mind, he kept it to himself. When I started chipping away at the mortar at the bottom of one of the bars with the prong of a buckle from my harness, Nur An asked no questions and began working on the mortar at the top of the same bar. We worked silently and with little fear of being discovered, since no one had entered our prison since we had been locked up there. Once a day, the partition was lifted a few inches, and food was slipped in beneath it, but we never saw the person who brought it, nor did anyone communicate with us from the time the guards had taken us to the palace that first night until we finally managed to loosen the bar so it could be easily taken out of its place.
I shall never forget with what impatience we awaited the coming of night, that we might remove the bar and investigate the surrounding surface of the tower, for it had occurred to me that it might offer a means of descent to the ground below, or rather to the roof of the building which it surmounted, from where we might hope to make our way to the summit of the city wall undetected. Already, in view of this possibility, I had planned to tear strips from the fabric covering our walls wherewith to make a rope down which we might lower ourselves to the ground beyond the city wall.
I will never forget how impatiently we waited for night to fall so we could take down the bar and check the surrounding area of the tower. I thought it might provide a way to get down to the ground below, or more accurately, to the roof of the building above us, from where we could hopefully sneak our way to the top of the city wall without being noticed. Already, considering this possibility, I had planned to rip strips from the fabric covering our walls to make a rope that we could use to lower ourselves down to the ground beyond the city wall.
As night approached I commenced to realize how high I had built my hopes upon this idea. It already seemed as good as accomplished, especially when I had utilized the possibilities of the rope to its fullest extent, which included making one of sufficient length to reach from our window to the bottom of the tower. Thus every obstacle was overcome. It was then, just at dusk, that I explained my plan to Nur An.
As night fell, I started to realize how much I had pinned my hopes on this idea. It already felt like it was as good as done, especially since I had taken full advantage of the rope's potential, including making one long enough to reach from our window to the base of the tower. So, every obstacle was cleared. It was then, right at dusk, that I shared my plan with Nur An.
"Fine," he exclaimed. "Let us start at once making our rope. We know how strong this fabric is and that a slender strand of it will support our weight. There is enough upon one wall to make all the rope we need."
"Okay," he said. "Let's get started on making our rope right away. We know how strong this material is and that a thin strand of it can hold our weight. There’s plenty on one wall to create all the rope we need."
Success seemed almost assured as we started to remove the fabric from one of the larger walls, but here we met with our first obstacle. The fabric was fastened at the top and at the bottom with large headed nails, set close together, which withstood our every effort to tear it loose. Thin and light in weight, this remarkable fabric appeared absolutely indestructible and we were almost exhausted by our efforts when we were finally forced to admit defeat.
Success seemed almost certain as we began to take down the fabric from one of the larger walls, but here we faced our first challenge. The fabric was attached at the top and bottom with large-headed nails, placed closely together, which resisted all our attempts to pull it free. Thin and lightweight, this incredible fabric seemed completely unbreakable, and we were nearly worn out by our efforts when we finally had to accept defeat.
The quick Barsoomian night had fallen and we might now, with comparative safety, remove the bar from the window and reconnoiter for the first time beyond the restricted limits of our cell, but hope was now low within our breasts and it was with little anticipation of encouragement that I drew myself to the sill and projected my head and shoulders through the aperture.
The fast Barsoomian night had come, and we could now, with relative safety, take the bar off the window and scout for the first time beyond the limited space of our cell. However, hope was low within us, and I approached the sill with little expectation of finding anything encouraging as I pushed my head and shoulders through the opening.
Below me lay the somber, gloomy city, its blackness relieved by but a few dim lights, most of which shone faintly from the palace windows. I passed my palm over the surface of the tower that lay within arm's reach, and again my heart sank within me. Smooth, almost glass-like volcanic rock, beautifully cut and laid, offered not the slightest handhold—indeed an insect might have found it difficult to have clung to its polished surface.
Below me lay the dark, depressing city, its blackness broken only by a few dim lights, mostly shining weakly from the palace windows. I ran my hand over the surface of the tower that was within reach, and once more my heart sank. The smooth, almost glass-like volcanic rock, beautifully shaped and positioned, provided no grip at all—indeed, even an insect would have struggled to cling to its polished surface.
"It is quite hopeless," I said as I drew my head back into the room. "The tower is as smooth as a woman's breast."
"It’s completely hopeless," I said as I pulled my head back into the room. "The tower is as smooth as a woman's breast."
"What is above?" asked Nur An.
"What’s up there?" asked Nur An.
Again I leaned out, this time looking upward. Just above me were the eaves of the tower—our cell was at the highest level of the structure. Something impelled me to investigate in that direction—an insane urge, perhaps, born of despair.
Again I leaned out, this time looking up. Just above me were the edges of the tower—our cell was at the highest level of the building. Something pushed me to check in that direction—maybe a crazy urge, fueled by despair.
"Hold my ankles, Nur An," I said, "and in the name of your first ancestor, hold tightly!"
"Hold my ankles, Nur An," I said, "and for the sake of your first ancestor, hold on tight!"
Clinging to two of the remaining bars I raised myself to a standing position upon the window ledge, while Nur An clung to my ankles. I could just reach the top of the eaves with my extended fingers. Lowering myself again to the sill, I whispered to Nur An. "I am going to attempt to reach the roof of the tower," I exclaimed.
Clinging to two of the remaining bars, I pulled myself up to a standing position on the window ledge, while Nur An held on to my ankles. I could just touch the top of the eaves with my outstretched fingers. Lowering myself back down to the sill, I whispered to Nur An, "I'm going to try to reach the roof of the tower," I said.
"Why?" he asked.
"Why?" he asked.
I laughed. "I do not know," I admitted, "but something within my inner consciousness seems insistently to urge me on.”
I laughed. "I don't know," I admitted, "but something inside me keeps pushing me forward."
"If you fall," he said, "you will have escaped the fire—and I will follow you. Good luck, my friend from Hastor!"
"If you fall," he said, "you'll escape the fire—and I’ll come after you. Good luck, my friend from Hastor!"
Once again I raised myself to a standing position upon the sill and reached upward until my fingers bent above the edge of the lofty roof. Slowly I drew myself upward; below me, two hundred feet, lay the palace roof and death. I am very strong—only a very strong man could have hoped to succeed, for I had at best but a precarious hold upon the flat roof above me, but, at last, I succeeded in getting an elbow over and then I drew my body slowly over the edge until, at last, I lay panting upon the basalt flagging that topped the slender tower.
Once again, I pulled myself up to a standing position on the ledge and reached up until my fingers curled over the edge of the high roof. Slowly, I hoisted myself upward; two hundred feet below me was the palace roof and certain death. I'm really strong—only a very strong person could have dared to try, as I had at best a shaky grip on the flat roof above me. But finally, I managed to get an elbow over and then I eased my body over the edge until I finally lay gasping on the basalt pavement that topped the slender tower.
Resting a few moments, I arose to my feet. Mad, passionate Thuria raced across the cloudless sky; Cluros, her cold spouse, swung his aloof circle in splendid isolation; below me lay the valley of Hohr like some enchanted fairyland of ancient lore; above me frowned the beetling cliff that hemmed in this madman's world.
Resting for a moment, I stood up. Wild, passionate Thuria raced across the clear sky; Cluros, her distant husband, circled in his lonely orbit; below me was the valley of Hohr, looking like an enchanted fairyland from ancient tales; above me loomed the steep cliff that surrounded this crazy world.
A puff of hot air struck me suddenly in the face, recalling to my mind that far below in the pits of Ghasta an orgy of torture was occurring. Faintly a scream arose from the black mouth of the flue behind me. I shuddered, but my attention was centered upon the yawning opening now and I approached it. Almost unbearable waves of heat were billowing upward from the mouth of the chimney. There was little smoke, so perfect was the combustion, but what there was shot into the air at terrific velocity. It almost seemed that were I to cast myself upon it I should be carried far aloft.
A blast of hot air hit me in the face, bringing to mind that down in the pits of Ghasta, a horrific scene of torture was unfolding. A faint scream drifted up from the dark mouth of the flue behind me. I shuddered, but my focus was on the gaping opening in front of me as I moved closer. Intense waves of heat were rising from the chimney's mouth. There was barely any smoke—so complete was the combustion—but what little there was shot up into the air at an incredible speed. It almost felt like if I threw myself into it, I would be lifted high into the sky.
It was then that a thought was born—a mad, impossible idea, it seemed, and yet it clung to me as I lowered myself gingerly over the outer edge of the tower and finally regained the greater security of my cell.
It was then that a thought was born—a crazy, impossible idea, it seemed, and yet it hung on to me as I carefully lowered myself over the outer edge of the tower and finally got back to the greater safety of my cell.
I was about to explain my insane plan to Nur An when I was interrupted by sounds from the adjoining chamber and an instant later the partition started to rise. I thought they were bringing us food again, but the partition rose further than was necessary for the passing of food receptacles beneath it and a moment later we saw the ankles and legs of a woman beneath the base of the rising wall. Then a girl stooped and entered our cell. In the light from the adjoining room I recognized her—she who had been selected by Ghron to lure me to his will. Her name was Sharu.
I was just about to share my crazy plan with Nur An when I heard noises from the next room, and in an instant, the partition started to rise. I thought they were bringing us food again, but the partition lifted higher than necessary for passing food containers underneath it, and a moment later, we saw a woman's ankles and legs beneath the base of the rising wall. Then a girl bent down and entered our cell. In the light from the other room, I recognized her—she had been chosen by Ghron to manipulate me. Her name was Sharu.
Nur An had quickly replaced the bar in the window and when the girl entered there was nothing to indicate that aught was amiss, or that one of us had so recently been outside our cell. The partition remained half raised, permitting light to enter the apartment, and the girl, looking at me, must have noticed my gaze wandering to the adjoining room.
Nur An had quickly put the bar back in the window, and when the girl walked in, there was nothing to suggest that anything was wrong or that one of us had just been outside our cell. The partition was still half raised, allowing light to stream into the apartment, and the girl, glancing at me, must have seen my eyes drift toward the next room.
"Do not let your hopes rise," she said with a rueful smile. "There are guards waiting at the level next below."
"Don't get your hopes up," she said with a sad smile. "There are guards waiting on the level below."
"Why are you here, Sharu?" I asked.
"Why are you here, Sharu?" I asked.
"Ghron sent me," she replied. "He is impatient for your decision."
"Ghron sent me," she said. "He's eager to hear your decision."
I thought quickly. Our only hope lay in the sympathy of this girl, whose attitude in the past had at least demonstrated her friendliness. "Had we a dagger and a needle," I said in a low whisper, "we could give Ghron his answer upon the morning of the day after tomorrow."
I thought fast. Our only chance was the sympathy of this girl, whose behavior before had at least shown she was friendly. "If we had a dagger and a needle," I said quietly, "we could give Ghron our answer on the morning of the day after tomorrow."
"What reason can I give him for this further delay?" she asked after a moment's thought.
"What reason can I give him for this further delay?" she asked after thinking for a moment.
"Tell him," said Nur An, "that we are communing with our ancestors and that upon their advice shall depend our decision."
"Tell him," said Nur An, "that we are connecting with our ancestors and that our decision will depend on their guidance."
Sharu smiled. She drew a dagger from its sheath at her side and laid it upon the floor and from a pocket pouch attached to her harness she produced a needle, which she laid beside the dagger. "I shall convince Ghron that it is best to wait," she said. "My heart had hoped, Hadron of Hastor, that you would decide to remain with me, but I am glad that I have not been mistaken in my estimate of your character. You will die, my warrior, but at least you will die as a brave man should and undefiled. Good-bye! I look upon you in life for the last time, but until I am gathered to my ancestors your image shall remain enshrined within my heart."
Sharu smiled. She pulled a dagger from its sheath at her side and placed it on the floor. From a pocket pouch on her harness, she took out a needle and set it down next to the dagger. "I will make Ghron see that waiting is the best option," she said. "I had hoped, Hadron of Hastor, that you would choose to stay with me, but I’m glad I wasn’t wrong about who you are. You will die, my warrior, but at least you will die as a brave man should and untainted. Goodbye! This is the last time I will see you alive, but until I join my ancestors, your image will always be in my heart."
She was gone; the partition dropped, and again we were left in the semi-darkness of a moonlit night, but now we had the two things that I most desired—a dagger and a needle.
She was gone; the partition fell, and once more we were in the dim light of a moonlit night, but now we had the two things I wanted most—a dagger and a needle.
"Of what good are those?" asked Nur An as I gathered the two articles from the floor.
"What's the point of those?" asked Nur An as I picked up the two items from the floor.
"You will see," I replied, and immediately I set to work cutting the fabric from the walls of our cell and then, standing upon Nur An's shoulders, I removed also that which covered the ceiling. I worked quickly for I knew that we had little time in which to accomplish that which I had set out to do. A mad scheme it was, and yet withal within the realms of practicability.
"You'll see," I said, and right away I started cutting the fabric off the walls of our cell. Then, standing on Nur An's shoulders, I took down the stuff covering the ceiling too. I moved fast because I knew we didn't have much time to get done what I planned. It was a crazy idea, but still doable.
Working in the dark, more by sense of feel than by sight, I must have been inspired by some higher power to have accomplished with any degree of perfection the task that I had set myself.
Working in the dark, relying more on touch than sight, I must have been guided by some higher force to achieve the task I set for myself with any level of perfection.
The balance of that night and all of the following day Nur An and I labored without rest until we had fashioned an enormous bag from the fabric that had covered the walls and ceiling of our cell and from the scraps that remained we fashioned long ropes and when night fell again our task was completed.
The rest of that night and all of the next day, Nur An and I worked non-stop until we made a huge bag from the fabric that had covered the walls and ceiling of our cell. From the leftover scraps, we created long ropes, and when night fell again, our job was finished.
"May luck be with us," I said.
"Good luck to us," I said.
"The scheme is worthy of the mad brain of Ghron himself," said Nur An; "yet it has within it the potentialities of success."
"The plan is worthy of Ghron’s wild imagination," said Nur An; "yet it has the potential for success."
"Night has fallen," I said; "we need not delay longer. Of one thing, however, we may be sure, whether we succeed or fail we shall have escaped the fire and in either event may our ancestors look with love and compassion upon Sharu, whose friendship has made possible our attempt."
"Night has fallen," I said; "we can't wait any longer. But one thing is for certain, whether we succeed or fail, we will have avoided the fire, and in either case, may our ancestors view Sharu with love and compassion, as their friendship has made our attempt possible."
"Whose love," corrected Nur An.
"Whose love?" corrected Nur An.
Once again I made the perilous ascent to the roof, taking one of our new made ropes with me. Then, from the summit, I lowered it to Nur An, who fastened the great bag to it; after which I drew the fruits of our labors carefully to the roof beside me. It was as light as a feather, yet stronger than the well tanned hide of a zitidar. Next, I lowered the rope and assisted Nur An to my side, but not until he had replaced the bar that we had removed from the window.
Once again, I climbed up to the roof, bringing one of our newly made ropes with me. From the top, I lowered it to Nur An, who attached the big bag to it; then I carefully pulled the fruits of our labor up to the roof next to me. It was as light as a feather, yet tougher than the well-tanned hide of a zitidar. Next, I lowered the rope again and helped Nur An to my side, but not before he put back the bar we had taken out of the window.
Attached to the bottom of our bag, which was open, were a number of long cords, terminating in loops. Through these loops we passed the longest rope that we had made—a rope so long that it entirely encircled the circumference of the tower—when we lowered it below the projecting eaves. We made it fast there, but with a slip knot that could be instantly released with a single jerk.
Attached to the bottom of our bag, which was open, were several long cords ending in loops. Through these loops, we fed the longest rope we had made—a rope so long that it completely wrapped around the tower—when we lowered it below the jutting eaves. We secured it there, but with a slip knot that could be easily released with a quick pull.
Next, we slid the loops at the end of the ropes attached to the bottom of the bag along the cord that encircled the tower below the eaves until we had maneuvered the opening of the bag directly over the mouth of the flue leading down into the furnace of death in the pits of Ghasta. Standing upon either side of the flue Nur An and I lifted the bag until it commenced to fill with the hot air rushing from the chimney. Presently it was sufficiently inflated to remain in an erect position, whereupon, leaving Nur An to steady it, I moved the loops until they were at equal distances from one another, thus anchoring the bag directly over the center of the flue. Then I passed another rope loosely through the loops and secured its ends together, and to opposite sides of this rope Nur An and I snapped the boarding hooks that are a part of the harness of every Barsoomian warrior, the primary purpose of which is to lower boarding parties from the deck of one ship to that of another directly below, but which in practice are used in countless ways and numerous emergencies.
Next, we slid the loops at the end of the ropes attached to the bottom of the bag along the cord that wrapped around the tower below the eaves until we had positioned the opening of the bag directly over the mouth of the flue leading down into the furnace of death in the pits of Ghasta. Standing on either side of the flue, Nur An and I lifted the bag until it began to fill with the hot air rushing from the chimney. Soon, it was inflated enough to stay upright, and leaving Nur An to steady it, I adjusted the loops so they were evenly spaced, anchoring the bag right over the center of the flue. Then, I threaded another rope loosely through the loops, secured its ends together, and to opposite sides of this rope, Nur An and I clipped the boarding hooks that are part of every Barsoomian warrior's harness. These hooks are mainly used to lower boarding parties from the deck of one ship to another directly below, but in practice, they serve countless purposes in various emergencies.
Then we waited; Nur An ready to slip the knot that held the rope around the tower beneath the eaves and I, upon the opposite side, with Sharu's sharp dagger prepared to cut the rope upon my side.
Then we waited; Nur An ready to loosen the knot that held the rope around the tower under the eaves, and I, on the opposite side, with Sharu's sharp dagger ready to cut the rope on my side.
I saw the great bag that we had made filling with hot air. At first, loosely inflated, it rocked and swayed, but presently, its sides distended, it strained upward. Its fabric stretched tightly until I thought that it should burst. It tugged and pulled at its restraining cords, and yet I waited.
I saw the big bag we made filling up with hot air. At first, it was loosely inflated, rocking and swaying, but soon, its sides expanded as it strained upward. The fabric stretched tight until I thought it would burst. It tugged and pulled at its restraining cords, and yet I waited.
Down in the valley of Hohr there was little or no wind, which greatly facilitated the carrying out of our rash venture.
Down in the valley of Hohr, there was hardly any wind, which made it much easier for us to go through with our risky plan.
The great bag, almost as large as the room in which we had been confined, bellied above us. It strained upon its guy ropes in its impatience to be aloft until I wondered that they held, and then I gave the word.
The huge bag, nearly as big as the room we were stuck in, swelled above us. It tugged at its guy ropes, eager to go up, and I started to wonder if they could hold. Then I gave the signal.
Simultaneously Nur An slipped his knot and I severed the rope upon the opposite side. Freed, the great bag leaped aloft, snapping us in its wake. It shot upward with a velocity that was astounding until the valley of Hohr was but a little hollow in the surface of the great world that lay below us.
Simultaneously, Nur An loosened his knot while I cut the rope on the other side. Once we were free, the huge bag shot up into the air, catching us off guard. It soared upward with an incredible speed until the valley of Hohr became just a small dip in the vast world beneath us.
Presently a wind caught us and you may be assured that we gave thanks to our ancestors as we realized that we were at last drifting from above the cruel city of Ghasta. The wind increased until it was blowing rapidly in a northeasterly direction, but little did we care where it wafted us as long as it took us away from the river Syl and the valley of Hohr.
Right now, a breeze picked up, and we made sure to thank our ancestors as we realized we were finally drifting away from the harsh city of Ghasta. The wind picked up speed, blowing quickly northeast, but we didn’t mind where it took us, as long as it moved us away from the river Syl and the valley of Hohr.
After we had passed beyond the crater of the ancient volcano, which formed the bed of the valley in which lay somber Ghasta, we saw below us, in the moonlight, a rough volcanic country that presented a weird and impressive appearance of unreality; deep chasms and tumbled piles of basalt seemed to present an unsurmountable barrier to man, which may explain why in this remote and desolate corner of Barsoom the valley of Hohr had lain for countless ages undiscovered.
After we passed the crater of the ancient volcano that formed the valley where gloomy Ghasta lay, we looked down in the moonlight at a harsh volcanic landscape that looked strange and unreal; deep gorges and scattered piles of basalt seemed to create an insurmountable barrier for humans, which might explain why this isolated and desolate part of Barsoom, the valley of Hohr, had remained undiscovered for countless ages.
The wind increased. Floating at a great altitude we were being carried at considerable speed, yet I could see that we were very slowly falling as the hot air within our bag cooled. How much longer it would keep us up I could not guess, but I hoped it would bear us at least beyond the uninviting terrain beneath us.
The wind picked up. Soaring at a high altitude, we were moving quickly, but I noticed that we were gradually descending as the hot air in our balloon cooled. I couldn’t tell how much longer it would keep us aloft, but I hoped it would carry us at least beyond the unappealing land below us.
With the coming of dawn we were floating but a few hundred feet above the ground; the volcanic country was far behind us and as far as we could see stretched lovely, rolling hills, sparsely timbered with the drought resisting skeel upon which it has been said the civilization of Barsoom has been erected.
With the arrival of dawn, we were floating just a few hundred feet above the ground; the volcanic landscape was far behind us, and as far as we could see were beautiful, rolling hills, lightly covered with the drought-resistant skeel, which is said to be the foundation of Barsoom's civilization.
As we topped a low hill, passing over it by a scant fifty sofads, we saw below us a building of gleaming white. Like all the cities and isolated buildings of Barsoom, it was surrounded by a lofty wall, but in other respects it differed materially from the usual Barsoomian type of architecture. The edifice, which was made up of a number of buildings, was not surmounted by the usual towers, domes and minarets that mark all Barsoomian cities and which only in recent ages have been giving away slowly to the flat landing stages of an aerial world. The structure below us was composed of a number of flat roofed buildings of various heights, none of which, however, appeared to rise over four levels. Between the buildings and the outer walls and in several open courts between the buildings, there was a profusion of trees and shrubbery with scarlet sward and well kept paths. It was, in fact, a striking and beautiful sight, yet having so recently been lured to near destruction by the beauties of Hohr and the engaging allurements of her beautiful women, we had no mind to be deceived again by external appearances. We would float over the palace of enchantment and take our chances in the open country beyond.
As we crested a low hill, just fifty sofads above, we spotted a shiny white building below us. Like all the cities and isolated structures on Barsoom, it was surrounded by a tall wall, but it noticeably differed from typical Barsoomian architecture. The structure, made up of several buildings, didn’t have the usual towers, domes, and minarets that characterize all Barsoomian cities, which have only recently started to be replaced by flat landing stages for aircraft. The building below consisted of several flat-roofed structures of varying heights, none taller than four stories. Between the buildings and the outer walls, as well as in various open courtyards, there was an abundance of trees and shrubs, featuring vibrant red grass and well-maintained paths. It was truly a stunning and beautiful sight; however, having just escaped near destruction because of the charm of Hohr and its captivating women, we were not about to be fooled again by appearances. We would float over the palace of enchantment and take our chances in the open countryside beyond.
But fate willed otherwise. The wind had abated; we were dropping rapidly; beneath us we saw people in the garden of the building and simultaneously, as they discovered us, it was evident that they were filled with consternation. They hastened quickly to the nearest entrances and there was not a human being in sight when we finally came to rest upon the roof of one of the taller sections of the structure.
But fate had other plans. The wind had died down; we were falling quickly; below us, we saw people in the garden of the building, and as soon as they spotted us, it was clear that they were shocked. They hurried to the nearest entrances, and by the time we landed on the roof of one of the taller sections of the structure, there wasn't a person in sight.
As we extricated ourselves from the loops in which we had been sitting, the great bag, relieved of our weight, rose quickly into the air for a short distance, turned completely over and dropped to the ground just beyond the outer wall. It had served us well and now it seemed like a living thing that had given up its life for our salvation.
As we freed ourselves from the loops we had been sitting in, the big bag, no longer weighed down by us, quickly lifted into the air for a brief moment, flipped over completely, and then landed just outside the outer wall. It had done its job for us, and now it felt almost like a living being that had sacrificed itself for our safety.
We were to have little time, however, for sentimental regrets, for almost immediately a head appeared through a small opening in the roof upon which we stood. The head was followed by the body of a man, whose harness was so scant as to leave him almost nude. He was an old man with a finely shaped head, covered with scant, gray locks.
We didn't have much time for sentimental regrets, though, because almost right away, a head popped up through a small opening in the roof we were standing on. The head was soon followed by the body of a man, whose harness was so minimal it left him nearly nude. He was an old man with a well-shaped head, covered in thin gray hair.
Apparent physical old age is so rare upon Barsoom as always to attract immediate attention. In the natural span of life we live often to a thousand years, but during that long period our appearance seldom changes but little. It is true that most of us meet violent death long before we reach old age, but there are some who pass the allotted span of life and others who do not care for themselves so well and these few constitute the physically old among us; evidently of such was the little old man who confronted us.
Apparent physical old age is so rare on Barsoom that it always grabs immediate attention. People can live up to a thousand years, but during that time, our appearance barely changes. It’s true that most of us meet a violent death long before we hit old age, but there are a few who live their full lifespan and some who don't take care of themselves as well, and these few make up the physically old among us; clearly, the little old man who faced us was one of them.
At sight of him Nur An voiced an exclamation of pleased surprise. "Phor Tak!" he cried.
At the sight of him, Nur An gasped in delighted surprise. "Phor Tak!" he shouted.
"Heigh-oo!" cackled the old man in a high falsetto. "Who cometh from the high heavens who knows old Phor Tak?"
"Heigh-oo!" cackled the old man in a high-pitched voice. "Who comes from the high heavens who knows old Phor Tak?"
"It is I—Nur An!" exclaimed my friend.
"It’s me—Nur An!" my friend exclaimed.
"Heigh-oo!" cried Phor Tak. "Nur An—one of Tul Axtar's pets."
"Heigh-oo!" shouted Phor Tak. "Nur An—one of Tul Axtar's pets."
"As you once were, Phor Tak."
"As you were once, Phor Tak."
"But not now—not now," almost screamed the old man. "The tyrant squeezed me like some juicy fruit and then cast the empty rind aside. Heigh-oo! He thought it was empty, but I pray daily to all my ancestors that he may live to know that he was wrong. I can say this with safety to you, Nur An, for I have you in my power and I promise you that you shall never live to carry word of my whereabouts to Tul Axtar."
"But not now—not now," the old man nearly shouted. "The tyrant squeezed me like a ripe fruit and then tossed aside the empty peel. Oh, how I wish he’d realize he was wrong! I pray daily to all my ancestors that he lives long enough to find out. I can say this to you safely, Nur An, because I have you under my control, and I promise you will never live to tell Tul Axtar where I am."
"Do not fear, Phor Tak," said Nur An. "I, too, have suffered from the villainy of the Jeddak of Jahar. You were permitted to leave the capital in peace, but all my property was confiscated and I was sentenced to death."
"Don't worry, Phor Tak," Nur An said. "I’ve also been a victim of the Jeddak of Jahar's cruelty. You were allowed to leave the capital safely, but all my belongings were taken, and I was sentenced to death."
"Heigh-oo! Then you hate him, too," exclaimed the old man.
"Heigh-oo! So you hate him, too," the old man exclaimed.
"Hate is a weak word to describe my feeling for Tul Axtar," replied my friend.
"Hate is a weak word to describe how I feel about Tul Axtar," my friend replied.
"It is well," said Phor Tak. "When I saw you descending from the skies I thought that my ancestors had sent you to help me, and now I know that it was indeed true. Be this another warrior from Jahar?" he added, nodding his old head toward me.
"It’s good," said Phor Tak. "When I saw you coming down from the skies, I thought my ancestors had sent you to help me, and now I see that it was true. Is this another warrior from Jahar?" he added, nodding his old head toward me.
"No, Phor Tak," replied Nur An. "This is Hadron of Hastor, a noble of Helium, but he, too, has been wronged by Jahar."
"No, Phor Tak," Nur An replied. "This is Hadron of Hastor, a noble from Helium, but he, too, has been wronged by Jahar."
"Good!" exclaimed the old man. "Now there are three of us. Heretofore I have had only slaves and women to assist me, but now with two trained warriors, young and strong, the goal of my triumph appears almost in sight."
"Good!" shouted the old man. "Now there are three of us. Until now, I've only had slaves and women to help me, but with two trained warriors, young and strong, my victory seems almost within reach."
As the two men conversed I had recalled that part of the story that Nur An had told me in the pits of Tjanath which related to Phor Tak and his invention of the rifle that projected the disintegrating rays which had proved so deadly against the patrol boat above Helium the night of Sanoma Tora's abduction. Strange, indeed, was fate that it should have brought me into the palace of the man who held the secret that might mean so much to Helium and to all Barsoom. Strange, too, and devious had been the path along which fate had led me, yet I knew that my ancestors were guiding me and that all must have been arranged to some good end.
As the two men talked, I remembered that part of the story Nur An had shared with me in the pits of Tjanath about Phor Tak and his invention of the rifle that fired disintegrating rays, which had been so deadly against the patrol boat above Helium the night Sanoma Tora was kidnapped. It was indeed strange how fate had brought me to the palace of the man who held the secret that could mean so much to Helium and all of Barsoom. The path fate had taken me on was also strange and complicated, but I knew that my ancestors were guiding me, and that everything must have been arranged for some greater purpose.
When Phor Tak had heard only a portion of our story he insisted that we must be both fatigued and hungry and, like the good host that he proved to be, he conducted us down to the interior of his palace and, summoning slaves, ordered that we be bathed and fed and then permitted to retire until we were rested. We thanked him for his kindness and consideration, of which we were glad to avail ourselves.
When Phor Tak heard just part of our story, he insisted that we must be tired and hungry. As a great host, he took us to the inside of his palace, called for servants, and ordered them to bathe and feed us. Then he allowed us to rest until we felt better. We thanked him for his kindness and consideration, which we were happy to accept.
The days that followed were both interesting and profitable. Phor Tak, surrounded only by a few faithful slaves who had followed him into his exile, was delighted with our company and with the assistance which we could give him in his experiment, which, once assured of our loyalty, he explained to us in detail.
The days that followed were both exciting and rewarding. Phor Tak, surrounded only by a handful of loyal slaves who had accompanied him into exile, was thrilled to have us around and appreciated the help we could offer in his experiment. Once he was certain of our loyalty, he explained everything to us in detail.
He told us the story of his wanderings after he had left Jahar and of how he had stumbled upon this long deserted castle, whose builder and occupants had left no record other than their bones. He told us that when he discovered it skeletons had strewn the courtyard and in the main entrance were piled the bones of a score of warriors, attesting the fierce defense that the occupants had waged against some unknown enemy, while in many of the upper rooms he had found other skeletons—the skeletons of women and children.
He shared the story of his travels after leaving Jahar and how he came across this long-abandoned castle, whose creator and inhabitants had left no trace other than their bones. He described that when he found it, skeletons were scattered throughout the courtyard, and at the main entrance, there were piles of bones from a dozen warriors, showing the intense fight the occupants had put up against an unknown enemy. In several of the upper rooms, he also discovered other skeletons—the remains of women and children.
"I believe," he said, "that the place was beset by members of some savage horde of green warriors that left not a single survivor. The courts and gardens were overgrown with weeds and the interior of the building was filled with dust, but otherwise little damage had been done. I call it Jhama, and here I am carrying on my life's work."
"I believe," he said, "that the place was overrun by some savage group of green warriors that left no one alive. The courts and gardens were choked with weeds, and the inside of the building was filled with dust, but otherwise, there was little damage. I call it Jhama, and here I am continuing my life's work."
"And that?" I asked.
"And what about that?" I asked.
"Revenge upon Tul Axtar," said the old man. "I gave him the disintegrating ray; I gave him the insulating paint that protects his own ships and weapons from it, and now some day I shall give him something else—something that will be as revolutionary in the art of war as the disintegrating ray itself; something that will cast the fleet of Jahar broken wrecks upon the ground; something that will search out the palace of Tul Axtar and bury the tyrant beneath its ruins."
"Revenge on Tul Axtar," said the old man. "I gave him the disintegration ray; I gave him the insulating paint that protects his ships and weapons from it, and someday I’ll give him something else—something that will be as groundbreaking in the art of war as the disintegration ray itself; something that will leave Jahar's fleet as broken wrecks on the ground; something that will find Tul Axtar's palace and bury the tyrant beneath its ruins."
We had not been long at Jhama before both Nur An and I became convinced that Phor Tak's mind was at least slightly deranged from long brooding over the wrongs inflicted upon him by Tul Axtar; though naturally possessed of a kindly disposition he was obsessed by a maniacal desire to wreak vengeance upon the tyrant with utter disregard of the consequences to himself and to others. Upon this single subject he was beyond the influence of reason and having established to his own satisfaction that Nur An and I were potential factors in the successful accomplishment of his design, he would fly into a perfect frenzy of rage whenever I broached the subject of our departure.
We hadn't been at Jhama long before both Nur An and I became convinced that Phor Tak's mind was at least a bit unbalanced from constantly brooding over the wrongs Tul Axtar had done to him. Despite his naturally kind nature, he was consumed by a relentless urge to get revenge on the tyrant, without caring about the consequences for himself or anyone else. On this one issue, he was completely beyond reason, and having convinced himself that Nur An and I could help him achieve his goal, he would fly into a complete rage whenever I mentioned leaving.
Fretting as I was beneath the urge to push on to Jahar and the rescue of Sanoma Tora, I could but illy brook this enforced delay, but Phor Tak was adamant—he would not permit me to depart—and the absolute loyalty of his slaves made it possible for him to enforce his will. In our hearing he explained to them that we were guests, honored guests as long as we made no effort to depart without his permission, but should they discover us in an attempt to leave Jhama surreptitiously they were to destroy us.
Worried as I was about the need to move on to Jahar and rescue Sanoma Tora, I couldn’t stand this forced delay. But Phor Tak was stubborn—he wouldn’t let me go—and the complete loyalty of his slaves allowed him to enforce his wishes. He told them, in our hearing, that we were guests, honored guests as long as we didn’t try to leave without his permission, but if they caught us trying to sneak out of Jhama, they were to kill us.
Nur An and I discussed the matter at length. We had discovered that four thousand haads of difficult and unfriendly country lay between us and Jahar. Being without a ship and without thoats there was little likelihood that we should be able to reach Jahar in time to be of service to Sanoma Tora, if we ever reached it at all, and so we agreed to bide our time, impressing Phor Tak with our willingness to aid him in the hope that eventually we should be able to enlist his aid and support, and so successful were we that within a short time we had so won the confidence of the old scientist that we began to entertain hope that he would take us into his innermost confidence and reveal the nature of the instrument of destruction which he was preparing for Tul Axtar.
Nur An and I talked about the situation in detail. We realized that four thousand haads of rough and hostile terrain separated us from Jahar. Without a ship and lacking thoats, it was unlikely we could reach Jahar in time to help Sanoma Tora, if we could reach it at all. So, we decided to wait, trying to impress Phor Tak with our readiness to help him, hoping that eventually we could gain his assistance and support. We were so successful that soon we earned the trust of the old scientist, and we started to hope that he would let us into his inner circle and reveal the nature of the destructive device he was working on for Tul Axtar.
I must admit that I was principally interested in his invention because I was confident that in order to utilize it against Tul Axtar he must find some means of transporting it to Jahar and in this I saw an opportunity for reaching the capital of the tyrant myself.
I have to admit that I was mainly interested in his invention because I was sure that to use it against Tul Axtar, he would need to find a way to get it to Jahar, and in that, I saw a chance to get to the capital of the tyrant myself.
We had been in Jhama about ten days during which time Phor Tak exhibited signs of extreme nervousness and irritability. He kept us with him practically all of the time that he was not closeted in the innermost recesses of his secret laboratory.
We had been in Jhama for about ten days, during which Phor Tak showed signs of intense nervousness and irritability. He kept us with him almost all the time when he wasn't locked away in the depths of his secret laboratory.
During the evening meal upon the tenth day Phor Tak seemed more distraught than ever. Talking, as usual, interminably about his hatred of Tul Axtar, his countenance assumed an expression of maniacal fury.
During the evening meal on the tenth day, Phor Tak appeared more unsettled than ever. As usual, he rambled on endlessly about his hatred for Tul Axtar, and his face showed a look of maniacal rage.
"But I am helpless," he almost screamed at last. "I am helpless because there is no one to whom I may entrust my secret, who also has the courage and intelligence to carry out my plan. I am too old, too weak to undergo the hardships that would mean nothing to young men like you, but which must be undergone if I am to fulfill my destiny as the savior of Jahar. If I could but trust you! If I could but trust you!"
"But I'm powerless," he almost shouted at last. "I'm powerless because there's no one I can confide my secret to who also has the courage and smarts to follow through with my plan. I'm too old, too weak to handle the struggles that wouldn't mean anything to young guys like you, but that I have to face if I'm going to fulfill my destiny as the savior of Jahar. If only I could trust you! If only I could trust you!"
"Perhaps you can, Phor Tak," I suggested.
"Maybe you can, Phor Tak," I suggested.
The words or my tone seemed to soothe him. "Heigh-oo!" he exclaimed. "Sometimes I almost think that I can."
The words or my tone seemed to calm him. "Hey there!" he exclaimed. "Sometimes I almost think that I can."
"We have a common aim," I said; "or at least different aims which converge at the same point—Jahar. Let us work together then. We wish to reach Jahar. If you can help us, we will help you."
"We have a shared goal," I said; "or at least different goals that come together at the same point—Jahar. So let’s collaborate. We want to get to Jahar. If you can assist us, we’ll assist you."
He sat in silent thought for a long moment. "I'll do it," he said. "Heigh-oo! I'll do it. Come," and rising from his chair he led us toward the locked doorway that barred the entrance to his secret laboratory.
He sat in silent thought for a long moment. "I'll do it," he said. "Hey! I'll do it. Come on," and getting up from his chair, he led us toward the locked door that blocked the entrance to his secret lab.
X
X
THE FLYING DEATH
The Flying Death
Phor Tak's laboratory occupied an entire wing of the building and consisted of a single, immense room fully fifty feet in height. His benches, tables, instruments and cabinets, located in one corner, were lost in the great interior. Near the ceiling and encircling the room was a single track from which was suspended a miniature cruiser, painted the ghastly blue of Jahar. Upon one of the benches was a cylindrical object about as long as one's hand. These were the only noticeable features of the laboratory other than its immense emptiness.
Phor Tak's lab took up an entire wing of the building and was just one huge room that was fifty feet tall. His benches, tables, instruments, and cabinets, tucked away in one corner, seemed small in the vast space. Near the ceiling, there was a track that wrapped around the room, holding up a tiny cruiser painted the creepy blue of Jahar. On one of the benches lay a cylindrical object roughly the length of a hand. These were the only notable things in the lab besides its overwhelming emptiness.
As Phor Tak ushered us within he closed the door behind him and I heard the ominous click of the ponderous lock. There was something depressing in the suggestiveness of the situation induced, perhaps, by our knowledge that Phor Tak was mad and accentuated by the eerie mystery of the vasty chamber.
As Phor Tak led us inside, he shut the door behind him, and I heard the unsettling sound of the heavy lock clicking into place. There was something gloomy about the atmosphere, likely due to our awareness that Phor Tak was insane, and it was intensified by the strange mystery of the large room.
Leading us to the bench upon which lay the cylindrical object which had attracted my attention, he lifted it carefully, almost caressingly, from its resting place. "This," he said, "is a model of the device that will destroy Jahar. In it you behold the concentrated essence of scientific achievement. In appearance it is but a small metal cylinder, but within it is a mechanism as delicate and as sensitive as the human brain and you will perceive that it functions almost as though animated by a mind within itself, but it is purely mechanical and may be produced in quantities quickly and at low cost. Before I explain it further I shall demonstrate one phase of its possibilities. Watch!"
Leading us to the bench where the cylindrical object that had caught my attention lay, he picked it up carefully, almost lovingly, from its spot. “This,” he said, “is a model of the device that will destroy Jahar. What you see is the concentrated essence of scientific achievement. It looks like just a small metal cylinder, but inside is a mechanism as delicate and sensitive as the human brain. You'll notice it works almost as if it has a mind of its own, but it's purely mechanical and can be produced quickly and cheaply in large quantities. Before I explain it further, let me show you one aspect of what it can do. Watch!”
Still holding the cylinder in his hand, Phor Tak stepped to a shallow cabinet against the wall and opening it revealed an elaborate equipment of switches, levers and push buttons. "Now watch the miniature flier suspended from the track near the ceiling," he directed, at the same time closing a switch. Immediately the flier commenced to travel along the track at considerable speed. Now Phor Tak pressed a button upon the top of the cylinder, which immediately sped from his extended palm, turned quickly in the air and rushed straight for the speeding flier. Slowly the distance between the two closed; the cylinder, curving gradually into the line of flight of the flier, was now trailing directly behind it, its pointed nose but a few feet from the stern of the miniature ship. Then Phor Tak pulled a tiny lever upon his switchboard and the flier leaped forward at accelerated speed. Instantly the speed of the cylinder increased and I could see that it was gaining in velocity much more rapidly than the flier. Half way around the room again its nose struck the stern of the fleeing craft with sufficient severity to cause the ship to tremble from stem to stern; then the cylinder fell away and floated gently toward the floor. Phor Tak opened a switch that stopped the flier in its flight and then, running forward, caught the descending cylinder in his hand.
Still holding the cylinder in his hand, Phor Tak stepped to a shallow cabinet against the wall and opened it, revealing an elaborate setup of switches, levers, and push buttons. "Now watch the miniature flier hanging from the track near the ceiling," he instructed, while closing a switch. Immediately, the flier started to travel along the track at significant speed. Phor Tak then pressed a button on top of the cylinder, which quickly shot from his outstretched palm, flipped in the air, and sped straight toward the moving flier. The space between them slowly narrowed; the cylinder gradually curved into the flier's path and was now trailing directly behind it, its pointed nose just a few feet from the back of the miniature ship. Then Phor Tak pulled a tiny lever on his control panel, and the flier surged forward at an increased speed. Instantly, the cylinder sped up as well, gaining momentum much faster than the flier. Halfway around the room, its nose collided with the back of the fleeing craft hard enough to make the ship shudder from front to back; then the cylinder veered off and gently drifted toward the floor. Phor Tak flipped a switch that halted the flier in mid-flight, and then, sprinting forward, he caught the falling cylinder in his hand.
"This model," he explained, as he returned to where we stood, "is so constructed that when it makes contact with the flier it will float gently downward to the floor, but as you have doubtless fully realized ere this, the finished product in practical use will explode upon contact with the ship. Note these tiny buttons with which it is covered. When any one of these comes in contact with an object the model stops and descends, whereas the full sized device, properly equipped, will explode, absolutely demolishing whatever it may have come in contact with. As you are aware every substance in the universe has its own fixed vibratory rate. This mechanism can be so attuned as to be attracted by the vibratory rate of any substance. The model, for example, is attracted by the blue protective paint with which the flier is covered. Imagine a fleet of Jaharian warships moving majestically through the air in battle formation. From an enemy ship or from the ground and at a distance so far as to be unobservable by the ships of Jahar, I release as many of these devices as there are ships in the fleet, allowing a few moments to elapse between launchings. The first torpedo rushes toward the fleet and destroys the nearest ship. All the torpedoes in the rear, strung out in line, are attracted by the combined masses of all the blue protecting coverings of the entire fleet. The first ship is falling to the ground and though all of its paint may not have been destroyed, it has not the power to deflect any of the succeeding torpedoes, which one by one destroy the nearest of the remaining ships until the fleet has been absolutely erased. I have destroyed a great fleet without risking the life of a single man of my own following."
"This model," he explained as he returned to where we stood, "is built so that when it touches the flier, it will float gently down to the floor. But as you probably realize by now, the finished product in actual use will explode on contact with the ship. Check out these tiny buttons covering it. When any of these touches an object, the model stops and descends, while the full-sized device, when properly equipped, will explode, completely destroying whatever it touches. As you know, every substance in the universe has its own fixed vibratory rate. This mechanism can be adjusted to be attracted by the vibratory rate of any substance. The model, for example, is drawn to the blue protective paint on the flier. Picture a fleet of Jaharian warships moving majestically through the air in battle formation. From an enemy ship or from the ground, at a distance far enough to be undetected by the Jaharian ships, I launch as many of these devices as there are ships in the fleet, letting a few moments pass between each launch. The first torpedo speeds toward the fleet and destroys the nearest ship. All the torpedoes behind it, lined up in a row, are attracted to the combined masses of all the blue protective coatings of the entire fleet. The first ship is falling, and even if not all of its paint is gone, it can't deflect the following torpedoes, which one by one take out the nearest remaining ships until the fleet is entirely wiped out. I've destroyed a great fleet without risking a single life among my own crew."
"But they will see the torpedoes coming," suggested Nur An, "and they will devise some defense. Even gunfire might stop many of them."
"But they will see the torpedoes coming," Nur An suggested, "and they will come up with some defense. Even gunfire could take out many of them."
"Heigh-oo! But I have thought of that," cackled Phor Tak. He laid the torpedo upon a bench and opened another cabinet.
"Heigh-oo! But I've thought of that," cackled Phor Tak. He set the torpedo down on a bench and opened another cabinet.
In this cabinet were a number of receptacles, some tightly sealed and others opened, revealing their contents which appeared to be different colored paints. From a number of these receptacles protruded the handles of paint brushes. One such handle, however, appeared to hang in mid-air, a few inches above one of the shelves, while just beneath it was a section of the rim of a receptacle that also appeared to be resting upon nothing. Phor Tak placed his open hand directly beneath this floating rim and when he removed his hand from the cabinet, the rim of the receptacle and the portion of the handle of the paint brush, floating just above it, followed, hovering just over his extended fingers, which were cupped in the position that they might assume were they holding a glass jar, such as would ordinarily have belonged to a rim like that which I could see floating about an inch above his fingers.
In this cabinet were several containers, some tightly sealed and others open, showing their contents that looked like different colored paints. Paintbrush handles stuck out of several of these containers. One handle, though, seemed to hang in mid-air, a few inches above one of the shelves, while just below it was the edge of a container that also looked like it was resting on nothing. Phor Tak placed his open hand directly beneath this floating edge, and when he lifted his hand out of the cabinet, the edge of the container and part of the paintbrush handle, hovering just above it, followed along, floating just over his outstretched fingers, which were cupped as if they were holding a glass jar, like one that would normally rest under a rim like the one floating about an inch above his fingers.
Going to the bench where he had laid the cylinder, Phor Tak went through the motions of setting a jar upon it, and, though there was no jar visible other than the floating rim, I distinctly heard a noise that was identical with the sound which the bottom of a glass jar would have made in coming in contact with the bench.
Going to the bench where he had placed the cylinder, Phor Tak pretended to set a jar on it, and even though there was no jar visible except for the floating rim, I clearly heard a sound just like what the bottom of a glass jar would make when it touched the bench.
I can assure you that I was greatly mystified, but still more so by the events immediately following. Phor Tak seized the handle of the paint brush and made a pass a few inches above the metal torpedo. Instantly a portion of the torpedo, about an inch wide and three or four inches long, disappeared. Pass after pass he made until finally the whole surface of the torpedo had disappeared. Where it had rested the bench was empty. Phor Tak returned the handle of the paint brush to its floating position just above the floating jar rim and then he turned to us with an expression of child-like pride upon his face, as much to say, "Well, what do you think of that? Am I not wonderful?" And I was certainly forced to concede that it was wonderful and that I was entirely baffled and mystified by what I had seen.
I can assure you that I was completely baffled, but even more so by what happened right after. Phor Tak grabbed the handle of the paintbrush and made a stroke a few inches above the metal torpedo. Instantly, a section of the torpedo, about an inch wide and three or four inches long, vanished. He kept making passes until finally the entire surface of the torpedo was gone. Where it had been, the bench was empty. Phor Tak returned the paintbrush handle to its floating position just above the rim of the floating jar, then turned to us with a child-like pride on his face, as if to say, "So, what do you think of that? Aren't I amazing?" And I definitely had to admit that it was impressive and that I was completely puzzled and mystified by what I had witnessed.
"There, Nur An," exclaimed Phor Tak, "is the answer to your criticism of The Flying Death."
"There, Nur An," shouted Phor Tak, "is the answer to your criticism of The Flying Death."
"I do not understand," said Nur An with a puzzled expression upon his face.
"I don't understand," said Nur An with a confused look on his face.
"Heigh-oo!" cried Phor Tak. "Have you not seen me render the device invisible?"
"Heigh-oo!" shouted Phor Tak. "Haven't you seen me make the device invisible?"
"But it is gone," said Nur An.
"But it's gone," said Nur An.
Phor Tak laughed his high cackling laugh. "It is still there," he said, "but you cannot see it. Here," and he took Nur An's hand and guided it toward the spot where the device had been.
Phor Tak laughed his high, cackling laugh. "It's still there," he said, "but you can't see it. Here," and he took Nur An's hand and guided it toward the spot where the device had been.
I could see Nur An's fingers apparently feeling over the surface of something several inches above the top of the table. "By my first ancestor, it is still there!" he exclaimed.
I could see Nur An's fingers seemingly exploring something several inches above the top of the table. "By my first ancestor, it's still there!" he exclaimed.
"It is wonderful," I exclaimed. "You did not even touch it; you merely made passes above it with the handle of a paint brush and it disappeared."
"It’s amazing," I said. "You didn’t even touch it; you just waved the handle of a paintbrush above it and it vanished."
"But I did touch it," insisted Phor Tak. "The brush was there, but you did not see it because it was covered by the substance which renders The Flying Death invisible. Notice this transparent glass receptacle in which I keep the compound of invisibility and all that you can see of it is that part of the rim which, by chance, has not been coated with the compound."
"But I did touch it," insisted Phor Tak. "The brush was there, but you didn't see it because it was covered by the substance that makes The Flying Death invisible. Look at this clear glass container where I keep the invisibility compound, and all you can see is that part of the rim that's, by chance, not coated with the substance."
"Marvellous!" I exclaimed. "Even now, although I have witnessed it with my own eyes I can scarce conceive of the possibility of such a miracle."
"Awesome!" I said. "Even now, after seeing it with my own eyes, I can hardly believe such a miracle is possible."
"It is no miracle," said Phor Tak. "It is merely the application of scientific principles well known to me for hundreds of years. Nothing moves in straight lines; light, vision, electro-magnetic forces follow lines that curve. The compound of invisibility merely bows outward the reflected light, which, entering our eyes and impinging upon our optic nerves, results in the phenomenon which we call vision, so that they pass around any object which is coated with the compound. When I first started to apply the compound to The Flying Death, your line of vision was deflected around the small portions so coated, but when I coated the entire surface of the torpedo, the curve of your vision passed completely around it on both sides so that you could plainly see the bench upon which it was resting precisely as though the device had not been there."
"It’s not a miracle," Phor Tak said. "It’s just the use of scientific principles that I’ve known for hundreds of years. Nothing moves in straight lines; light, vision, and electromagnetic forces all follow curved paths. The invisibility compound simply bends the reflected light, which then enters our eyes and hits our optic nerves, creating the phenomenon we call vision. This allows light to pass around any object that’s coated with the compound. When I first used the compound on The Flying Death, your line of sight was deflected around the small areas that were coated. But once I coated the entire surface of the torpedo, your vision curved completely around it on both sides, so you could see the bench it was resting on as if the device wasn’t even there."
I was astounded at the apparent simplicity of the explanation, and, naturally, being a soldier, I saw the tremendous advantage that the possession of these two scientific secrets would impart to the nation which controlled them. For the safety; yes, for the very existence of Helium, I must possess them and if that were impossible, then Phor Tak must be destroyed before the secret of this infernal power could be passed on to any other nation. Perhaps I could so ingratiate myself with old Phor Tak as to be able to persuade him to turn these secrets over to Helium in return for Helium's assistance in the work of wreaking his vengeance upon Tul Axtar.
I was amazed by how simple the explanation seemed, and naturally, as a soldier, I recognized the huge advantage that having these two scientific secrets would give to the nation that controlled them. For the safety—yes, for the very survival—of Helium, I needed to obtain them, and if that was impossible, then Phor Tak had to be eliminated before the secret of this terrible power could be handed over to any other nation. Maybe I could win over old Phor Tak enough to convince him to share these secrets with Helium in exchange for Helium's help in his quest for revenge against Tul Axtar.
"Phor Tak," I said, "you hold here within your grasp two secrets which in the hands of a kindly and beneficient power would bring eternal peace to Barsoom."
"Phor Tak," I said, "you have two secrets in your hands that, if used by a kind and generous force, could bring lasting peace to Barsoom."
"Heigh-oo!" he cried. "I do not want peace. I want war. War! War!"
"Hey!" he shouted. "I don’t want peace. I want war. War! War!"
"Very well," I agreed, realizing that my suggestion had not been in line with the mad processes of his crazed brain. "Let us have war then, and what country upon Barsoom is better equipped to wage war than Helium? If you want war, form an alliance with Helium."
"Alright," I said, realizing that my suggestion didn't align with the chaotic thinking of his disturbed mind. "Let's go to war then, and which country on Barsoom is better prepared for war than Helium? If you want war, team up with Helium."
"I do not need Helium," he cried. "I do not need to form alliances. I shall make war—I shall make war alone. With the invisible Flying Death I can destroy whole navies, whole cities, entire nations. I shall start with Jahar. Tul Axtar shall be the first to feel the weight of my devastating powers. When the fleet of Jahar has tumbled upon the roofs of Jahar and the walls of Jahar have fallen about the ears of Tul Axtar, then shall I destroy Tjanath. Helium shall know me next. Proud and mighty Helium shall tremble and bow at the feet of Phor Tak. I shall be Jeddak of Jeddaks, ruler of a world." As he spoke his voice rose to a piercing shriek and he trembled in the grip of the frenzy that held him.
"I don’t need Helium," he shouted. "I don’t need to form alliances. I will wage war—I will wage war on my own. With the invisible Flying Death, I can wipe out entire navies, entire cities, whole nations. I will start with Jahar. Tul Axtar will be the first to experience the full force of my devastating powers. When Jahar’s fleet has crashed onto the rooftops of Jahar and the walls of Jahar have collapsed around Tul Axtar, then I will destroy Tjanath. Helium will be next to feel my wrath. Proud and powerful Helium will tremble and bow before Phor Tak. I will be the Jeddak of Jeddaks, ruler of a world." As he spoke, his voice rose to a piercing scream and he shook in the grip of the frenzy that consumed him.
He must be destroyed, not alone for the sake of Helium, but for the sake of all Barsoom; this mad mind must be removed if I found that it was impossible to direct or cajole it to my own ends. I determined, however, to omit no sacrifice that might tend to bring about a satisfactory conclusion to this strange adventure. I knew that mad minds were sometimes fickle minds and I hoped that in a moment of insane caprice Phor Tak might reveal to me the secret of the Flying Death and the compound of invisibility. This hope was his temporary reprieve from death; its fulfillment would be his pardon, but I knew that I must work warily—that at the slightest suggestion of duplicity, Phor Tak's suspicions would be aroused and that I should then be the one to be destroyed.
He needs to be taken out, not just for Helium's sake, but for all of Barsoom; this crazy mind has to be dealt with if I found it was impossible to manipulate or persuade it to my advantage. I decided, though, not to hold back any sacrifices that could lead to a satisfactory end to this strange adventure. I knew that crazy minds could be unpredictable, and I hoped that in a moment of wild impulse, Phor Tak might let slip the secret of the Flying Death and the invisibility formula. This hope was his temporary stay of execution; if it became a reality, he would be forgiven, but I knew I had to be careful—that at the slightest hint of deceit, Phor Tak would grow suspicious and I would be the one facing destruction.
I tossed long upon my sleeping silks and furs that night in troubled thought and planning. I felt that I must possess these secrets; yet how? That they existed within his brain alone, I knew, for he had told me that there were no written formulas, or plans or specifications for either of them. Somehow I must wheedle them out of him and the best way to start was to ingratiate myself with him. To this end I must further his plans insofar as I possibly could.
I tossed and turned on my luxurious silks and furs that night, struggling with troubled thoughts and plans. I knew I had to uncover these secrets, but how? I understood that they were only in his mind, as he had told me there were no written formulas, plans, or specifications for either of them. I had to find a way to persuade him to share what he knew, and the best approach was to win him over. To do this, I needed to support his plans as much as I could.
Just before I fell asleep my thoughts reverted to Sanoma Tora and to the urgent mission that had led me to enter upon what had developed into the strangest adventure of my career. I felt a twinge of self reproach as I suddenly realized that Sanoma Tora had not been uppermost in my mind while I had lain there making plans for the future, but now with recollection of her a plan was suggested whereby I might not only succor her but also advance myself in the good graces of Phor Tak at the same time, and, thus relieved, I fell asleep.
Just before I fell asleep, my thoughts went back to Sanoma Tora and the urgent mission that had led me into what had turned into the strangest adventure of my career. I felt a pang of guilt as I suddenly realized that Sanoma Tora hadn’t been my main focus while I was lying there making plans for the future. But now that I was thinking of her, an idea came to me that could help her and also win me favor with Phor Tak at the same time. Feeling relieved, I fell asleep.
It was late the following morning before I had an opportunity to speak with the old inventor when I immediately broached the subject that was uppermost in my mind. "Phor Tak," I said, "you are handicapped by lack of knowledge of conditions existing in Jahar and the size and location of the fleet. Nur An and I will go to Jahar for you and obtain the information that you must have if your plans are to be successful. In this way, Nur An and I will also be striking a blow at Tul Axtar while we will be in a position to attend to those matters which require our presence in Jahar."
It was late the next morning before I could talk to the old inventor, so I immediately brought up the topic that was on my mind. "Phor Tak," I said, "you're at a disadvantage because you don't know what's happening in Jahar or the size and location of the fleet. Nur An and I will go to Jahar for you and get the information you need for your plans to succeed. This way, Nur An and I will also be hitting Tul Axtar while we can take care of the things that need our attention in Jahar."
"But how will you get to Jahar?" demanded Phor Tak.
"But how are you going to get to Jahar?" asked Phor Tak.
"Could not you let us take a flier?" I asked.
"Could you let us take a flier?" I asked.
"I have none," replied Phor Tak. "I know nothing about them. I am not interested in them, I could not even build one."
"I don't have any," replied Phor Tak. "I know nothing about them. I'm not interested in them; I couldn't even build one."
To say that I was both surprised and shocked would be putting it mildly, but if I had previously entertained any doubts that Phor Tak's brain was abnormally developed, it would have vanished with his admission that he knew nothing about fliers, for it seemed to me that there was scarcely a man, woman or child in any of the flying nations of Barsoom but could have constructed some sort of a flier.
To say I was both surprised and shocked would be an understatement, but if I had any doubts before about Phor Tak's exceptional brain, they disappeared with his admission that he knew nothing about fliers. It seemed to me that there wasn't a man, woman, or child in any of the flying nations of Barsoom who couldn't build some kind of flier.
"But how without fliers did you expect to transport The Flying Death to the vicinity of the Jaharian fleet? How did you expect to demolish the palace of Tul Axtar, or reduce the city of Jahar to ruins?"
"But how did you expect to move The Flying Death near the Jaharian fleet without fliers? How did you plan to destroy the palace of Tul Axtar or turn the city of Jahar into ruins?"
"Now that you and Nur An are here to help me, I can set my slaves to work under you and easily turn out a dozen torpedoes a day. As these are completed they will immediately be launched and eventually they will find their way to Jahar and the fleet. Of that there is no doubt, even if it takes a year they will eventually find their prey."
"Now that you and Nur An are here to help me, I can put my workers to task under your supervision and easily produce a dozen torpedoes a day. As soon as they are finished, they will be immediately launched and will eventually make their way to Jahar and the fleet. There’s no doubt about it; even if it takes a year, they will eventually find their target."
"If nothing chances to get in their way," I suggested; "but even so what pleasure will you derive from your revenge if you are unable to witness any part of it?"
"If nothing gets in their way," I suggested; "but even then, what satisfaction will you get from your revenge if you can't see any part of it?"
"Heigh-oo! I have thought of that," replied Phor Tak, "but one may not have everything."
"Heigh-oo! I thought of that," replied Phor Tak, "but you can't have everything."
"You may have that," I told him.
"You can have that," I told him.
"And how?" he demanded.
"And how?" he asked.
"By taking your torpedoes aboard a ship and flying to Jahar," I replied.
"By bringing your torpedoes onto a ship and flying to Jahar," I replied.
"No," he exclaimed stubbornly, "I shall do it my own way. What right have you to interfere with my plans?"
"No," he said firmly, "I'll do it my way. What right do you have to interfere with my plans?"
"I merely want to help you," I said, attempting to mollify him by a conciliatory tone and attitude.
"I just want to help you," I said, trying to ease him with a more friendly tone and attitude.
"And there is another thought," said Nur An, "that suggests that it might be expedient to follow Hadron's plans."
"And there’s another idea," said Nur An, "that suggests it might be wise to go along with Hadron's plans."
"You are both against me," said Phor Tak.
"You’re both against me," said Phor Tak.
"By no means," Nur An assured him. "It is our keen desire to aid you that prompts the suggestion."
"Not at all," Nur An assured him. "We genuinely want to help you, which is why we're making this suggestion."
"Well, what is yours then?" asked the old man.
"Well, what do you have then?" asked the old man.
"Your plan contemplates the destruction of the navies of Tjanath and Helium following the fall of Jahar," exclaimed Nur An. "This, at least in respect to the navy of Helium, you cannot possibly hope to accomplish at so great a distance and without any knowledge of the number of ships to be destroyed, nor will your torpedoes be similarly attracted to them as they are to the ships of Jahar because the ships of these other nations are not protected by the blue paint of Jahar. It will, therefore, be necessary for you to proceed to the vicinity of Tjanath and later to Helium and for your own protection you will use the blue paint of Jahar upon your ship, for you may never be certain unless you are on the ground at the time that you have destroyed all of the navy of Jahar, or all of their disintegrating ray rifles."
"Your plan includes destroying the navies of Tjanath and Helium after Jahar falls," Nur An said. "This, at least regarding Helium’s navy, you can't possibly achieve from such a distance and without knowing how many ships need to be destroyed. Plus, your torpedoes won’t be attracted to them like they are to Jahar’s ships because the ships of these other nations aren’t protected by Jahar’s blue paint. Therefore, you’ll need to get closer to Tjanath and then Helium, and for your own protection, you should use Jahar’s blue paint on your ship, because you can never be sure you’ve destroyed all of Jahar's navy or all their disintegrating ray rifles unless you’re right there at the time."
"That is true," said Phor Tak thoughtfully.
"That's true," Phor Tak said thoughtfully.
"And furthermore," continued Nur An, "if you dispatch more than the necessary number of torpedoes, those that remain at large will certainly be attracted by the blue paint of your own ship and you will be destroyed by your own devices."
"And besides," Nur An continued, "if you launch more torpedoes than you need, the ones that are still out there will definitely be drawn to the blue paint on your own ship, and you'll end up being destroyed by your own tools."
"You ruin all my plans," screamed Phor Tak. "Why did you think of this?"
"You messed up all my plans," yelled Phor Tak. "Why did you even think of this?"
"If I had not thought of it you would have been destroyed," Nur An reminded him.
"If I hadn’t thought of it, you would have been destroyed," Nur An reminded him.
"Well, what am I to do about it? I have no ship. I cannot build a ship."
"Well, what am I supposed to do about it? I don't have a ship. I can't build a ship."
"We can get you one," I said.
"We can get you one," I said.
"How?"
"How?"
The conversation between Nur An and Phor Tak had suggested a plan to me and this I now explained roughly to them. Nur An was enthusiastic over the idea, but Phor Tak was not particularly keen for it. I could not understand the grounds for his objection, nor, as a matter of fact, did they interest me greatly since he finally admitted that he would be compelled to act in accordance with my suggestion.
The conversation between Nur An and Phor Tak had hinted at a plan to me, and I now explained it roughly to them. Nur An was excited about the idea, but Phor Tak wasn't really into it. I couldn't grasp why he was against it, and honestly, I wasn't too concerned since he eventually admitted he would have to go along with my suggestion.
Immediately adjacent to Phor Tak's laboratory was a well equipped machine shop and here Nur An and I labored for weeks utilizing the services of a dozen slaves until we had succeeded in constructing what I am sure was the most remarkable looking airship that it had ever fallen to my lot to behold. Briefly, it was a cylinder pointed at each end and closely resembled the model of The Flying Death. Within the outer shell was another smaller cylinder; between the walls of these two we placed the buoyancy tanks. The tanks and the sides of the two envelopes were pierced by observation ports along each side of the ship and at the bow and stern. These ports could be completely covered by shutters hinged upon the outside, but operated from within. There were two hatchways in the keel and two above which led to a narrow walkway along the top of the cylinder. In turrets, forward, and aft were mounted two disintegrating ray rifles. Above the controls was a periscope that transmitted an image of all that came within its range to a ground glass plate in front of the pilot. The entire outside of the ship was first painted the ghastly blue that would protect it from the disintegrating ray rifles of Jahar, while over this was spread a coating of the compound of invisibility. The shutters that covered the ports, being similarly coated, the ship could attain practically total invisibility by closing them, the only point remaining visible being the tiny eye of the periscope.
Right next to Phor Tak's lab was a well-equipped machine shop, and Nur An and I worked for weeks with the help of a dozen slaves until we managed to build what I believe was the most impressive airship I had ever seen. In short, it was a cylinder tapered at both ends, closely resembling the model of The Flying Death. Inside the outer shell was a smaller cylinder; between the walls of these two, we placed the buoyancy tanks. The tanks and the sides of the two envelopes had observation ports along each side of the ship, as well as at the bow and stern. These ports could be completely closed off by shutters that were hinged on the outside but operated from the inside. There were two hatchways on the keel and two above that led to a narrow walkway along the top of the cylinder. Two disintegrating ray rifles were mounted in turrets at both the front and back. Above the controls, there was a periscope that transmitted an image of everything within its range to a glass plate in front of the pilot. The entire outside of the ship was initially painted a grim blue to protect it from the disintegrating ray rifles of Jahar, and over this, a layer of invisibility compound was applied. The shutters that covered the ports were similarly coated, allowing the ship to achieve almost total invisibility when closed, with the only visible part being the tiny eye of the periscope.
Not possessing sufficient technical knowledge to enable me to build one of the new type motors, I had to content myself with one of the old types of much less efficiency.
Not having enough technical knowledge to build one of the new motors, I had to settle for one of the old types that was much less efficient.
At last the work was done. We had a ship that would accommodate four with ease and it was uncanny to realize this fact and yet, at the same time, be unable to see anything but the tiny eye of the periscope when the covers were lowered over the ports, and even the eye of the periscope was invisible unless it was turned in the direction of the observer.
At last, the work was finished. We had a ship that could comfortably fit four people, and it was strange to acknowledge this fact while still being unable to see anything but the small lens of the periscope when the covers were down over the ports. Even the lens of the periscope was hidden unless it was pointed toward the observer.
As the work neared completion I had noticed that Phor Tak's manner became more marked by nervousness and irritability. He found fault with everything and on several occasions he almost stopped the work upon the ship.
As the project was coming to an end, I noticed that Phor Tak was increasingly anxious and irritable. He criticized everything, and on several occasions, he nearly halted the work on the ship.
Now, at last, we were ready to sail. The ship was stocked with ammunition, water and provisions, and at the last minute I installed a destination control compass for which I was afterward to be devoutly thankful.
Now, finally, we were ready to set sail. The ship was loaded with ammunition, water, and supplies, and at the last minute, I added a destination control compass, which I would later be extremely grateful for.
When I suggested immediate departure, however, Phor Tak demurred, but would give me no reason for his objection. Presently, however, I lost patience and told the old man that we were going anyway whether he liked it or not.
When I suggested we leave right away, Phor Tak hesitated but didn’t give me a reason for his objection. Eventually, I lost my patience and told the old man that we were going whether he liked it or not.
He did not fly into a rage as I had expected, but laughed instead, and there was something in the laugh that seemed more terrible than anger.
He didn't fly into a rage like I expected; instead, he laughed, and there was something in that laugh that felt more frightening than anger.
"You think I am a fool," he said, "and that I will let you go and carry my secrets to Tul Axtar, but you are mistaken."
"You think I'm an idiot," he said, "and that I'll just let you go and take my secrets to Tul Axtar, but you're wrong."
"So are you," I snapped. "You are mistaken in thinking that we would betray you and you are also mistaken in thinking that you can prevent our departure."
"So are you," I shot back. "You're wrong if you think we would betray you, and you're also wrong if you think you can stop us from leaving."
"Heigh-oo!" he cackled. "I do not need to prevent your departure, but I can prevent your arrival at Jahar or elsewhere. I have not been idle while you worked upon this ship. I have constructed a full size Flying Death. It is attuned to search out this ship. If you depart against my wishes, it will follow and destroy you. Heigh-oo! What do you think of that?"
"Hey there!" he laughed. "I don’t need to stop you from leaving, but I can make sure you never reach Jahar or anywhere else. I haven't just sat around while you worked on this ship. I've built a full-size Flying Death, and it's set to track down this ship. If you leave against my wishes, it will chase you down and destroy you. Hey there! What do you think of that?"
"I think that you are an old fool," I cried in exasperation. "You have the opportunity to enlist the loyal aid of two honorable warriors and yet you choose to turn them into enemies."
"I think you're being really foolish," I exclaimed in frustration. "You have the chance to get the support of two honorable warriors, and yet you decide to make them your enemies."
"Enemies who cannot harm me," he reminded me. "I hold your lives in the hollow of my hand. Well have you concealed your thoughts from me, but not quite well enough. I have read enough of them to know that you think me mad and I have also received the impression that you would stop at nothing to prevent me from using my power against Helium. I have no doubt but that you will help me against Jahar, and against Tjanath, too, perhaps, but Helium, the mightiest and proudest empire of Barsoom, is my real goal. Helium shall proclaim me Jeddak of Jeddaks if I have to wreck a world to accomplish my design."
"Enemies who can't hurt me," he reminded me. "I hold your lives in the palm of my hand. You've done well to hide your thoughts from me, but not well enough. I've picked up enough to know that you think I'm crazy, and it seems like you'd do anything to stop me from using my power against Helium. I'm sure you'll help me against Jahar, and maybe even Tjanath, but Helium, the strongest and proudest empire of Barsoom, is my true goal. Helium will declare me Jeddak of Jeddaks, even if I have to destroy a world to make it happen."
"Then all our work has been for nothing?" I demanded. "We are not going to use the ship we have constructed?"
"Are you saying all our work has been for nothing?" I asked. "We're not going to use the ship we've built?"
"We may use it," he said, "but under my terms."
"We can use it," he said, "but on my terms."
"And what are they?" I asked.
"And what are they?" I asked.
"You may go alone to Jahar, but I shall keep Nur An here as hostage. If you betray me, he dies."
"You can go to Jahar by yourself, but I'm going to keep Nur An here as a hostage. If you double-cross me, he dies."
There was no moving him; no amount of argument could alter his determination. I tried to convince him that one man could accomplish little, that, in fact, he might not be able to accomplish anything, but he was adamant—I should go alone or not at all.
There was no changing his mind; no amount of arguing could sway his determination. I tried to persuade him that one person could achieve very little, and that he might actually not be able to accomplish anything, but he was firm—either I went alone or not at all.
XI
XI
"LET THE FIRE BE HOT!"
"MAKE THE FIRE HOT!"
As I arose that night into the starlit splendor of a Barsoomian night, the white castle of Phor Tak lay a lovely gem below me bathed in the soft light of Thuria. I was alone; Nur An remained behind the hostage of the mad scientist. Because of him I must return to Jhama. Nur An had exacted no promise from me, but he knew that I would return.
As I got up that night under the stunning stars of a Barsoom night, the white castle of Phor Tak looked like a beautiful gem below me, glowing in the gentle light of Thuria. I was on my own; Nur An stayed behind as the captive of the mad scientist. Because of him, I had to go back to Jhama. Nur An hadn't forced me to promise anything, but he knew I would come back.
Twenty-five hundred haads to the east lay Jahar and Sanoma Tora. Fifteen hundred haads to the southwest were Tjanath and Tavia. I turned the nose of my flier toward the goal of duty, toward the woman I loved, and, with throttle wide, my invisible craft sped toward distant Jahar.
Twenty-five hundred haads to the east were Jahar and Sanoma Tora. Fifteen hundred haads to the southwest were Tjanath and Tavia. I pointed the nose of my flier toward my duty, toward the woman I loved, and, with the throttle wide open, my invisible craft raced toward distant Jahar.
But my thoughts I could not control. Despite my every effort to keep them concentrated upon the purpose of my adventure, they persisted in wandering to a prison tower, to a tousled head of refractory hair, to a rounded shoulder that had once pressed mine. I shook myself to be rid of the vision as I sped through the night, but it constantly returned and in its wake came harrowing thoughts of the fate that might have overtaken Tavia during my absence.
But I couldn’t control my thoughts. No matter how hard I tried to focus on the purpose of my adventure, they kept drifting to a prison tower, to a disheveled head of stubborn hair, to a rounded shoulder that had once brushed against mine. I shook myself to shake off the vision as I raced through the night, but it kept coming back, bringing with it gut-wrenching worries about what might have happened to Tavia while I was gone.
I set my destination control compass upon Jahar, the exact position of which I had obtained from Phor Tak, and thus relieved of the necessity of constantly remaining at the controls, I busied myself about the interior of the ship. I looked to the ammunition of the disintegrating ray rifles and rearranged it to suit my own ideas.
I set the destination control compass to Jahar, the specific location I got from Phor Tak. With that done, I didn’t need to stay at the controls all the time, so I started organizing the inside of the ship. I checked the ammunition for the disintegrating ray rifles and rearranged it to fit my preferences.
Phor Tak had equipped me with three types of rays; one would disintegrate metal, another would disintegrate wood and the third would disintegrate human flesh. I had also brought along something which Phor Tak had refused me when I had asked him for it. I pressed the pocket pouch in which I had placed it to make sure that I still had the vial, the contents of which I imagined might prove of inestimable value to me.
Phor Tak had given me three types of rays; one could break down metal, another could break down wood, and the third could break down human flesh. I had also brought something with me that Phor Tak had refused to give me when I had asked for it. I checked the pocket pouch where I had put it to ensure that I still had the vial, the contents of which I imagined could be incredibly valuable to me.
I raised all the port shutters and adjusted the ventilators, for at best the interior of this strange ship seemed close and stuffy to one who was accustomed to the open deck of the fast scout fliers of Helium. Then I spread my sleeping silks and furs and settled myself down to rest, knowing that when I arrived at Jahar my destination control compass would stop the ship and an alarm would awaken me if I still slept, but sleep would not come. I thought of Sanoma Tora. I visualized her cold and stately beauty, but always her haughty eyes dissolved into the eyes of Tavia, sparkling with the joy of life, soft with the light of friendship.
I opened all the port shutters and adjusted the vents because, honestly, the inside of this weird ship felt cramped and stuffy to someone used to the open decks of the speedy scout fliers from Helium. Then I laid out my sleeping silks and furs and got comfortable, knowing that when I reached Jahar, the destination control compass would stop the ship, and an alarm would wake me if I was still asleep, but sleep just wouldn’t come. I kept thinking about Sanoma Tora. I pictured her cold and regal beauty, but her proud eyes always blended into Tavia's, sparkling with the joy of life and soft with the warmth of friendship.
I was far from Jhama when at last I sprang determinedly from my sleeping silks and furs, and going to the controls, I cut off the destination control compass and with a single, swift turn swung the nose of the flier toward Tjanath.
I was far from Jhama when I finally jumped out of my sleeping silks and furs, went to the controls, turned off the destination control compass, and with one quick move, pointed the nose of the flier toward Tjanath.
The die was cast. I felt that I should experience remorse and self loathing, but I experienced neither. I joyed in the thought that I was rushing to the service of a friend and I knew in the most innermost recesses of my heart that of the two, Tavia had more claim upon my friendship than had Sanoma Tora, from whom I had received at best only scant courtesy.
The decision was made. I thought I should feel regret and self-hatred, but I felt neither. I took pleasure in the idea that I was hurrying to help a friend, and deep down in my heart, I knew that Tavia deserved my friendship more than Sanoma Tora, who had at most shown me minimal kindness.
I did not again try to sleep. I did not feel like sleeping; instead I remained at the controls and watched the desolate landscape as it rushed forward to pass beneath me. With the coming of dawn I saw Tjanath directly ahead of me and as I approached the city it was difficult for me to realize that I could do so with utter impunity and that my ship with its closed ports was entirely invisible. Moving slowly now, I circled above the palace of Haj Osis. Those portions of the palace that were topped by flat roofs revealed sleepy guardsmen. At the main hangar a single guardsman watched.
I didn't try to sleep again. I wasn't in the mood for it; instead, I stayed at the controls and looked at the desolate landscape rushing by beneath me. As dawn broke, I saw Tjanath right in front of me, and as I got closer to the city, it was hard to believe I could do so without any issues and that my ship, with its closed ports, was completely invisible. Moving slowly now, I flew above Haj Osis's palace. The parts of the palace with flat roofs showed some sleepy guards. At the main hangar, a single guard was keeping watch.
I floated above the east tower; beneath me, cuddled in her sleeping silks and furs, I could picture Tavia. How surprised she would be could she know that I hovered thus close above her.
I floated above the east tower; below me, snuggled in her sleeping silks and furs, I could picture Tavia. How surprised she would be if she knew I was hovering so close to her.
Dropping lower I circled the tower, coming to a stop finally opposite the windows of the room in which Tavia had been confined. I maneuvered the ship to bring one of the ports opposite the window and close enough to give me a view of the interior of the room. But though I remained there for some time, I could see no one and at last I became convinced that Tavia had been removed to other quarters. I was disappointed for this must necessarily greatly complicate my plans for rescue. I had foreseen but little difficulty in transferring Tavia by night through the tower window to the flier; now I must make my plans all anew. Everything hinged, of course, upon my ability to locate Tavia. To do that it was evident that I must enter the palace. The moment that I quitted the invisibility of my flier, I should be menaced by the greatest danger at every turn, and, clothed as I was in home-made harness fashioned by the hands of the slaves of Phor Tak, I should arouse the active suspicion of the first person who laid eyes upon me.
Dropping lower, I circled the tower and finally stopped opposite the windows of the room where Tavia had been held. I adjusted the ship to bring one of the ports directly in front of the window, close enough to see inside the room. But even after waiting there for a while, I didn't see anyone, and I eventually became convinced that Tavia had been moved to another location. I was disappointed because this would complicate my rescue plans significantly. I had expected little trouble transferring Tavia through the tower window to the flier at night; now I had to come up with a whole new strategy. Everything depended, of course, on my ability to find Tavia. To do that, it was clear that I had to enter the palace. The moment I left the safety of my flier, I would face serious danger at every turn, and dressed in the homemade harness made by the slaves of Phor Tak, I would definitely raise suspicion with anyone who saw me.
I must enter the palace and to do it in any degree of safety I must have a disguise.
I need to get into the palace, and to do so safely, I need a disguise.
All my ports were now closed, the periscope being my only eye. I turned it slowly about as I tried to plan some method of procedure that might have within it some tiny seed of success.
All my options were now closed off, and the periscope was my only way to see. I turned it slowly as I tried to come up with a plan that might have even a small chance of success.
As the panorama slowly unfolded itself upon the ground glass before me there appeared the main palace hangar and the single warrior upon watch. Here my periscope came to rest, for here was an entrance to the palace and here a disguise.
As the view gradually revealed itself on the ground glass in front of me, the main palace hangar and the lone guard on watch came into view. My periscope stopped here because this was the entrance to the palace, and here was a disguise.
Slowly maneuvering my ship in the direction of the hangar, I brought it down upon the roof of that structure. I should have been glad to moor it, but here there were no means at hand. I must depend upon its own weight and hope that no high wind would rise.
Slowly guiding my ship toward the hangar, I landed it on the roof of that building. I should have felt relieved to dock it, but there was no way to secure it. I had to rely on its own weight and pray that no strong winds would pick up.
Realizing that the instant that I emerged from the interior of the flier I should be entirely visible, I waited, watching through my periscope until the warrior upon the roof just below me turned his back; then I emerged quickly from the ship through one of the upper hatches and dropped to the roof upon the side closest to the warrior. I was about four feet from the edge of the roof and he was standing almost below me, his back toward me. Should he turn he would discover me instantly and would give an alarm before I could be upon him. My only hope of success, therefore, was to silence him before he realized that he was menaced.
Realizing that the moment I stepped out of the flier I would be completely visible, I waited, watching through my periscope until the warrior on the roof just below me turned his back. Then, I quickly emerged from the ship through one of the upper hatches and dropped onto the roof on the side closest to the warrior. I was about four feet from the edge of the roof, and he was standing almost directly below me, facing away. If he turned, he would spot me right away and raise the alarm before I could reach him. My only chance of success was to take him down before he realized he was in danger.
I have learned from the experiences of John Carter that first thoughts are often inspirations, while sober afterthought may lead to failure, or so delay action as to nullify all its effect.
I’ve learned from John Carter's experiences that initial thoughts are often sparks of inspiration, while serious second thoughts can lead to failure or delay actions so much that they lose their impact.
Therefore, in this instance, I acted upon inspiration. I did not hesitate. I stepped quickly to the edge of the roof and hurled myself straight at the broad shoulders of the sentry. In my hand was a slim dagger.
Therefore, in this situation, I acted on impulse. I didn't hesitate. I quickly moved to the edge of the roof and jumped directly at the broad shoulders of the guard. In my hand was a small dagger.
The end came quickly. I think the poor fellow never knew what happened to him. Dragging his body to the interior of the hangar I stripped the harness from it, at the same time, though almost mechanically, I noted the ships within the hangar. With the exception of one, a patrol boat, they all bore the personal insignia of the Jed of Tjanath. They were the king's ships—an ornate cruiser heavily armed, two smaller pleasure crafts, a two-man scout flier and a one-man scout flier. They were not much, of course, by comparison with the ships of Helium, but I was quite sure that they were absolutely the best that Tjanath could afford. However, having my own ship, I was not particularly concerned with these other than that I am always interested in ships of all descriptions.
The end came quickly. I don't think the poor guy ever realized what happened to him. Dragging his body into the hangar, I took off the harness, while almost automatically noticing the ships inside. With the exception of one, a patrol boat, they all had the personal insignia of the Jed of Tjanath. They were the king's ships—an ornate cruiser heavily armed, two smaller pleasure boats, a two-man scout flier, and a one-man scout flier. They weren't much, of course, compared to the ships of Helium, but I was pretty sure they were the best Tjanath could offer. However, since I had my own ship, I wasn't particularly concerned with these, other than my usual interest in ships of all kinds.
Not far from where I stood was the entrance to a ramp leading down into the palace. Realizing that only through boldness might I succeed, I walked directly to the ramp and entered it. As I rounded the first turn I was appalled to see that the ramp passed directly through a guard room. Upon the floor fully a score of warriors were stretched upon their sleeping silks and furs.
Not far from where I was standing was the entrance to a ramp leading down into the palace. Realizing that only by being bold could I succeed, I walked straight to the ramp and went in. As I turned the first corner, I was shocked to see that the ramp went right through a guard room. On the floor, about twenty warriors were sprawled out on their sleeping silks and furs.
I did not dare to pause; I must keep on. Perhaps I could pass them without arousing their curiosity. I had had but a brief glimpse of the room before I entered it, and in that glimpse I had seen only men apparently wrapped in sleep and an instant later, as I emerged into the room itself, I saw that it contained only those whom I had first seen. No one within it was awake, but I heard voices in an adjoining room. Hurrying quickly across the apartment I entered the ramp upon the opposite side.
I didn’t hesitate; I had to keep going. Maybe I could get past them without sparking their curiosity. I had only caught a quick look at the room before entering, and in that glance, I saw only men seemingly asleep. The moment I stepped into the room, I realized it only held the people I had seen initially. No one inside was awake, but I could hear voices from a nearby room. I hurried across the space and entered the ramp on the other side.
I think my heart had stood still as I strode silently across that room among those sleeping men, for had a single one of them awakened he would have inevitably known that I was no fellow member of the guard.
I think my heart stopped as I quietly walked across that room filled with sleeping men, because if even one of them had woken up, he would have realized I wasn’t a fellow guard.
Further down within the palace itself I should be in less danger, for so great is the number of retainers in the palace of a jed that no one may know them all by sight, so that strange and unfamiliar faces are almost as customary as they are upon the avenues of a city.
Further inside the palace, I should be safer, because there are so many servants in a jed's palace that no one can recognize all of them by sight, making strange and unfamiliar faces just as common as they are on the streets of a city.
My plan was to try to reach the tower room in which Tavia had been confined, for I was positive that, from my position in the flier, I could not see the entire interior and it was just possible that Tavia was there.
My plan was to try to get to the tower room where Tavia had been kept, because I was sure that, from my spot in the flier, I couldn't see the whole interior and there was a chance that Tavia was there.
Owing to the construction of my ship I had been unable to attract her attention without raising a hatch and taking the chance of revealing my presence, which would have, I felt, jeopardized Tavia's chances for escape far too greatly to warrant my doing so.
Due to the design of my ship, I couldn't get her attention without opening a hatch and risking exposure, which I believed would endanger Tavia's chances of escape way too much to justify.
Perhaps I should have waited until night; perhaps I was over-anxious and in my zeal might be running far greater risks than were necessary. I thought of these things now and perhaps I upbraided myself, but I had gone too far now to retreat. I was properly in for it, whatever might follow.
Perhaps I should have waited until night; maybe I was too eager, and in my excitement, I might be taking much bigger risks than needed. I think about these things now and maybe I scold myself, but I had gone too far to turn back. I was fully committed to it, no matter what happened next.
As I followed the ramp down to different levels I tried to discover some familiar landmark that might lead me to the east tower, and as I emerged into a corridor at one of the levels I saw almost directly in front of me a door which I instantly recognized—it was the door to the office of Yo Seno, the keeper of the keys.
As I walked down the ramp to different levels, I looked for a familiar landmark that could guide me to the east tower. When I stepped into a corridor on one of the levels, I saw a door directly in front of me that I instantly recognized—it was the door to Yo Seno's office, the keeper of the keys.
"Good!" I thought. "Fate certainly has led me here."
"Awesome!" I thought. "Destiny definitely brought me here."
Crossing to the door I opened it and stepped quickly within the room, closing the door behind me. Yo Seno was sitting at his desk. He was alone. He did not look up. He was one of those arrogant men—a small man with a little authority—who liked to impress his importance upon all inferiors. Therefore, doubtless, it was his way to ignore his visitors for a moment or two. This time he made a mistake. After quietly locking the door behind me I crossed to the door at the opposite end of the room and bolted it, too.
Crossing to the door, I opened it and quickly stepped into the room, closing the door behind me. Yo Seno was sitting at his desk. He was alone. He didn’t look up. He was one of those arrogant men—short and with a little power—who loved to show off his importance to everyone beneath him. So, it was probably his habit to ignore his visitors for a moment or two. This time he messed up. After quietly locking the door behind me, I walked over to the door at the other end of the room and locked it as well.
It was then that, doubtless compelled by curiosity, Yo Seno looked up. At first he did not recognize me. "What do you want?" he demanded gruffly.
It was then that, probably out of curiosity, Yo Seno looked up. At first, he didn’t recognize me. "What do you want?" he asked gruffly.
"You, Yo Seno," I said.
"You, Yo Seno," I said.
He looked at me steadily for a moment with growing astonishment, then with his eyes wide he leaped to his feet. "You?" he screamed. "By Issus, no! You are dead!"
He stared at me for a moment in shock, then with his eyes wide open, he jumped to his feet. "You?" he yelled. "By Issus, no! You’re dead!"
"I have returned from the grave, Yo Seno. I have come back to haunt you," I said.
"I've come back from the dead, Yo Seno. I'm here to haunt you," I said.
"What do you want?" he demanded. "Stand aside! You are under arrest."
"What do you want?" he demanded. "Step aside! You're under arrest."
"Where is Tavia?" I asked.
"Where's Tavia?" I asked.
"How do I know?" he demanded.
"How am I supposed to know?" he asked.
"You are the keeper of the keys, Yo Seno. Who should know better than you where the prisoners are?"
"You’re the one in charge of the keys, Yo Seno. Who would know better than you where the prisoners are?"
"Well, what if I do know? I shall not tell," he said.
"Well, what if I do know? I won't say," he said.
"You shall tell, Yo Seno, or you shall die," I warned him.
"You need to tell me, Yo Seno, or you’re going to die," I warned him.
He had walked from behind his desk and was standing not far from me when, without warning and with far greater celerity than I gave him credit for possessing, he snatched his long sword from its scabbard and was upon me.
He had walked out from behind his desk and was standing nearby when, out of nowhere and much faster than I expected him to be, he drew his long sword from its sheath and was right in front of me.
I was forced to jump backward quickly to avoid his first cut, but when he swung the second time my own sword was out and I was on my guard. Yo Seno proved himself no mean antagonist. He was clever with the sword and he knew that he was fighting for his life. I wondered at first why he did not call for help and then I came to the conclusion that it was because there were no warriors in the adjoining room, as there had been upon my previous visit to Yo Seno's quarters. We fought in silence, only the din of metal upon metal reflecting the deadliness of the combat.
I quickly had to jump back to dodge his first strike, but when he swung at me again, my sword was drawn and I was ready. Yo Seno proved to be a formidable opponent. He was skilled with the sword and understood he was fighting for his life. At first, I wondered why he didn't call for help, but then I realized it was likely because there were no warriors in the next room, unlike my last visit to Yo Seno's quarters. We fought in silence, with only the clash of metal on metal highlighting the intensity of the battle.
I was in a hurry to be done with him and I was pressing him closely when he resorted to a trick which came near to proving my undoing. I had backed him up against his desk and thought that I had him where he could not escape. I could not see his left hand behind him; nor the heavy vase for which it was groping, but an instant later I saw the thing flying straight at my head and I also saw the opening which Yo Seno made in the instant that he cast the missile, for so occupied was he with his aim that he let his point drop. Stooping beneath the vase I sprang into close quarters, driving my sword through the heart of Yo Seno.
I was eager to wrap things up with him and was crowding him closely when he pulled a trick that almost got me in trouble. I had him backed up against his desk and figured he had nowhere to go. I couldn't see his left hand behind him or the heavy vase it was reaching for, but a moment later, I saw the vase coming straight at my head. I also noticed the opening Yo Seno created when he threw the missile, as he was so focused on his aim that he let his guard down. Ducking under the vase, I charged in close and drove my sword through Yo Seno's heart.
As I wiped the blood from my blade upon the hair of my victim I could not repress a feeling of elation that it had been my hand that had cut down the seducer of Phao and in some measure avenged the honor of my friend, Nur An.
As I wiped the blood from my blade on my victim's hair, I couldn't help but feel a rush of happiness that it was my hand that had taken down the seducer of Phao and, in a way, avenged the honor of my friend, Nur An.
Now, however, was no time for meditation. I heard footsteps approaching in the corridor without and hastily seizing the harness of the corpse, I dragged it toward the panel which hid the entrance to the secret corridor that led to the room in the east tower—that familiar corridor where I had passed happy moments alone with Tavia.
Now, though, was not the time for thinking. I heard footsteps coming down the hallway outside, so I quickly grabbed the harness of the corpse and pulled it toward the panel that concealed the entrance to the secret corridor leading to the room in the east tower—that familiar corridor where I had spent happy moments alone with Tavia.
With more haste than reverence, I dumped the corpse of Yo Seno into the dark interior and then, closing the panel after me, I groped my way through the darkness toward the tower room, my heart high with the hope that I might find Tavia still there.
With more urgency than respect, I threw Yo Seno's body into the dark space and then, closing the panel behind me, I fumbled my way through the darkness toward the tower room, my heart filled with the hope of finding Tavia still there.
As I approached the panel at the tower end of the corridor I could feel my heart beating rapidly—a sensation to which I was unaccustomed and which I could not explain. I was positive that I was in excellent physical condition, and, while it is not at all unusual that surprise or imminent danger causes the heart of some men to palpitate, even though they may be endowed with exceptional courage, yet, for my part, I had never experienced such a sensation and I must admit that I was deeply mystified.
As I got closer to the panel at the end of the corridor, I could feel my heart racing—a feeling I wasn't used to and couldn't explain. I was sure I was in great shape, and while it's not uncommon for surprise or imminent danger to make some men’s hearts race, even if they're exceptionally brave, I had never felt anything like that before, and I have to admit I was really puzzled.
The anticipation of seeing Tavia again soon caused me to forget the unpleasant sensation and as I stopped behind the panel my whole mind was occupied with pleasurable consideration of what I hoped awaited me beyond—the longed for reunion with this best of friends.
The excitement of seeing Tavia again soon made me forget the uncomfortable feeling, and as I stood behind the panel, my mind was completely filled with the happy thoughts of what I hoped would be waiting for me on the other side—the long-awaited reunion with my best friend.
I was upon the point of springing the catch and opening the panel when my attention was attracted by voices from the room beyond. I heard a man's voice and that of a woman, but I could understand no words. Cautiously, I opened the panel sufficiently to permit me to view the interior of the apartment.
I was about to spring the catch and open the panel when I heard voices from the room beyond. I recognized a man's voice and a woman's voice, but I couldn't make out any words. Carefully, I opened the panel just enough to see inside the apartment.
The scene that met my gaze sent the hot fighting blood surging through my frame. In the center of the room a young warrior in rich trappings had Tavia in his grasp and was dragging her across the room toward the doorway. Tavia struggled, striking at him.
The sight before me sent adrenaline pumping through my veins. In the middle of the room, a young warrior in fancy gear had Tavia in his grip and was pulling her across the space toward the doorway. Tavia was fighting back, hitting him.
"Don't be a fool," snarled the man. "Haj Osis has given you to me. You will lead a better life as my slave than most free women live."
"Don't be an idiot," the man snapped. "Haj Osis has given you to me. You’ll have a better life as my slave than most free women do."
"I prefer prison or death," replied Tavia.
"I’d rather go to prison or die," replied Tavia.
Phao was standing helplessly at one side, her eyes filled with compassion for Tavia. It was obvious that she could do nothing to defend her friend, for the trappings of the warrior proclaimed him of high rank, but just what that rank was I did not discern at the time for I was not interested. In a bound I was in the center of the room and seizing the warrior roughly by the shoulder, I hurled him backward so heavily that he fell sprawling to the floor. I heard gasps of astonishment from both Phao and Tavia and my name breathed in the soft accents of the latter.
Phao stood helplessly to the side, her eyes filled with compassion for Tavia. It was clear that she could do nothing to protect her friend, as the warrior's attire indicated he held a high status, though I didn't care to know the specifics at that moment. In one leap, I was in the middle of the room, grabbing the warrior roughly by the shoulder and throwing him backward with such force that he fell flat on the floor. I heard gasps of shock from both Phao and Tavia, the latter whispering my name in soft tones.
As I drew my sword the warrior scrambled to his feet, but did not draw. "Fool! Idiot! Knave!" he shrieked. "Do you not realize what you have done? Do you not know who I am?"
As I pulled out my sword, the warrior quickly got to his feet but didn’t draw his own. “Fool! Idiot! Knave!” he yelled. “Don’t you understand what you’ve done? Don’t you know who I am?”
"In a moment it will be 'who you were'," I told him in a low voice. "On guard!"
"In a moment, it will be 'who you were,'" I told him in a quiet voice. "Stay alert!"
"No," he cried, backing away. "You wear the harness and the metal of a warrior of the guard. You cannot dare draw your sword against the son of Haj Osis. Back, fellow, I am Prince Haj Alt."
"No," he shouted, stepping back. "You’re wearing the armor and gear of a guard warrior. You can’t possibly draw your sword against the son of Haj Osis. Step back, friend, I am Prince Haj Alt."
"I could pray to Issus that you might be Haj Osis himself," I replied, "but at least there will be some recompense in the knowledge that I have destroyed his spawn. On guard, you fool, unless you wish to die like a sorak."
"I could pray to Issus that you might be Haj Osis himself," I replied, "but at least there will be some satisfaction in knowing that I have destroyed his offspring. Stay alert, you fool, unless you want to end up dead like a sorak."
He was still backing away and now he looked about him with every evidence of terror written upon his weak countenance. He espied the panel door that I had inadvertently left open and before I could prevent he had darted through and closed it behind him. I leaped in pursuit, but the lock had clicked and I did not know where to find the mechanism to release it.
He was still backing away and now he looked around him with all the signs of fear on his weak face. He noticed the panel door that I had accidentally left open and before I could stop him, he rushed through and shut it behind him. I jumped to chase him, but the lock had clicked shut and I didn’t know where to find the mechanism to open it.
"Quick, Phao!" I cried. "You know the secret of the panel. Open it for me. We must not permit this fellow to escape or he will sound the alarm and we shall all be lost."
"Quick, Phao!" I shouted. "You know how to open the panel. Do it for me. We can't let this guy escape or he'll raise the alarm and we'll all be in trouble."
Phao ran quickly to my side and placed her thumb upon a button cleverly hidden in the ornate carving of the wood paneling that covered the wall. I waited in breathless expectancy, but the panel did not open. Phao pushed frantically again and again, and then she turned to me with a gesture of helplessness and defeat.
Phao quickly ran to my side and pressed her thumb on a button skillfully hidden in the intricate carving of the wood paneling that covered the wall. I waited, breathless with anticipation, but the panel didn’t open. Phao pushed frantically over and over, then turned to me with a gesture of helplessness and defeat.
"He has tampered with the lock upon the other side," she said. "He is a clever rogue and he would have thought of that."
"He messed with the lock on the other side," she said. "He's a clever trickster, and he would have thought of that."
"We must follow," I said, and raising my long sword I struck the panel a heavy blow that would have shattered much thicker planking, but I only made a scratch upon it, tearing away a little piece scarce thicker than a fingernail, but the scar that I had made revealed the harrowing truth—the panel was constructed of forandus, the hardest and the lightest metal known to Barsoomians. I turned away. "It is useless," I said, "to attempt to pierce forandus with cold steel."
"We have to keep going," I said, and lifting my long sword, I struck the panel with a force that could have broken through much thicker wood, but all I did was make a scratch, pulling off a piece no thicker than a fingernail. Yet the mark I left showed the harsh reality—the panel was made of forandus, the hardest and lightest metal known to the people of Barsoom. I turned away. "It's pointless," I said, "to try to break through forandus with cold steel."
Tavia had crossed to us and was standing in silence, looking up into my face. Her eyes were bathed with unshed tears and I saw her lips tremble. "Hadron!" she breathed. "You have come back from the dead. Oh, why did you come, for this time they will make no mistake."
Tavia had walked over to us and was standing quietly, gazing up at my face. Her eyes were filled with unshed tears and I noticed her lips quivering. "Hadron!" she whispered. "You’re back from the dead. Oh, why did you come, because this time they won’t make any mistakes."
"You know why I came, Tavia," I told her.
"You know why I came, Tavia," I said to her.
"Tell me," she said, very soft and low.
"Tell me," she said softly and quietly.
"For friendship, Tavia," I replied; "for the best friend that a man ever had."
"For friendship, Tavia," I replied; "for the best friend anyone could ever have."
At first she seemed surprised and then an odd little smile curved her lips. "I would rather have the friendship of Hadron of Hastor," she said, "than any other gift the world might give me."
At first, she looked surprised, and then a quirky little smile appeared on her lips. "I'd rather have the friendship of Hadron of Hastor," she said, "than any other gift the world could offer me."
It was a nice thing for her to say and I certainly appreciated it, but I did not understand that little smile. However, I had no time then in which to solve riddles; the problem of our safety was the all important question, and then it was that I thought of the vial in my pocket pouch. I looked quickly about the room. In one corner I espied a pile of sleeping silks and furs; something there might answer my purpose; the contents of the vial might yet give us all freedom if I had but time enough. I ran quickly across the room and searched rapidly until I had found three pieces of fabric that were at least better suited to my purpose than any of the others. I opened my pocket pouch to withdraw the vial and at the same instant I heard the pounding of running feet and the clank and clatter of arms.
It was nice of her to say that, and I really appreciated it, but I didn’t get that little smile. Still, I didn’t have time to figure out riddles; the main issue was our safety. That’s when I remembered the vial in my pocket pouch. I quickly glanced around the room. In one corner, I spotted a pile of sleeping silks and furs; something there might be useful. The contents of the vial could still give us freedom if I just had enough time. I hurried across the room and quickly searched until I found three pieces of fabric that were at least better for my needs than the others. I opened my pocket pouch to take out the vial, and at that same moment, I heard the pounding of running feet and the clank and clatter of weapons.
Too late! They were already at the door. I closed my pocket pouch and waited. At first it was in my mind to take them on in combat as they entered, but I put that idea aside as worse than useless, since it could result in nothing but my death, whereas time might conjure an opportunity to use the contents of the vial.
Too late! They were already at the door. I closed my pouch and waited. At first, I thought about fighting them as they came in, but I dismissed that idea as pointless, since it would only lead to my death, while waiting might create a chance to use the contents of the vial.
The door swung open, fully fifty warriors were revealed in the corridor without. A padwar of the guard entered followed by his men. "Surrender!" he commanded.
The door swung open, and fifty warriors were revealed in the hallway outside. A guard officer entered, followed by his men. "Surrender!" he ordered.
"I have not drawn," I replied. "Come and take it."
"I haven't drawn," I said. "Come and take it."
"You admit that you are the warrior who attacked the prince, Haj Alt?" he demanded.
"You admit that you're the warrior who attacked Prince Haj Alt?" he asked.
"I do," I replied.
"I do," I said.
"What have these women to do with it?"
"What do these women have to do with it?"
"Nothing. I do not know them. I followed Haj Alt here because I thought that it would give me the opportunity that I have long sought to kill him."
"Nothing. I don’t know them. I followed Haj Alt here because I thought it would give me the chance I’ve been looking for to kill him."
"Why did you want to kill him?" demanded the padwar. "What grievance have you against the prince?"
"Why did you want to kill him?" the padwar asked sharply. "What issue do you have with the prince?"
"None," I replied. "I am a professional assassin and I was hired by others."
"None," I replied. "I'm a professional assassin, and I was hired by someone else."
"Who are they?" he demanded.
"Who are they?" he asked.
I laughed at him, for I knew that he knew better than to ask a professional assassin of Barsoom such a question as that. The members of this ancient fraternity are guided by a code of ethics which they scrupulously observe and seldom, if ever, can anything persuade or force one of their number to divulge the name of his principal.
I laughed at him because I knew he should have known better than to ask a professional assassin from Barsoom such a question. Members of this ancient brotherhood follow a strict code of ethics that they take very seriously, and rarely—if ever—can anything convince or force one of them to reveal who they work for.
I saw Tavia's eyes upon me and it seemed to me that there was a little questioning expression in them, but I knew that she must know that I was lying thus to protect her and Phao.
I saw Tavia's eyes on me, and it seemed like there was a hint of curiosity in them, but I knew she had to realize that I was lying to protect her and Phao.
I was hustled from the chamber and as I was being conducted along the corridors and down the ramps of the palace, the padwar questioned me in an endeavor to learn my true identity. I was greatly relieved to discover that they did not recognize me and I hoped that I might continue to escape recognition, not that it would make any difference in my fate for I realized that the direst would be inflicted upon one who had attempted to assassinate the prince of the house of Haj Osis, but I was afraid that were I to be recognized they might accuse Tavia of complicity in the attack upon Haj Alt and that she would be made to suffer accordingly.
I was rushed out of the chamber, and as I was led through the hallways and down the ramps of the palace, the guard questioned me in an attempt to figure out my true identity. I was really relieved to find out that they didn’t recognize me, and I hoped I could continue to avoid being identified. Not that it would change my fate, since I knew the worst would happen to anyone who tried to assassinate the prince of the house of Haj Osis. But I was worried that if I were recognized, they might accuse Tavia of being involved in the attack on Haj Alt, and she would face the consequences.
Presently I found myself in the pits again and by chance in the very cell that Nur An and I had occupied. I experienced almost the sensations of a homecoming, but with variations. Once again I was alone, fettered to a stone wall. My only hope the vial which they had overlooked and which still reposed at the bottom of my pocket pouch. But this was no time or place to use its contents, nor had I the requisite materials at hand even had I been unfettered.
Currently, I found myself back in the pits, and by chance, in the exact cell that Nur An and I had occupied. I felt almost like I was coming home, but with differences. Once again, I was alone, chained to a stone wall. My only hope was the vial they had missed, still sitting at the bottom of my pocket pouch. But this wasn’t the right time or place to use its contents, and I didn’t have the necessary materials even if I were free.
I was not long in the pits this time before warriors came and, unlocking my fetters, conducted me to the great throne room of the palace, where Haj Osis sat upon his dais surrounded by the high officers and functionaries of his army and his court.
I wasn't in the pits for long before warriors arrived and, unlocking my chains, took me to the grand throne room of the palace, where Haj Osis sat on his platform surrounded by the high-ranking officers and officials of his army and court.
Haj Alt, the prince, was there and when he saw me being led up toward the throne he trembled with rage. As I was halted in front of the jed, he turned to his son. "Is this the warrior who attacked you, Haj Alt?" he asked.
Haj Alt, the prince, was there, and when he saw me being brought up to the throne, he shook with anger. As I was stopped in front of the jed, he turned to his son. "Is this the warrior who attacked you, Haj Alt?" he asked.
"This is the scoundrel," replied the younger man. "He took me by surprise and would have stabbed me in the back had I not managed to outwit him."
"This is the jerk," replied the younger man. "He caught me off guard and would have stabbed me in the back if I hadn't managed to outsmart him."
"He drew his sword against you," demanded Haj Osis—"against the person of a prince?"
"He pulled his sword on you," demanded Haj Osis—"against a prince?"
"He did and he would have killed me with it, too, as he did kill Yo Seno, whose corpse I found in the corridor that leads from Yo Seno's office to the tower."
"He did, and he would have killed me with it too, just like he killed Yo Seno, whose body I found in the hallway that goes from Yo Seno's office to the tower."
So, they had found the body of Yo Seno. Well, they would not kill me any deader for that crime than for menacing the life of the prince.
So, they had found Yo Seno's body. Well, they wouldn't kill me any more for that crime than for threatening the prince's life.
At this juncture an officer entered the throne room rather hurriedly. He was breathing rapidly as he stopped at the foot of the throne. He was standing right beside me and I saw him turn and look quickly at me, his eyes running rapidly up and down me between head and feet. Then he addressed the man upon the throne.
At that moment, an officer rushed into the throne room. He was breathing heavily as he paused at the foot of the throne. He stood right next to me, and I noticed him quickly glance at me, his eyes darting up and down my body from head to toe. Then he spoke to the man on the throne.
"Haj Osis, Jed of Tjanath," he said, "I came quickly to tell you that the body of a warrior of the hangar guard was just found within the Jed's hangar. His harness had been stripped from him and his weapons, while strange harness and strange weapons were left beside his corpse and as I approached your throne, Haj Osis, I recognized the harness of my dead warrior upon the body of this man here," and he pointed an accusing finger at me.
"Haj Osis, Jed of Tjanath," he said, "I rushed over to tell you that the body of a hangar guard was just discovered in the Jed's hangar. His harness and weapons had been taken, and weird harness and weapons were left next to his corpse. As I walked towards your throne, Haj Osis, I recognized the harness of my fallen warrior on the body of this man," and he pointed an accusing finger at me.
Haj Osis was scrutinizing me very carefully now. There was a strange look in his eyes that I did not like. It betokened half recognition and then of a sudden I saw the dawning of full recognition there, and the Jed of Tjanath swore a loud oath that resounded through the great throne room.
Haj Osis was watching me closely now. There was an unsettling look in his eyes that I didn’t like. It indicated partial recognition, and then suddenly I saw full recognition beginning to show, and the Jed of Tjanath swore a loud oath that echoed through the grand throne room.
"Breath of Issus!" he shouted. "Look at him! Do you not know him? He is the spy from Jahar who called himself Hadron of Hastor. He died The Death. With my own eyes I saw him, and yet he is back here in my palace murdering my people and threatening my son, but this time he shall die." Haj Osis had arisen from his throne and with upraised hands that seemed to claw the air above me he appeared like some hideous corphal pronouncing a curse upon its victim. "But first we shall know who sent him there. He did not come of his own volition to kill me and my son; behind him is some malignant mind that yearns to destroy the Jed of Tjanath and his family. Burn him slowly, but do not let him die until he has divulged the name. Away with him! Let the fire be hot, but slow."
"Breath of Issus!" he shouted. "Look at him! Don't you recognize him? He's the spy from Jahar who went by Hadron of Hastor. He was dead. I saw him die with my own eyes, and yet he's back here in my palace, killing my people and threatening my son, but this time he'll be the one to die." Haj Osis had risen from his throne, and with hands raised as if to claw the air above me, he looked like a monstrous figure casting a curse on its victim. "But first, we need to find out who sent him. He didn’t come here on his own to kill me and my son; there’s some evil mind behind him that wants to destroy the Jed of Tjanath and his family. Burn him slowly, but don’t let him die until he reveals the name. Take him away! Let the fire be intense, but gradual."
XII
XII
THE CLOAK OF INVISIBILITY
The Invisibility Cloak
As Haj Osis, Jed of Tjanath, pronounced sentence of death upon me I knew that whatever I might do to save myself must be done at once, for the instant that the guards laid hold upon me again my final hope would have vanished for it was evident that the torture and the death would take place immediately.
As Haj Osis, Jed of Tjanath, declared my death sentence, I realized that any chance I had to save myself had to happen right away, because the moment the guards grabbed me again, my last hope would disappear. It was clear that the torture and execution would happen immediately.
The warriors forming the guard that had escorted me from the pits were lined up several paces behind me. The dais upon which Haj Osis stood was raised but a little over three feet above the floor of the throne room. Between me and the Jed of Tjanath there was no one, for as he had sentenced me he had advanced from his throne to the very edge of the platform.
The guards who had brought me from the pits were lined up a few steps behind me. The platform where Haj Osis stood was only a little over three feet above the throne room floor. There was no one between me and the Jed of Tjanath, as he had stepped down from his throne to the very edge of the platform when he passed sentence on me.
The action that I took was not delayed as long as it has taken me to tell it. Had it been, it could never have been taken for the guards would have been upon me. Instantly the last word fell from his mouth my plan was formulated and in that instant I leaped cat-like to the dais, full upon Haj Osis, Jed of Tjanath. So sudden, so unexpected was my attack that there was no defense. I seized him by the throat with one hand and with the other I snatched his dagger from its sheath and raising it above him I shouted my warning in a voice that all might hear.
The action I took didn’t take nearly as long to happen as it does for me to describe it. If it had, I would never have managed it because the guards would have caught me. The moment the last word left his mouth, I hatched my plan and, in that instant, I jumped like a cat onto the dais, right on top of Haj Osis, Jed of Tjanath. My attack was so sudden and unexpected that there was no time for defense. I grabbed him by the throat with one hand and with the other, I pulled his dagger from its sheath. Holding it above him, I shouted my warning in a voice loud enough for everyone to hear.
"Stand back, or Haj Osis dies!" I cried.
"Step back, or Haj Osis will die!" I yelled.
They had started to rush me, but as the full import of my threat came home to them, they halted.
They began to hurry me, but as the full weight of my threat sank in, they stopped.
"It is my life, or yours, Haj Osis," I said, "unless you do what I tell you to do."
"It’s my life or yours, Haj Osis," I said, "unless you follow my instructions."
"What?" he asked, his face black with terror.
"What?" he asked, his face pale with fear.
"Is there an ante room behind the throne?" I asked.
"Is there a room behind the throne?" I asked.
"Yes," he replied. "What of it?"
"Yeah," he answered. "What's the deal?"
"Take me there alone," I said. "Command your people to stand aside."
"Take me there by myself," I said. "Tell your people to step aside."
"And let you kill me when you get me there?" he demanded, trembling.
"And are you going to kill me when you get me there?" he asked, shaking.
"I shall kill you now if you do not," I replied. "Listen, Haj Osis, I did not come here to kill you or your son. What I told the padwar of the guard was a lie. I came for another purpose, far transcending in importance to me the life of Haj Osis or that of his son. Do as I tell you and I promise that I shall not kill you. Tell your people that we are going into the ante room and that I promise not to harm you if we are left alone there for five xats (about fifteen minutes)."
"I'll kill you now if you don't," I said. "Listen, Haj Osis, I didn't come here to kill you or your son. What I told the guard commander was a lie. I came for another reason, one that is way more important to me than the lives of Haj Osis or his son. Do as I say, and I promise I won't kill you. Tell your people we're going into the anteroom, and I promise not to harm you if we’re left alone there for five xats (about fifteen minutes)."
He hesitated. "Make haste," I said, "I have no time to waste," and I let the point of his own dagger touch his throat.
He paused. "Hurry up," I said, "I don't have time to waste," and I pressed the tip of his own dagger against his throat.
"Don't!" he screamed, shrinking back. "I will do whatever you say. Stand back all of you!" he shouted to his people. "I am going to the ante room with this warrior and I command you upon pain of death not to enter there for five xats. At the end of that time, come; but not before."
"Don't!" he yelled, backing away. "I’ll do whatever you say. Everyone, stay back!" he shouted to his people. "I'm going into the ante room with this warrior, and I order you—under threat of death—not to enter for five minutes. After that time, come; but not before."
I took a firm hold upon Haj Osis' harness between his shoulders and I kept the point of his dagger pressed against the flesh beneath his left shoulder blade as I followed him toward the ante room, while those who had crowded the dais behind the throne fell back to make an aisle for us. At the doorway I halted and turned toward them.
I grabbed Haj Osis' harness between his shoulders and kept the tip of his dagger pressed against the skin under his left shoulder blade as I followed him toward the anteroom, while those who had crowded around the throne stepped back to create a path for us. At the doorway, I stopped and turned toward them.
"Remember," I said, "five full xats and not a tal before."
"Remember," I said, "five full xats and not a cent before."
Entering the ante room I closed and bolted the door, and then, still forcing Haj Osis ahead of me, I crossed the room and closed and bolted the only other door to the chamber. Then I pushed the Jed to one side of the room.
Entering the anteroom, I shut and locked the door. Then, still pushing Haj Osis in front of me, I crossed the room and shut and locked the only other door to the chamber. After that, I shoved the Jed to one side of the room.
"Lie down here upon your face," I said.
"Lie down here on your stomach," I said.
"You promised not to kill me," he wailed.
"You said you wouldn't kill me," he cried.
"I shall not kill you unless they come before the five xats are up and you do otherwise than as I bid you so as not to delay me. I am going to bind you, but it will not hurt you."
"I won’t kill you unless they come before the five xats are up and you don’t do what I say to avoid delaying me. I’m going to tie you up, but it won’t hurt."
With poor grace he lay down upon his belly and with his own harness I strapped his arms together behind his back. Then I blindfolded him and left him lying there.
With little grace, he lay on his stomach, and I used his own harness to tie his arms behind his back. Then, I blindfolded him and left him there.
As I had first entered the room I had taken in its contents with a single, quick glance and I had seen there precisely the things that I most needed, and now that I had disposed of Haj Osis I crossed quickly to one of the windows and tore down a part of the silk hangings that covered it. It was a full length of fine, light silk and very wide, since it had been intended to hang in graceful folds as an underdrape with heavier hangings. At the ornate desk where the Jed of Tjanath signed his decrees, I went to work. First I took the vial from my pocket pouch and unstoppered it; then I wadded the silk into a ball and because of its wonderful fineness I could compress it within my two hands. Fastening the ball of silk into a loosely compressed mass with strips torn from another hanging, I slowly poured the contents of the vial over it, turning the ball with the point of Haj Osis' dagger. Remembering Phor Tak's warning, I was careful not to let any of the contents of the vial come in contact with my flesh and I could readily see why one had to be careful as I watched the ball of silk disappear before my eyes.
As I first entered the room, I took in everything with a quick glance and immediately spotted exactly what I needed. Now that I had dealt with Haj Osis, I quickly walked over to one of the windows and tore down part of the silk curtains that covered it. It was a full-length piece of fine, light silk and quite wide, meant to hang in elegant folds underneath heavier drapes. At the ornate desk where the Jed of Tjanath signed his decrees, I got to work. First, I took the vial from my pocket and opened it; then I bunched the silk into a ball, and because it was so fine, I could easily compress it with both hands. I secured the ball of silk into a loosely held shape with strips torn from another curtain, then slowly poured the contents of the vial over it, turning the ball with the tip of Haj Osis' dagger. Remembering Phor Tak's warning, I was careful not to let any of the vial's contents touch my skin, and I quickly understood why it was necessary to be cautious as I watched the ball of silk vanish before my eyes.
Knowing that the compound of invisibility would dry almost as rapidly as it impregnated the silk, I waited only a brief instant after emptying about half the contents of the vial upon the ball. Then, groping with my fingers, I found the strings that held it into its roughly spherical shape and cut them, after which I shook the silk out as best I could. For the most part it was invisible, but there were one or two spots that the compound had not reached. These I quickly daubed with some of the liquid remaining in the vial, which I now restoppered and replaced in my pocket pouch.
Knowing that the invisibility compound would dry almost as quickly as it soaked into the silk, I waited only a moment after pouring about half the vial onto the ball. Then, feeling around with my fingers, I found the strings that held it in its roughly spherical shape and cut them. After that, I shook the silk out as best as I could. For the most part, it was invisible, but there were a couple of spots that the compound hadn't covered. I quickly dabbed these with some of the liquid left in the vial, which I then restoppered and put back in my pocket pouch.
So much depended upon the success of my experiment that I almost feared to put it to the test, but it must be tested and there could be only a few xats remaining before the warriors of Haj Osis would burst into the ante-chamber.
So much depended on the success of my experiment that I was almost afraid to put it to the test, but it had to be tested and there were only a few xats left before the warriors of Haj Osis would burst into the ante-chamber.
By feel alone I draped the silk over my head so that it fell all about me. Through its thin and delicate meshes I could see objects at close range quite well enough to make my way about. I crossed to Haj Osis and took the blind from his eyes, at the same time stepping quickly back. He looked hurriedly and affrightedly about him.
By touch, I threw the silk over my head so that it draped all around me. Through its thin and delicate threads, I could see objects nearby clearly enough to navigate. I walked over to Haj Osis and removed the blindfold from his eyes, quickly stepping back at the same time. He looked around hurriedly and in fear.
"Who did that?" he demanded, and then half to himself, "he is gone." For a moment he was silent, rolling his eyes about in all directions, searching every nook and corner of the apartment. Then an expression that was part hope and part relief came to his eyes.
"Who did that?" he asked, then half to himself, "he's gone." For a moment, he was quiet, looking around in every direction, searching every nook and cranny of the apartment. Then an expression that was a mix of hope and relief appeared in his eyes.
"Quick!" he shouted in a loud voice. "The guard! He has escaped!"
"Quick!" he shouted loudly. "The guard! He's escaped!"
I breathed a sigh of relief—if Haj Osis could not see me, no one could—my plan had succeeded.
I let out a relieved sigh—if Haj Osis couldn’t see me, then no one could—my plan had worked.
I dared not return to the throne room and make my escape that way along corridors with which I was familiar for I could already hear the rush of feet toward the ante room door and I was well aware that, although they could not see me, they could feel me and that unquestionably in the rush my mantle of invisibility, or at least a portion of it, would be torn from me, which would indubitably spell my doom.
I didn't dare go back to the throne room and escape through the familiar corridors because I could already hear the sound of footsteps rushing towards the ante room door. I knew they couldn't see me, but they could sense my presence, and I was sure that in the chaos, part of my invisibility would be stripped away, which would definitely lead to my downfall.
I ran quickly to the other doorway and unbolted it and as I opened it I looked back at Haj Osis. His eyes were upon the doorway and they were wide with incredulity and horror. For an instant I did not realize the cause and looked quickly behind me to see if I could see what had caused Haj Osis' fright and then it dawned upon me and I smiled. He had seen and heard the bolt shot and the door open as though by ghostly hands.
I quickly ran to the other doorway and unlatched it. As I opened it, I glanced back at Haj Osis. His eyes were fixed on the doorway, wide with disbelief and fear. For a moment, I didn't understand why and looked behind me to see what had frightened Haj Osis. Then it hit me, and I smiled. He had seen and heard the bolt slide and the door open as if by ghostly hands.
He must have sensed a vague suspicion of the truth, for he turned quickly toward the other door and screamed a warning in a high falsetto voice. "Do not enter," he cried, "until the five xats are up. It is I who commands—Haj Osis, the Jed."
He must have felt a hint of doubt about the truth, because he quickly turned to the other door and shouted a warning in a high-pitched voice. "Don't come in," he yelled, "until the five xats are up. I’m the one in charge—Haj Osis, the Jed."
Closing the door after me and still smiling, I hastened along the corridor, searching for a ramp that would carry me to the upper levels of the palace from which I could easily locate the guard room and the hangar where I had left my ship.
Closing the door behind me and still smiling, I hurried down the corridor, looking for a ramp that would take me to the upper levels of the palace where I could easily find the guard room and the hangar where I had left my ship.
The corridor I had entered led directly into the royal apartments.
The hallway I walked into went straight to the royal suites.
At first it was difficult to accustom myself to my invisibility and as I suddenly entered an apartment in which there were several people, my first impulse was to turn and flee, but though I had stepped directly into the view of one of the occupants of the room and at a distance of little more than five or six feet without attracting his attention, although his eyes were apparently directly upon me, my confidence was quickly restored. I continued on across the room as nonchalantly as though I had been in my own quarters in Helium.
At first, it was hard to get used to being invisible, and when I suddenly walked into an apartment with several people, my first instinct was to turn and run. However, even though I had stepped right into the line of sight of one of the people in the room, only five or six feet away, and he didn't notice me, I quickly regained my confidence. I moved across the room casually, as if I were in my own place in Helium.
The royal apartments seemed interminable and though I was constantly seeking a way out of them into one of the main corridors of the palace, I was instead constantly stumbling into places where I did not care to be and where I had no business, sometimes with considerable embarrassment, as when I entered a cozy, private apartment in the women's quarters at a moment when I was convinced they were not expecting strange gentlemen.
The royal apartments felt never-ending, and while I was always trying to find my way out into one of the main hallways of the palace, I kept accidentally walking into places I didn’t want to be and had no business being in, sometimes feeling quite embarrassed, like when I walked into a cozy, private room in the women’s quarters just when I thought they weren’t expecting any unfamiliar men.
I would not turn back, however, for I had no time to lose, and crossing the room I followed another short corridor only to leap from the frying pan into the fire—I had entered the forbidden apartment of the Jeddara herself. It is a good thing for the royal lady that it was I and not Haj Osis who came thus unexpectedly upon her, for her position was most compromising, and from his harness I judged that her good looking companion was a slave. In disgust I retreated, for there was no other exit from the apartment, and presently I stumbled, entirely by accident, upon one of the main corridors of the palace—a busy corridor filled with slaves, warriors and courtiers, with men, women and children passing to and fro upon whatever business called them, or perhaps seated upon the carved benches that lined the walls.
I wouldn't turn back, though, because I had no time to waste. I crossed the room and followed another short hallway, only to jump from the frying pan into the fire—I had walked right into the forbidden apartment of the Jeddara herself. It's a good thing it was me and not Haj Osis who stumbled in on her like this, because her situation was really compromising, and from his outfit, I figured her good-looking companion was a slave. Disgusted, I backed away since there was no other way out of the apartment, and soon I accidentally found one of the main corridors of the palace—a busy hallway filled with slaves, warriors, and courtiers, with men, women, and children coming and going for whatever business they had or maybe sitting on the carved benches that lined the walls.
I was not yet accustomed to my new and surprising state of invisibility. I could see the people about me and it seemed inevitable that I must be seen. For a moment I had hesitated in the doorway that had led me to the corridor. A slave girl, approaching along the corridor, turned suddenly toward the doorway where I stood. She was looking directly at me, yet her gaze appeared to pass entirely through me. For an instant I was filled with consternation, and then, realizing that she was about to collide with me, I stepped quickly to one side. She passed by me, but it was evident that she sensed my presence for she paused and looked quickly about, an expression of surprise in her eyes. Then, to my immense relief, she passed on through the doorway. She had not seen me, though doubtless she had heard me as I stepped aside. With a feeling of renewed confidence I now joined the throng in the corridor, threading my way in and out among the people to avoid contact with them and searching diligently all the while for the entrance to a ramp leading upward. This I presently discovered, and it was not long thereafter that I reached the upper level of the palace, where a short search brought me to the guard room at the foot of the ramp leading to the royal hangars.
I wasn't used to my new and surprising state of invisibility yet. I could see the people around me, and it felt like it was inevitable that I'd be seen too. For a moment, I hesitated at the doorway that led to the corridor. A slave girl approached down the corridor and suddenly turned toward the doorway where I stood. She was looking right at me, but her gaze seemed to pass right through me. For a second, I felt a wave of panic, and then realizing she was about to walk into me, I quickly stepped aside. She walked past me, but it was clear she sensed my presence because she paused and looked around, surprise lighting up her eyes. Then, to my huge relief, she moved on through the doorway. She hadn’t seen me, though she must’ve heard me when I stepped aside. With a renewed sense of confidence, I joined the crowd in the corridor, weaving in and out among the people to avoid bumping into them and searching carefully for the entrance to a ramp leading upward. I soon found it, and not long after, I reached the upper level of the palace, where a quick search led me to the guard room at the base of the ramp going to the royal hangars.
Idling in the guard room, the warriors then off duty were engaged in various pursuits. Some were cleaning their harness and polishing their metal; two were playing at jetan, while others were rolling tiny numbered spheres at a group of numbered holes—a fascinating game of chance, called yano, which is, I presume, almost as old as Barsoomian civilization. The room was filled with the laughter and oaths of fighting men. How alike are warriors the world over! But for their harness and their metal they might have been a detachment of the palace guard at Helium.
Idling in the guard room, the off-duty warriors were engaged in various activities. Some were cleaning their armor and polishing their weapons; two were playing a game of jetan, while others were rolling tiny numbered balls into a set of numbered holes—a captivating game of chance called yano, which, I assume, is nearly as ancient as Barsoomian civilization. The room was filled with the laughter and curses of these soldiers. Warriors are so similar no matter where you go! If it weren't for their armor and weapons, they could have been a group of palace guards in Helium.
Passing among them I ascended the ramp to the roof where the hangars stood. Two warriors on duty at the top of the ramp almost blocked my further progress. It would be a narrow squeeze to pass between them and I feared detection. As I paused I could not but overhear their conversation.
Passing by them, I went up the ramp to the roof where the hangars were. Two guards on duty at the top of the ramp almost blocked my way. It would be a tight fit to get between them, and I worried about getting caught. As I stopped, I couldn’t help but overhear their conversation.
"I tell you that he was struck from behind," said one. "He never knew what killed him," and I knew that they were talking about the guardsman I had killed.
"I’m telling you, he was hit from behind," said one. "He never saw it coming," and I realized they were talking about the guardsman I had killed.
"But from whence came his assassin?" demanded the other.
"But where did his assassin come from?" asked the other.
"The padwar believes it may have been a fellow member of the guard. There will be an investigation and we shall all be questioned."
"The padwar thinks it might have been another member of the guard. There will be an investigation, and we will all be questioned."
"It was not I," said the other. "He was my best friend."
"It wasn't me," said the other. "He was my best friend."
"Nor was it I."
"Neither was it me."
"He had a way with women. Perhaps—"
"He had a way with women. Maybe—"
My attention was distracted and their conversation terminated by the footsteps of a warrior running rapidly up the ramp. My position was now most precarious. The ramp was narrow and the man coming from behind might easily bump into me. I must, therefore, pass the sentries immediately and make my way to the roof. There was just sufficient room between the warrior at my left and the sidewall of the ramp for me to pass through, if he did not step back, and with all the stealth that I could summon I edged myself slowly behind him and you may rest assured that I breathed a sigh of relief when I had passed him.
My attention was pulled away, and their conversation stopped when I heard the footsteps of a warrior quickly running up the ramp. My situation was now very risky. The ramp was narrow, and the guy coming behind me could easily bump into me. I had to get past the sentries right away and make my way to the roof. There was just enough space between the warrior on my left and the sidewall of the ramp for me to squeeze through if he didn’t step back. With every bit of stealth I could muster, I carefully edged myself behind him, and I definitely let out a sigh of relief when I managed to pass him.
The warrior ascending the ramp had now reached the two men. "The assassin of the hangar sentry has been discovered," he said. "He is none other than the spy from Jahar who called himself Hadron of Hastor and who, with the other spy, Nur An, was sentenced to die The Death. Through some miracle he escaped and has returned to the palace of Haj Osis. Besides the hangar sentry, he has slain Yo Seno, but he was captured after attacking the prince, Haj Alt. Again he has escaped and he is now at large in the palace. The padwar of the guard has sent me to direct you to redouble your watchfulness. Great will be the reward of him who captures Hadron of Hastor, dead or alive."
The warrior climbing the ramp had now reached the two men. "The assassin of the hangar guard has been found," he said. "He’s none other than the spy from Jahar who called himself Hadron of Hastor and who, along with the other spy, Nur An, was sentenced to the death penalty. By some miracle, he escaped and has returned to the palace of Haj Osis. In addition to the hangar guard, he has killed Yo Seno, but he was caught after attacking the prince, Haj Alt. He escaped again and is now on the loose in the palace. The guard's padwar has sent me to tell you to increase your vigilance. There will be a great reward for whoever captures Hadron of Hastor, dead or alive."
"By my metal, I'd like to see him try to escape this way," said one of the sentries.
"By my metal, I'd love to see him try to escape this way," said one of the guards.
"He'll never come here by daylight."
"He won't ever come here during the day."
I smiled as I walked quickly toward the hangar. To reach the roof without disarranging my robe of invisibility was difficult, but I finally accomplished it. Before me lay the empty roof; no ship was in sight, but I smiled again to myself, knowing well that it was there. I looked about for the eye of the periscope that would reveal the craft's presence to me, but it was not visible. However, that did not concern me greatly since I realized that it might be turned in the opposite direction. It was only necessary for me to walk to where I had left the ship, and this I did, feeling ahead of me with extended hands.
I smiled as I hurried toward the hangar. Getting to the roof without messing up my invisibility cloak was tricky, but I finally did it. In front of me was the empty roof; no ship was in sight, but I grinned again, knowing that it was there. I looked around for the eye of the periscope that would show me the craft's location, but it was nowhere to be found. Still, that didn't bother me much, since I understood it might be facing the other way. I just needed to walk to where I had left the ship, and that's what I did, reaching out with my hands in front of me.
I crossed the roof from one side to the other, but found no ship. That I was perplexed goes without saying. I most certainly knew where I had left the ship, but it no longer was there. Perhaps a wind had moved it slightly, and with this thought in mind I searched another section of the roof, but with equal disappointment. By now I was truly apprehensive, and thereupon I set about a systematic search of the roof until I had covered every square foot of it and was convinced beyond doubt that the worst of disasters had befallen me—my ship was gone; but where? Indeed the compound of invisibility had its drawbacks. My ship might be and probably was at no great distance from me, yet I could not see it. A gentle wind was blowing from the southwest. If my ship had risen from the roof, it would drift in a northeasterly direction, but though I strained my eyes toward that point of the compass I could discern nothing of the tiny eye of the periscope.
I walked across the roof from one side to the other, but I couldn't find the ship. It goes without saying that I was confused. I definitely knew where I had left the ship, but it wasn't there anymore. Maybe the wind had moved it a little, so I searched another part of the roof, but I was just as disappointed. By now, I was genuinely worried, so I started a thorough search of the roof until I had covered every inch of it and was completely convinced that the worst had happened—my ship was gone; but where? Honestly, the invisibility was a real problem. My ship might be—and probably was—close by, but I couldn't see it. A gentle wind was blowing from the southwest. If my ship had lifted off the roof, it would drift in a northeast direction, but even though I strained my eyes toward that direction, I couldn't see the tiny eye of the periscope.
I must admit that for a moment I was well nigh discouraged. It seemed that always when success was about within my grasp some malign fate snatched it from me, but presently I shook this weak despondency from me and with squared shoulders faced the future and whatever it might bring.
I have to say that for a moment I was really discouraged. It felt like every time success was within my reach, some bad luck would take it away, but eventually I shook off that weak feeling and, with my shoulders back, faced the future and whatever it might throw my way.
For a few moments I considered my position in all its aspects and sought to discover the best solution of my problem. I must rescue Tavia, but I felt that it would be useless to attempt to do so without a ship, therefore I must have a ship, and I knew that ships were just beneath me in the royal hangars. At night these hangars would be closed and locked and watched over by sentries in the bargain. If I would have a ship I must take it now and depend upon the swiftness and boldness of my act for its success.
For a few moments, I thought about my situation from all angles and tried to figure out the best way to solve my problem. I had to save Tavia, but I realized it would be pointless to try without a ship, so I needed one. I knew there were ships right below me in the royal hangars. At night, those hangars would be locked up tight and guarded by sentries. If I wanted a ship, I had to act now and rely on my speed and daring to make it work.
Royal fliers are usually fast fliers and if the ships of Haj Osis were no exception to this general Barsoomian rule, I might hope to outdistance pursuit could I but pass the hangar sentry.
Royal fliers are typically fast, and if Haj Osis's ships followed this usual Barsoomian trend, I might expect to escape from pursuit if I could just get past the hangar guard.
Of one thing I was certain, I could not accomplish that by remaining upon the roof of the hangar and so I cautiously descended, choosing a moment when the attention of the sentries was directed elsewhere, for there was always danger that my robe might blow aside, revealing my limbs.
Of one thing I was sure: I couldn't achieve that by staying on the roof of the hangar, so I carefully climbed down, waiting for a moment when the sentries were focused elsewhere. There was always the risk that my robe might blow open and expose my limbs.
Once on the roof again I slipped quickly into the hangar and inspecting the ships I selected one that I was sure would carry four with ease, and which, from its lines, gave token of considerable speed.
Once back on the roof, I quickly slipped into the hangar. After inspecting the ships, I chose one that I was certain could easily hold four people and, based on its design, suggested it was quite fast.
Clambering to the deck I took my place at the controls; very gradually I elevated the ship about a foot from the floor; then I opened the throttle wide.
Climbing up to the deck, I took my position at the controls; slowly, I raised the ship about a foot off the ground; then I opened the throttle all the way.
Directly ahead of me, through the open doorways of the hangar, the sentries were standing upon the opposite side of the room. As the ship leaped into the sunlight they voiced simultaneously a cry of surprise and alarm. Like brave warriors they sprang forward with drawn long swords and I could see that they were going to try to board me before I could gain altitude, but presently one of them halted wide eyed and stood aside.
Directly in front of me, through the open doorways of the hangar, the guards were standing on the other side of the room. As the ship burst into the sunlight, they simultaneously shouted in surprise and alarm. Like brave soldiers, they rushed forward with their swords drawn, and I could tell they were going to try to board me before I could gain altitude, but soon one of them stopped, wide-eyed, and stepped aside.
"Blood of our first ancestor!" he cried. "There is no one at the controls."
"Blood of our first ancestor!" he shouted. "No one is at the controls."
The second man had evidently discovered this simultaneously, for he, too, shrank aside, and with whirling propeller I shot upward from the royal hangar of the Jed of Tjanath.
The second man clearly realized this at the same time, because he also stepped aside, and with the spinning propeller, I shot up from the royal hangar of the Jed of Tjanath.
But only for an instant were the two sentries overwhelmed by astonishment. Immediately I heard the shriek of sirens and the clang of great gongs and then, glancing behind, I saw that already they had launched a flier in pursuit. It was a two-man flier and almost immediately I realized that it was far swifter than the one I had chosen, and then to make matters even worse for me I saw patrol boats arising from hangars located elsewhere upon the palace roof. That they all saw my ship and were converging upon it was evident; escape seemed impossible; each way I turned a patrol boat was approaching; already I had been driven into an ascending spiral, my eyes constantly alert for any avenue of escape that might open to me.
But the two guards were only stunned for a moment. Right away, I heard the sound of sirens and the clang of big gongs, and when I looked back, I saw they had already sent out a flier to chase me. It was a two-man flier, and I quickly realized it was much faster than the one I had picked. To make things worse, I saw patrol boats rising from hangars on other parts of the palace roof. It was clear they all spotted my ship and were heading straight for it; escape felt impossible. No matter which way I turned, a patrol boat was coming closer. I had already been forced into an upward spiral, my eyes constantly scanning for any possible way to escape.
How hopeless it looked! My ship was too slow; my pursuers too many.
How hopeless it seemed! My ship was too slow, and my pursuers were too numerous.
It would not be long now, I thought, and at that very instant I saw something off my port bow at a little greater altitude that gave me one of the greatest thrills I had ever experienced in my life. It was only a little round eye of glass, but to me it meant life and more than life, for it might mean also life and happiness for Tavia—and of course for Sanoma Tora.
It wouldn't be long now, I thought, and just then I saw something off my left side at a slightly higher altitude that gave me one of the biggest thrills I've ever felt in my life. It was just a small round lens, but to me, it represented life and more than life because it could also mean life and happiness for Tavia—and of course for Sanoma Tora.
A patrol boat coming diagonally from below was almost upon me as I drew my flier beneath that floating eye, judging the distance so nicely that I just had clearance for my head beneath the keel of my own ship. Locating one of the hatches, which were so constructed that they could be opened either from the inside or the out, I scrambled quickly into the interior of the Jhama, as Phor Tak had christened it.
A patrol boat was coming diagonally from below and was almost right next to me as I brought my flier beneath that floating eye, perfectly judging the distance so that I just had enough space for my head beneath the keel of my own ship. Finding one of the hatches, which were designed to be opened from either inside or outside, I hurriedly climbed into the interior of the Jhama, as Phor Tak had named it.
Closing the hatch and springing to the controls, I rose quickly out of immediate danger. Then, standing to one side, I watched my former pursuers.
Closing the hatch and jumping to the controls, I quickly pulled away from immediate danger. Then, standing to one side, I watched my former pursuers.
I could read the consternation in their faces as they came alongside the royal flier that I had stolen, and realized that it was unmanned. Not having seen either me or my ship, they must have been hard put to it to find any sort of an explanation for the phenomenon.
I could see the confusion on their faces as they approached the royal flier I had stolen, and realized it was empty. Since they hadn't seen either me or my ship, they must have been struggling to come up with any explanation for what they were witnessing.
As I watched them I found it constantly necessary to change my position, owing to the number of patrol boats and other craft that were congregating. I did not wish to leave the vicinity of the palace entirely for it was my intention to remain here until after dark when I should make an attempt to take Tavia and Phao aboard the Jhama. I also had it in my mind to reconnoiter the east tower during the day and try to get into communication with Tavia if possible. It was already the fifth zode. In fifty xats (three hours) the sun would set.
As I watched them, I found it necessary to keep changing my position because of the number of patrol boats and other vessels gathering around. I didn't want to completely leave the area near the palace since I planned to stay here until after dark to try to get Tavia and Phao on board the Jhama. I also intended to check out the east tower during the day and see if I could get in touch with Tavia. It was already the fifth zode. In fifty xats (three hours), the sun would set.
I wished to initiate my plan of rescue as soon after dark as possible, as experience had taught me that plans do not always develop as smoothly in execution as they do in contemplation.
I wanted to start my rescue plan as soon after dark as I could, since experience had shown me that things don’t always go as smoothly in action as they do in thought.
A warrior from one of the patrol ships had boarded the royal craft that I had purloined and was returning it to the hangar. Some of the ships were following and others were returning to their stations. A single patrol boat remained cruising about and as I watched it I suddenly became aware that a young officer standing upon its deck had espied the eye of my periscope. I saw him pointing toward it and immediately thereafter the craft altered its course and came directly toward me. This was not so good and I lost no time in moving to one side, turning the eye of my periscope away from them so that they could not see it or follow me.
A warrior from one of the patrol ships had boarded the royal craft that I had stolen and was returning it to the hangar. Some of the ships were following, while others were heading back to their stations. One patrol boat remained circling around, and as I watched it, I suddenly noticed a young officer on its deck had spotted the eye of my periscope. I saw him pointing at it, and right after that, the boat changed its course and headed straight for me. This was not ideal, so I quickly moved to the side, turning the eye of my periscope away from them so they couldn’t see it or track me.
I moved a short distance out of their course and then swung my periscope toward them again. To my astonishment I discovered that they, too, had altered their course and were following me.
I shifted just a bit out of their path and then turned my periscope toward them again. To my surprise, I noticed that they had also changed their direction and were now trailing me.
Now I rose swiftly and took a new direction, but when I looked again the craft was bearing down upon me, and not only that, but she was training a gun on me.
Now I quickly got up and headed in a new direction, but when I looked again, the ship was coming straight for me, and not only that, but it was aiming a gun at me.
What had happened? It was evident that something had gone wrong and that I was no longer clothed in total invisibility, but whatever it was, it was too late now to rectify it even if I could. I had but a single recourse and I prayed to my first ancestor that it might not now be too late to put it into execution. Should they fire upon me, I was lost.
What had happened? It was clear that something had gone wrong and that I was no longer completely invisible, but whatever it was, it was too late now to fix it, even if I could. I had only one option left, and I prayed to my first ancestor that it wasn't too late to carry it out. If they shot at me, I was done for.
I brought the Jhama to a full stop and sprang quickly aft to where the rear rifle was mounted on a platform just within the after turret.
I brought the Jhama to a complete stop and quickly ran to the back where the rear rifle was set up on a platform just inside the back turret.
In that instant I had occasion to rejoice in the foresight that had prompted me to rearrange the projectiles properly against the necessity for instant use in such an emergency as this. Selecting one, I jammed it into the chamber and closed the breech block.
In that moment, I was grateful for my earlier decision to organize the projectiles properly for immediate use in an emergency like this. I picked one up, shoved it into the chamber, and closed the breech block.
The turret, crudely and hastily constructed though it had been, responded to my touch and an instant later my sight covered the approaching patrol vessel, and through the tiny opening provided for the sight I witnessed the effect of my first shot with Phor Tak's disintegrating ray rifle.
The turret, though it had been built quickly and poorly, responded to my touch. In an instant, I could see the approaching patrol vessel, and through the small opening meant for the sight, I saw the impact of my first shot with Phor Tak's disintegrating ray rifle.
I had used a metal disintegrating projectile and the result was appalling.
I had used a metal disintegrating projectile, and the outcome was shocking.
I loved a ship and it tore my heart to see that staunch craft fall apart in mid-air as its metal parts disappeared before the disintegrating ray.
I loved a ship, and it broke my heart to watch that sturdy craft break apart in the sky as its metal pieces vanished before the disintegration ray.
But that was not all, as wood and leather and fabric sank with increasing swiftness toward the ground, brave warriors hurtled to their doom. It was horrifying.
But that wasn’t all, as wood, leather, and fabric quickly fell toward the ground, brave warriors rushed to their doom. It was terrifying.
I am a true son of Barsoom; I joy in battle; armed conflict is my birthright, and war the goal of my ambition, but this was not war; it was murder.
I’m a true son of Barsoom; I take pleasure in battle; armed conflict is my birthright, and war is what I aspire to, but this wasn’t war; it was murder.
I took no joy in my victory as I had when I laid Yo Seno low in mortal combat, and now, more than ever, was I determined that this frightful instrument of destruction must in some way be forever banned upon Barsoom. War with such a weapon completely hidden by the compound of invisibility would be too horrible to contemplate. Navies, cities, whole nations could be wiped out by a single battleship thus equipped. The mad dream of Phor Tak might easily come true and a maniac yet rule all Barsoom.
I felt no happiness in my victory like I did when I defeated Yo Seno in battle, and now, more than ever, I was resolved that this terrifying weapon of destruction must be permanently banned on Barsoom. War using such a weapon concealed by invisibility would be unimaginable. Navies, cities, entire nations could be obliterated by a single battleship with that kind of technology. Phor Tak's crazy dream could easily become a reality, and a madman could end up ruling all of Barsoom.
But meditation and philosophizing were not for me at this time. I had work to do and though it necessitated wiping out all Tjanath, I purposed doing it.
But meditation and thinking things through weren't for me right now. I had work to do, and even though it meant eliminating all Tjanath, I was determined to do it.
Again the sirens and the gongs raised their wild alarm; again patrol boats gathered. I felt that I must depart until after nightfall, for I had no stomach to again be forced to turn that deadly rifle upon my fellow men while any alternative existed.
Again the sirens and gongs blared their frantic warning; again, patrol boats assembled. I felt I had to leave until after nightfall because I couldn’t bear the thought of having to turn that deadly rifle on my fellow humans as long as there was any other option.
As I started to turn back to the controls my eyes chanced to fall upon one of the stern ports and, to my surprise, I saw that the shutter was raised. How this occurred I do not know; it has always remained a mystery, but at least it explained how it had been possible for the patrol boat to follow me. That round port hole moving through the air must have filled them with wonder, but at the same time it was a clue to follow and though they did not understand it, they, like the brave warriors that they were, followed it in the line of their duty.
As I began to turn back to the controls, my eyes happened to land on one of the stern ports, and to my surprise, I saw that the shutter was open. I don’t know how that happened; it’s always been a mystery, but at least it explained how the patrol boat had managed to track me. That round porthole moving through the air must have amazed them, but at the same time, it was a lead to follow, and even though they didn’t fully grasp it, they, like the brave warriors they were, pursued it as part of their duty.
I quickly closed it, and, after examining the others and finding them all closed, I was now confident that, with the exception of the small eye of my periscope, I was entirely surrounded by invisibility and hence under no immediate necessity for leaving the vicinity of the palace, as I could easily maneuver the ship to keep out of the way of the patrol boats that were now again congregating near the royal hangar.
I quickly shut it, and after checking the others and seeing they were all closed, I was now sure that, except for the small lens of my periscope, I was completely surrounded by invisibility. Therefore, I didn’t need to leave the area around the palace just yet, as I could easily navigate the ship to avoid the patrol boats that were gathering again near the royal hangar.
I think they were pretty much upset by what had happened and evidently there was no unanimity of opinion as to what should be done. The patrol ships hovered about, evidently waiting orders, and it was not until almost dark that they set out in a systematic search of the air above the city; nor had they been long at this before I understood their orders as well as though I had read them myself. The lower ships moved at an altitude of not over fifty feet above the higher buildings; two hundred feet above these moved the second line. The ships at each level cruised in a series of concentric circles and in opposite directions, thereby combing the air above the city so closely that no enemy ship could possibly approach. The air below was watched by a thousand eyes; at every point of vantage sentries were on watch and upon the roof of every public building guns appeared as if by magic.
I think they were pretty upset about what had happened, and clearly, there wasn’t a consensus on what needed to be done. The patrol ships hovered around, obviously waiting for orders, and it wasn't until almost dark that they began a systematic search of the air above the city. They hadn’t been at it long before I understood their orders as well as if I had read them myself. The lower ships flew at no more than fifty feet above the taller buildings, while two hundred feet above them flew the second line. The ships at each level cruised in a series of concentric circles in opposite directions, thoroughly combing the air above the city so that no enemy ship could get close. The air below was watched by a thousand eyes; at every vantage point, sentries were on guard, and guns appeared like magic on the roofs of every public building.
I began to be quite apprehensive that even the small eye of my periscope might not go undetected and so I dropped my ship into a little opening among some lofty trees that grew within the palace garden, and here I waited some twenty feet above the ground, my periscope completely screened from view, unseen and, in consequence, myself unseeing, until the swift night of Barsoom descended upon Tjanath; then I rose slowly from my leafy retreat.
I started to worry that even the small eye of my periscope could be noticed, so I lowered my ship into a small gap among the tall trees in the palace garden. I waited there, about twenty feet above the ground, with my periscope completely hidden from view, out of sight and, as a result, unable to see anything myself. Then, when the quick night of Barsoom fell over Tjanath, I slowly emerged from my leafy hiding spot.
Above the trees I paused to have a look about me through the periscope. Far above me were the twinkling lights of the circling patrol boats and from a thousand windows of the palace shone other lights. Before me rose the dark outlines of the east tower silhouetted against the starry sky.
Above the trees, I stopped to look around through the periscope. Far above, I saw the twinkling lights of the patrol boats circling, and from a thousand palace windows, other lights glowed. In front of me, the dark shapes of the east tower rose against the starry sky.
Rising slowly I circled the tower until I had brought the Jhama opposite Tavia's window.
Rising slowly, I walked around the tower until I positioned the Jhama in front of Tavia's window.
My ship carried no lights, of course, and I had not switched on any of the lights within her cabin, so that I felt that I might with impunity raise one of the upper hatches, and this I did. The Jhama lay with her upper deck a foot or two beneath the sill of Tavia's window. Before venturing from below I replaced my cloak of invisibility about me.
My ship had no lights, of course, and I hadn’t turned on any lights in the cabin, so I felt I could safely lift one of the upper hatches, which I did. The Jhama was positioned with her upper deck a foot or two below the edge of Tavia's window. Before heading out, I wrapped my cloak of invisibility around me.
There was no light in Tavia's room. I placed my ear close against the iron bars and listened. I could hear no sound. My heart sank within me. Could it be that they had removed her to some other part of the palace? Could it be that Haj Alt had come and taken her away? I shuddered at the mere suggestion and cursed the luck that had permitted him to escape my blade.
There was no light in Tavia's room. I pressed my ear against the iron bars and listened. I could hear nothing. My heart sank. Could it be that they had moved her to another part of the palace? Could it be that Haj Alt had come and taken her away? I shuddered at the thought and cursed the luck that had let him escape my blade.
With all those eyes and ears straining through the darkness I feared to make the slightest sound, though I felt that there was little likelihood that the open hatch would be noticed in the surrounding darkness; yet I must ascertain whether or not Tavia was within that room. I leaned close against the bars and whispered her name. There was no response.
With all those eyes and ears straining through the darkness, I was afraid to make even the slightest sound, even though I thought it was unlikely that the open hatch would be noticed in the surrounding dark; still, I needed to find out if Tavia was in that room. I leaned in close to the bars and whispered her name. There was no response.
"Tavia!" I whispered, this time much louder, and it seemed to me that my voice went booming to high heaven in tones that the dead might hear.
"Tavia!" I whispered, this time much louder, and it felt like my voice was booming up to the heavens in a way even the dead could hear.
This time I heard a response from the interior of the room. It sounded like a gasp and then I heard someone moving—approaching the window. It was so dark in the interior that I could see nothing, but presently I heard a voice close to me.
This time, I heard a response from inside the room. It sounded like a gasp, and then I heard someone moving—coming closer to the window. It was so dark inside that I could see nothing, but soon I heard a voice right next to me.
"Hadron! Where are you?"
"Hadron! Where are you at?"
She had recognized my voice. For some reason I thrilled to the thought of it. "Here at the window, Tavia," I said.
She had recognized my voice. For some reason, that thought excited me. "I'm here at the window, Tavia," I said.
She came very close. "Where?" she asked. "I cannot see you."
She got really close. "Where are you?" she asked. "I can't see you."
I had forgotten my robe of invisibility. "Never mind," I said. "You cannot see me, but I will explain that later. Is Phao with you?"
I forgot my invisibility cloak. "It's fine," I said. "You can't see me, but I'll explain that later. Is Phao with you?"
"Yes."
"Yep."
"And no one else?"
"And no one else?"
"No."
"Nope."
"I am going to take you with me, Tavia—you and Phao. Stand aside well out of line of the window so that you will not be hurt while I remove the bars. Then be ready to board my ship immediately."
"I’m going to take you with me, Tavia—you and Phao. Step aside away from the window so you won’t get hurt while I take off the bars. Then be ready to get on my ship right away."
"Your ship!" she said. "Where is it?"
"Your ship!" she said. "Where is it?"
"Never mind now. There is a ship here. Do just as I tell you. Do you trust me?"
"Forget about it for now. There's a ship here. Just do what I say. Do you trust me?"
"With my life, Hadron, forever," she whispered.
"With my life, Hadron, forever," she whispered.
Something within me sang. It was more than a mere thrill; I cannot explain it; nor did I understand it, but now there were other things to think of.
Something inside me felt alive. It was more than just a thrill; I can't explain it; I didn't understand it then, but now there were other things to focus on.
"Stand aside quickly, Tavia, and keep Phao away from the window until I call you again." Dimly I could see her figure for a moment and than I saw it withdraw from the window. Returning to the controls I brought the forward turret of the ship opposite the window, upon the bars of which I trained the rifle. I loaded it and pressed the button. Through the tiny sight aperture and because of the darkness I could see nothing of the result, but I knew perfectly well what had happened, and when I lowered the ship again and went on deck I found that the bars had vanished in thin air.
"Step back quickly, Tavia, and keep Phao away from the window until I call you again." I briefly caught sight of her figure before I saw her move away from the window. Returning to the controls, I aimed the ship's forward turret at the window and set the rifle on its bars. I loaded it and pressed the button. Through the small sight and in the darkness, I couldn't see the outcome, but I knew exactly what had happened. When I lowered the ship and went on deck, I discovered that the bars had disappeared into thin air.
"Quick, Tavia," I said. "Come!"
"Quick, Tavia," I said. "Come!"
With one foot upon the deck of the flier and the other upon the sill of the window, I held the ship close to the wall of the tower and as best I could I held the cloak of invisibility like a canopy to shield the girls from sight as they boarded the Jhama.
With one foot on the deck of the flier and the other on the window sill, I kept the ship close to the wall of the tower and, as best as I could, I held the cloak of invisibility like a canopy to shield the girls from view as they boarded the Jhama.
It was difficult and risky business. I wished I might have had grappling hooks, but I had none and so I must do the best I could, holding the cloak with one hand and assisting Tavia to the sill with the other.
It was tough and risky work. I wished I had grappling hooks, but I didn't, so I had to make do, holding the cloak with one hand and helping Tavia up to the sill with the other.
"There is no ship," she said in a slightly frightened tone.
"There isn't a ship," she said, a bit scared.
"There is a ship, Tavia," I said. "Think only of your confidence in me and do as I bid." I grasped her firmly by the harness where the straps crossed upon her back. "Have no fear," I said, and then I swung her out over the hatch and lowered her gently into the interior of the Jhama.
"There’s a ship, Tavia," I said. "Just trust me and follow my instructions." I held her firmly by the harness where the straps crossed on her back. "Don't be afraid," I said, and then I carefully swung her out over the hatch and lowered her gently into the interior of the Jhama.
Phao was behind her and I must give her credit for being as courageous as Tavia. It must have been a terrifying experience to those two girls to feel that they were being lowered into thin air a hundred feet above the ground, for they could see no ship—only a darker hole within the darkness of the night.
Phao was behind her, and I have to give her credit for being as brave as Tavia. It must have been a terrifying experience for those two girls to feel like they were being lowered into thin air a hundred feet above the ground because they couldn't see any ship—only a darker hole in the darkness of the night.
As soon as they were both aboard, I followed them, closing the hatch after me.
As soon as they were both on board, I followed them, closing the hatch behind me.
They were huddled in the darkness on the floor of the cabin, weak and exhausted from the brief ordeal through which they had just passed, but I could not take the time then to answer the questions with which I knew their heads must be filled.
They were cramped together in the darkness on the cabin floor, tired and worn out from the quick ordeal they had just been through, but I couldn't take the time to answer the questions I knew were racing through their minds.
If we passed the watchers on the roofs and the patrol boats above, there would be plenty of time for questions and answers. If we did not, there would be no need for either.
If we made it past the watchers on the roofs and the patrol boats above, there would be plenty of time for questions and answers. If we didn't, there would be no need for either.
XIII
XIII
TUL AXTAR'S WOMEN
TUL AXTAR'S WOMEN
With propellers moving only enough to give us headway, we moved slowly and silently from the tower. I did not dare to rise to the altitude of the circling fliers for fear of almost inevitable collision, owing to the limited range of visibility permitted by the periscope, and so I held to a course that carried me only above the roof of the lower part of the palace until I reached a broad avenue that led in an easterly direction to the outer wall of the city. I kept well down below the roofs of the buildings, where there was little likelihood of encountering other craft. Our only danger of detection now, and that was slight indeed, was that our propeller might be overheard by some of the watchers on the roofs, but the hum and drone of the propellers of the ships above the city must have drowned out whatever slight sound our slowly revolving blades gave forth, and at last we came to the gate at the end of the avenue, and rising to top its battlements, we passed out of Tjanath into the night beyond. The lights of the city and of the circling patrol boats above grew fainter and fainter as we left them far behind.
With the propellers spinning just enough to move us forward, we glided slowly and quietly away from the tower. I didn't dare to climb to the height of the circling aircraft, fearing a nearly certain collision due to the limited visibility of the periscope. Instead, I stuck to a course that kept me just above the roof of the lower section of the palace until I reached a wide avenue that headed east toward the city's outer wall. I stayed low, avoiding the rooftops, where there was little chance of running into other vehicles. Our only risk of being spotted, which was quite small, was that someone on the roofs might hear our propeller, but the noise from the ships above the city likely drowned out our slowly turning blades. Finally, we reached the gate at the end of the avenue, climbed above its battlements, and exited Tjanath into the night beyond. The city lights and the patrol boats circling overhead faded further into the distance as we moved away from them.
We had maintained absolute silence during our escape from the city, but as soon as our escape appeared assured, Tavia unlocked the flood gates of her curiosity. Phao's first question was relative to Nur An. Her sigh of relief held as great assurance of her love for him as could words have done. The two listened in breathless attention to the story of our miraculous escape from The Death. Then they wanted to know all about the Jhama, the compound of invisibility and the disintegrating ray with which I had dissolved the bars from their prison window. Nor was it until their curiosity had been appeased that we were able to discuss our plans for the future.
We had kept completely silent while escaping the city, but as soon as it seemed like we were safe, Tavia unleashed her curiosity. Phao's first question was about Nur An. Her sigh of relief was just as strong a sign of her love for him as any words could convey. The two listened intently to the story of our miraculous escape from The Death. Then they wanted to know everything about the Jhama, the invisibility compound, and the disintegrating ray that I had used to dissolve the bars of their prison window. It wasn’t until their curiosity was satisfied that we could finally talk about our plans for the future.
"I feel that I should go at once to Jahar," I said.
"I think I should go to Jahar right away," I said.
"Yes," said Tavia in a low voice. "It is your duty. You must go there first and rescue Sanoma Tora."
"Yeah," Tavia said quietly. "It's your responsibility. You need to go there first and save Sanoma Tora."
"If there was only some place where I might leave you and Phao in safety, I should feel that I could carry on this mission with far greater peace of mind, but I know of no other place than Jhama and I hesitate to return there and let Phor Tak know that I failed to go immediately to Jahar as I had intended. The man is quite insane. There is no telling what he might do if he learns the truth; nor am I certain that you two would be safe there in his power. He trusts only his slaves and he might easily become obsessed with an hallucination that you are spies."
"If there was just a safe place to leave you and Phao, I'd feel much more at ease continuing this mission. But I can’t think of anywhere other than Jhama, and I'm reluctant to go back and let Phor Tak know I didn't go straight to Jahar like I planned. The guy is completely out of his mind. Who knows what he’d do if he finds out the truth? I also can't be sure you two would be safe in his hands. He only trusts his slaves, and he could easily get fixated on the idea that you’re spies."
"You need not think of me at all," said Tavia, "for no matter where you might find a place to leave us, I should not remain. The place of the slave is with her master."
"You don’t have to think about me at all," said Tavia, "because no matter where you might find a place to leave us, I wouldn’t stay. The place of the slave is with her master."
"Do not say that, Tavia. You are not my slave."
"Don't say that, Tavia. You're not my servant."
"I am a slave girl," she replied. "I must be someone's slave. I prefer to be yours."
"I’m a slave girl," she said. "I have to be someone’s slave. I’d rather be yours."
I was touched by her loyalty, but I did not like to think of Tavia as a slave; yet however much I might loathe the idea the fact remained that she was one. "I give you your freedom, Tavia," I said.
I was moved by her loyalty, but I didn’t want to think of Tavia as a slave; still, no matter how much I hated the idea, the truth was that she was one. "I grant you your freedom, Tavia," I stated.
She smiled. "I do not want it and now that it is decided that I am to remain with you" (she had done all the deciding), "I wish to learn all that I can about navigating the Jhama, for it may be that in that way I may help you."
She smiled. "I don’t want it, and now that it’s decided that I’ll stay with you" (she had made all the decisions), "I want to learn everything I can about navigating the Jhama, because that might be how I can help you."
Tavia's knowledge of aerial navigation made the task of instructing her simple indeed; in fact she had no trouble whatsoever in handling the craft.
Tavia's understanding of flying made it really easy to teach her; in fact, she had no trouble at all controlling the aircraft.
Phao also manifested an interest and it was not long before she, too, took her turn at the controls, while Tavia insisted upon being inducted into all the mysteries of the disintegrating ray rifle.
Phao also showed interest, and it wasn't long before she took her turn at the controls, while Tavia insisted on being taught all the secrets of the disintegrating ray rifle.
Long before we saw the towers of Tul Axtar's capital, we sighted a one-man scout flier painted the ghastly blue of Jahar, and then far to the right and to the left we saw others. They were circling slowly at a great altitude. I judged that they were scouts watching for the coming of an expected enemy fleet. We passed below them and a little later encountered the second line of enemy ships. These were all scout cruisers, carrying from ten to fifteen men. Approaching one of them quite closely I saw that it carried four disintegrating ray rifles, two mounted forward and two aft. As far as I could see in either direction these ships were visible, and if, as I presumed, they formed a circle entirely about Jahar, they must have been numerous indeed.
Long before we caught sight of the towers in the capital of Tul Axtar, we spotted a single scout flyer painted the eerie blue of Jahar, and then we saw more to the right and left. They were circling slowly at a high altitude. I figured they were scouts keeping an eye out for an expected enemy fleet. We flew below them and shortly after ran into the second line of enemy ships. These were all scout cruisers, each carrying around ten to fifteen crew members. When we got close to one, I noticed it had four disintegrating ray rifles—two mounted on the front and two on the back. As far as I could see in either direction, these ships were visible, and if they indeed formed a complete circle around Jahar, they must have been quite numerous.
Passing on beyond them we presently encountered the third line of Jaharian ships. Here were stationed huge battleships, carrying crews of a thousand men and more and fairly bristling with big guns.
Moving past them, we soon came across the third line of Jaharian ships. Massive battleships were stationed here, with crews of a thousand men or more, and they were armed to the teeth with powerful guns.
While none of these ships was as large as the major ships of Helium, they constituted a most formidable force and it was obvious that they had been built in great numbers.
While none of these ships was as large as the big ships of Helium, they formed a very powerful fleet and it was clear that they had been built in large quantities.
What I had already seen impressed me with the fact that Tul Axtar was entertaining no idle dream in his contemplated subjection of all Barsoom. With but a fraction of the ships I had already seen I would guarantee to lay waste all of Barsoom, provided my ships were armed with disintegrating ray rifles, and I felt sure that I had seen but a pitiful fraction of Tul Axtar's vast armament.
What I had already seen made it clear to me that Tul Axtar wasn't just daydreaming about taking over all of Barsoom. With just a small number of the ships I had already seen, I could easily devastate all of Barsoom, as long as my ships were equipped with disintegrating ray rifles. I had a strong feeling that I had only witnessed a tiny portion of Tul Axtar's huge arsenal.
The sight of all these ships filled me with the direst forebodings of calamity. If the fleet of Helium had not already arrived and been destroyed, it certainly must be destroyed when it did arrive. No power on earth could save it. The best that I could hope, had the fleet already arrived, was that an encounter with the disintegrating ray rifles of the first line might have proved sufficient warning to turn the balance of the fleet back.
The sight of all these ships filled me with a deep sense of impending disaster. If the Helium fleet hadn’t already arrived and been destroyed, it definitely would be when it showed up. There was no one on earth who could save it. The best I could hope for, if the fleet had already made it, was that running into the disintegrating ray rifles of the front line might have been enough of a warning to turn the fleet back.
Far behind the line of battleships I could see the towers of Jahar rising in the distance, and as we reached the vicinity of the city I descried a fleet of the largest ships I have ever seen, resting upon the ground just outside the city wall. These ships, which completely encircled the city wall that was visible to us, must have been capable of accommodating at least ten thousand men each, and from their construction and their light armaments, I assumed them to be transports. These, doubtless, were to carry the hordes of hungry Jaharian warriors upon the campaign of loot and pillage that it was planned should destroy a world.
Far behind the battleships, I could see the towers of Jahar rising in the distance. As we got closer to the city, I spotted a fleet of the largest ships I've ever seen, resting on the ground just outside the city wall. These ships, which completely surrounded the visible city wall, must have been able to hold at least ten thousand men each. Based on their design and light armaments, I figured they were transports. These were likely meant to carry the countless hungry Jaharian warriors on the planned campaign of looting and destruction that aimed to wipe out a world.
Contemplation of this vast armada prompted me to abandon all other plans and hasten at once to Helium, that the alarm might be spread and plans be made to thwart the mad ambition of Tul Axtar. My mind was a seething caldron of conflicting urges. Both duty and honor presented conflicting demands upon me. Countless times had I risked my life to reach Jahar for but a single purpose, and now that I had arrived I was called upon to turn back for the fulfillment of another purpose—a larger, a more important one, perhaps, but I am only human and so I turned first to the rescue of the woman that I loved, determined immediately thereafter to throw myself wholeheartedly into the prosecution of the other enterprise that duty and inclination demanded of me. I argued that the slight delay that would result would in no way jeopardize the greater cause, while should I abandon Sanoma Tora now there was little likelihood that I would ever be able to return to Jahar to her succor.
Thinking about this huge fleet made me give up all my other plans and rush to Helium right away, so that the alarm could be raised and strategies developed to counter Tul Axtar's crazy ambitions. My mind was a swirl of conflicting feelings. Both duty and honor were pulling me in different directions. I had put my life on the line countless times to reach Jahar for one goal, and now that I was finally there, I was being asked to turn back for another purpose—one that might be larger and more significant. But I'm only human, so my first instinct was to focus on saving the woman I loved. After that, I planned to fully commit to the other mission that both duty and my inclinations called me to. I told myself that the small delay wouldn’t endanger the bigger cause, but if I left Sanoma Tora now, I likely would never get the chance to return to Jahar and help her.
With the great ghastly blue fleet of Jahar behind us, we topped the city's walls and moved in the direction of the palace of the jeddak.
With the huge, eerie blue fleet of Jahar behind us, we climbed over the city's walls and headed toward the jeddak's palace.
My plans were well formulated. I had discussed them again and again with Tavia, who had grown up in the palace of Tul Axtar.
My plans were well thought out. I had talked about them over and over with Tavia, who grew up in the palace of Tul Axtar.
At her suggestion we were to maneuver the Jhama to a point directly over the summit of a slender tower, upon which there was not room to land the flier, but through which I could gain ingress to the palace at a point close to the quarters of the women.
At her suggestion, we would steer the Jhama to a spot directly above the top of a narrow tower. There wasn't enough room to land the flier, but I could get into the palace at a point near the women's quarters.
As we had passed through the three lines of Jaharian ships, protected by our coating of the compound of invisibility, so we passed the sentries on the city wall and the warriors upon watch in the towers and upon the ramparts of the palace of the jeddak, and without incident worthy of note I stopped the Jhama just above the summit of the tower that Tavia indicated.
As we moved through the three lines of Jaharian ships, safe behind our invisibility shield, we went by the sentries on the city wall and the guards on watch in the towers and on the palace ramparts, and without any significant incidents, I halted the Jhama just above the top of the tower that Tavia had pointed out.
"In about ten xats (approximately thirty minutes) it will be dark," I said to Tavia. "If you find it impractical to remain here constantly, try and return when dark has fallen, for whether I am successful in finding Sanoma Tora I shall not attempt to return to the Jhama until night has fallen."
"In about ten xats (around thirty minutes), it will be dark," I told Tavia. "If it's not practical for you to stay here the whole time, try to come back when it’s dark, because whether or not I find Sanoma Tora, I won’t try to return to the Jhama until night has set in."
She had told me that there was a possibility that the women's quarters might be locked at sunset and for this reason I was entering the palace by daylight, though I should have much preferred not to risk it until after nightfall. Tavia had also assured me that if I once entered the women's quarters I would have no difficulty in leaving even after they were locked, as the doors could be opened from the inside, the precaution of locking being taken not for fear that the inmates would leave the quarters, but to protect them against the dangers of assassins and others with evil intent.
She had told me that the women's quarters might be locked at sunset, and that's why I was entering the palace during the day, even though I would have much preferred to wait until after dark. Tavia had also reassured me that once I entered the women's quarters, I could leave without any trouble even if they were locked, since the doors could be opened from the inside. The locking was done not because they feared the residents would leave, but to protect them from threats like assassins and others with bad intentions.
Adjusting the robe of invisibility about me, I raised the forward keel hatch, which was directly over the summit of the tower that had once been used as a lookout in some distant age before newer and loftier portions of the palace had rendered it useless for this purpose.
Adjusting the invisibility cloak around me, I lifted the front keel hatch, which was directly above the peak of the tower that had once served as a lookout in a distant time, before newer and taller parts of the palace made it obsolete for that purpose.
"Good-bye and good luck," whispered Tavia. "When you return I hope that you will bring your Sanoma Tora with you. While you are gone I shall pray to my ancestors for your success."
"Goodbye and good luck," Tavia whispered. "When you come back, I hope you’ll bring your Sanoma Tora with you. While you’re away, I’ll pray to my ancestors for your success."
Thanking her, I lowered myself through the hatch to the summit of the tower, in which was set a small trap door.
Thanking her, I climbed through the hatch to the top of the tower, where there was a small trapdoor.
As I raised this door I saw below me the top of the ancient ladder that long dead warriors had used and which evidently was seldom, if ever, used now as was attested by the dust upon its rungs. The ladder led me down to a large room in the upper level of this portion of the palace—a room that had doubtless originally been a guard room, but which was now the receptacle for odds and ends of discarded furniture, hangings and ornaments. Filled as it was with specimens of the craftsmanship of ancient Jahar, together with articles of more modern fabrication, it would have been a most interesting room to explore; yet I passed through it with nothing more than a single searching glance for living enemies. Closely following Tavia's instructions I descended two spiral ramps, where I found myself in a most ornately decorated corridor, opening upon which were the apartments of the women of Tul Axtar. The corridor was long, stretching away fully a thousand sofads to a great, arched window at the far end, through which I could see the waving foliage of trees.
As I opened this door, I saw the top of an old ladder below me, one that long-dead warriors had used and which clearly hadn’t seen much use lately, as shown by the dust on its rungs. The ladder took me down to a large room on the upper level of this part of the palace—a room that had probably once been a guard room but was now a storage space for discarded furniture, hangings, and ornaments. Full of examples of the craftsmanship of ancient Jahar, along with some more modern items, it would have been a fascinating room to explore; however, I just quickly glanced around for any potential threats and moved on. Following Tavia's instructions, I went down two spiral ramps and found myself in a beautifully decorated corridor, with the apartments of the women of Tul Axtar opening off of it. The corridor was long, stretching about a thousand sofads to a large, arched window at the far end, where I could see the trees swaying outside.
Many of the countless doors that lined the corridor on either side were open or ajar, for the corridor itself was forbidden to all but the women and their slaves, with the exception of Tul Axtar. The foot of the single ramp leading to it from the level below was watched over by a guard of picked men, composed exclusively of eunuchs, and Tavia assured me that short shrift was made of any adventurous spirit who sought to investigate the precincts above; yet here was I, a man and an enemy, safely within the forbidden territory.
Many of the countless doors lining the corridor on either side were open or slightly ajar, since the corridor was restricted to women and their slaves, except for Tul Axtar. The foot of the single ramp leading up to it from the level below was monitored by a group of chosen men, made up entirely of eunuchs, and Tavia assured me that anyone who dared to explore the areas above faced swift consequences; yet here I was, a man and an enemy, safely inside the restricted zone.
As I looked about me in an attempt to determine where to commence my investigation, several women emerged from one of the apartments and approached me along the corridor. They were beautiful women, young and richly trapped, and from their light conversation and their laughter I judged that they were not unhappy. My conscience pricked me as I realized the mean advantage that I was taking of them, but it could not be avoided and so I waited and listened, hoping that I might overhear some snatch of conversation that would aid me in my quest for Sanoma Tora; but I learned nothing from them other than that they referred to Tul Axtar contemptuously as the old zitidar. Some of their references to him were extremely personal and none was complimentary.
As I looked around, trying to figure out where to start my investigation, several women came out of one of the apartments and walked towards me down the hallway. They were beautiful, young, and dressed in fancy clothes, and from their light chatter and laughter, I could tell they weren't unhappy. I felt guilty about the unfair advantage I was taking of them, but there was no way around it, so I waited and listened, hoping to catch a snippet of conversation that would help me in my search for Sanoma Tora. Unfortunately, I didn't learn anything useful from them, except that they spoke of Tul Axtar with disdain, calling him the old zitidar. Some of their comments about him were very personal, and none of them were flattering.
They passed me and entered a large room at the end of the corridor. Almost immediately thereafter other women emerged from other apartments and followed the first party into the same apartment.
They walked past me and went into a large room at the end of the hallway. Almost right after, other women came out of different apartments and followed the first group into the same room.
It soon became evident to me that they were congregating there and I thought that perhaps this might be the best way in which to start my search for Sanoma Tora—perhaps she, too, might be among the company.
It quickly became clear to me that they were gathering there, and I thought that maybe this was the best way to begin my search for Sanoma Tora—maybe she was among the group as well.
Accordingly I fell in behind one of the groups and followed it through the large doorway and a short corridor, which opened into a great hall that was so gorgeously appointed and decorated as to suggest the throne room of a jeddak, and in fact such appeared to have been a part of its purpose, for at one end rose an enormous, highly-carved throne.
Accordingly, I joined one of the groups and followed them through the large doorway and a short hallway, which opened up into a grand hall that was decorated so beautifully that it felt like a throne room of a jeddak. In fact, it seemed that this had been part of its purpose, as an enormous, intricately carved throne stood at one end.
The floor was of highly polished wood, in the center of which was a large pool of water. Along the sides of the room were commodious benches, piled with pillows and soft silks and furs. Here it was that Tul Axtar occasionally held unique court, surrounded solely by his women. Here they danced for him; here they disported themselves in the limpid waters of the pool for his diversion; here banquets were spread and to the strains of music high revelry persisted long into the night.
The floor was made of highly polished wood, with a large pool of water in the center. Along the sides of the room were spacious benches, covered with pillows and soft silks and furs. This was where Tul Axtar occasionally held his exclusive court, surrounded only by his women. Here, they danced for him; here, they played in the clear waters of the pool for his entertainment; here, feasts were laid out, and to the sounds of music, lively celebrations went on late into the night.
As I looked about me at those who had already assembled I saw that Sanoma Tora was not among them and so I took my place close to the entrance where I might scrutinize the face of each who entered.
As I glanced around at those who had already gathered, I noticed that Sanoma Tora was not there, so I positioned myself near the entrance to closely observe the face of everyone who walked in.
They were coming in droves now. I believe that I have never seen so many women alone together before. As I watched for Sanoma Tora I tried to count them, but I soon gave it up as hopeless, though I estimated that fully fifteen hundred women were congregated in the great hall when at last they ceased to enter.
They were coming in large numbers now. I think I've never seen so many women gathered together like this before. As I looked for Sanoma Tora, I tried to count them, but I quickly gave up as it seemed impossible, although I estimated that there were at least fifteen hundred women in the great hall when they finally stopped coming in.
They seated themselves upon the benches about the room, which was filled with a babel of feminine voices. There were women of all ages and of every type, but there was none that was not beautiful. The secret agents of Tul Axtar must have combed the world for such an aggregation of loveliness as this.
They took their seats on the benches around the room, which was filled with a mix of women's voices. There were women of all ages and all types, but each one was beautiful. The secret agents of Tul Axtar must have searched the world to gather such a collection of beauty as this.
A door at one side of the throne opened and a file of warriors entered. At first I was surprised because Tavia had told me that no men other than Tul Axtar ever were permitted upon this level, but presently I saw that the warriors were women dressed in the harness of men, their hair cut and their faces painted, after the fashion of the fighting men of Barsoom. After they had taken their places on either side of the throne, a courtier entered by the same door—another woman masquerading as a man.
A door on one side of the throne opened, and a line of warriors walked in. At first, I was surprised because Tavia had told me that no men except Tul Axtar were allowed on this level, but soon I realized that the warriors were women dressed in men's gear, their hair cut short and their faces painted like the fighters of Barsoom. After they took their places on either side of the throne, a courtier entered through the same door—a woman pretending to be a man.
"Give thanks!" she cried. "Give thanks! The Jeddak comes!"
"Give thanks!" she shouted. "Give thanks! The Jeddak is here!"
Instantly the women arose and a moment later Tul Axtar, Jeddak of Jahar, entered the hall, followed by a group of women disguised as courtiers.
Instantly, the women stood up, and a moment later, Tul Axtar, Jeddak of Jahar, walked into the hall, followed by a group of women disguised as courtiers.
As Tul Axtar lowered his great bulk into the throne, he signalled for the women in the room to be seated. Then he spoke in a low voice to a woman courtier at his side.
As Tul Axtar settled into the throne, he gestured for the women in the room to take their seats. Then he spoke quietly to a female courtier next to him.
The woman stepped to the edge of the dais. "The great Jeddak deigns to honor you individually with his royal observation," she announced in stilted tones. "From my left you will pass before him, one by one. In the name of the Jeddak, I have spoken."
The woman moved to the edge of the platform. "The great Jeddak is honoring you individually with his royal attention," she announced in formal tones. "You will pass by him one by one from my left. In the name of the Jeddak, I have spoken."
Immediately the first woman at the left arose and walked slowly past the throne, pausing in front of Tul Axtar long enough to turn completely about, and then walked slowly on around the apartment and out through the doorway beside which I stood. One by one in rapid succession the others followed her. The whole procedure seemed meaningless to me. I could not understand it—then.
Immediately, the first woman on the left got up and walked slowly past the throne, stopping in front of Tul Axtar long enough to turn completely around, and then continued walking slowly around the room and out through the doorway next to where I was standing. One by one, the others followed her in quick succession. The whole thing seemed pointless to me. I couldn't understand it—at the time.
Perhaps a hundred women had passed before the Jeddak and come down the long hall toward me when something in the carriage of one of them attracted my attention as she neared me, and an instant later I recognized Sanoma Tora. She was changed, but not greatly and I could not understand why it was that I had not discovered her in the room previously. I had found her! After all these long months I had found her—the woman I loved. Why did my heart not thrill?
Perhaps a hundred women had walked past the Jeddak and down the long hallway toward me when something about the way one of them carried herself caught my attention as she got closer. In an instant, I recognized Sanoma Tora. She had changed, but not much, and I couldn’t figure out why I hadn’t noticed her in the room before. I had found her! After all these long months, I had found her—the woman I loved. Why didn’t my heart race?
As she passed through the doorway leading from the great hall, I followed her and along the corridor to an apartment near the far end, and when she entered, I entered behind her. I had to move quickly, too, for she turned immediately and closed the door after her.
As she walked through the doorway from the great hall, I followed her down the corridor to an apartment at the far end. When she went in, I stepped in right after her. I had to hurry, too, because she turned right away and shut the door behind her.
We were alone in a small room, Sanoma Tora and I. In one corner were her sleeping silks and furs; between two windows was a carved bench upon which stood those toilet articles that are essential to a woman of Barsoom.
We were alone in a small room, Sanoma Tora and I. In one corner were her sleeping silks and furs; between two windows was a carved bench with those toiletry items that are essential for a woman of Barsoom.
It was not the apartment of a Jeddara; it was little better than the cell of a slave.
It wasn't the apartment of a Jeddara; it was hardly any better than a slave's cell.
As Sanoma Tora crossed the room listlessly toward a stool which stood before the toilet bench, her back was toward me and I dropped the robe of invisibility from about me.
As Sanoma Tora walked aimlessly across the room toward a stool in front of the toilet bench, her back was to me and I let go of the invisibility cloak around me.
"Sanoma Tora!" I said in a low voice.
"Sanoma Tora!" I said softly.
Startled, she turned toward me. "Hadron of Hastor!" she exclaimed; "or am I dreaming?"
Startled, she turned toward me. "Hadron of Hastor!" she exclaimed; "or am I dreaming?"
"You are not dreaming, Sanoma Tora. It is Hadron of Hastor."
"You’re not dreaming, Sanoma Tora. It’s Hadron of Hastor."
"Why are you here? How did you get here? It is impossible. No men but Tul Axtar are permitted upon this level."
"Why are you here? How did you get here? It doesn't make sense. No one but Tul Axtar is allowed on this level."
"Here I am, Sanoma Tora, and I have come to take you back to Helium—if you wish to return."
"Here I am, Sanoma Tora, and I’ve come to take you back to Helium—if you want to go."
"Oh, name of my first ancestor, if I could but hope," she cried.
"Oh, name of my first ancestor, if I could only hope," she exclaimed.
"You may hope, Sanoma Tora," I assured her. "I am here and I can take you back."
"You can count on it, Sanoma Tora," I said to her. "I'm here, and I can take you home."
"I cannot believe it," she said. "I cannot imagine how you gained entrance here. It is madness to think that two of us could leave without being detected."
"I can't believe it," she said. "I can't imagine how you got in here. It's crazy to think that the two of us could leave without being noticed."
I threw the cloak about me. "Where are you, Tan Hadron? What has become of you? What has happened?" cried Sanoma Tora.
I wrapped the cloak around me. "Where are you, Tan Hadron? What happened to you? What’s going on?" cried Sanoma Tora.
"This is how I gained entrance," I explained. "This is how we shall escape." I removed the cloak from about me.
"This is how I got in," I explained. "This is how we’ll get out." I took the cloak off myself.
"What forbidden magic is this?" she demanded, and, as best I might in few words, I explained to her the compound of invisibility and how I had come by it.
"What kind of forbidden magic is this?" she asked, and, as briefly as I could, I explained to her the mixture of invisibility and how I had obtained it.
"How have you fared here, Sanoma Tora?" I asked her. "How have they treated you?"
"How have you been doing here, Sanoma Tora?" I asked her. "How have they treated you?"
"I have not been ill treated," she replied; "no one has paid any attention to me." I could scent the wounded vanity in her tone. "Until tonight I had not seen Tul Axtar. I have just come from the hall where he holds court among his women."
"I haven't been mistreated," she said; "no one has bothered with me." I could sense the hurt pride in her voice. "Until tonight, I hadn't seen Tul Axtar. I just came from the hall where he holds court with his women."
"Yes," I said, "I know. I was there. It was from there that I followed you here."
"Yeah," I said, "I know. I was there. That's where I followed you from."
"When can you take me away?" she asked.
"When can you take me away?" she asked.
"Very quickly now," I replied.
"Really fast now," I replied.
"I am afraid that it will have to be quickly," she said.
"I'm afraid it needs to be done quickly," she said.
"Why?" I asked.
"Why?" I asked.
"When I passed Tul Axtar he stopped me for a moment and I heard him speak to one of the courtiers at his side. He told her to ascertain my name and where I was quartered. The women have told me what happens after Tul Axtar has noticed one of us, and I am afraid; but what difference does it make, I am only a slave."
"When I walked by Tul Axtar, he stopped me for a moment, and I heard him talking to one of the courtiers next to him. He told her to find out my name and where I was staying. The women have warned me about what happens after Tul Axtar notices one of us, and I’m scared; but it doesn’t matter, I’m just a slave."
What a change had come over the haughty Sanoma Tora! Was this the same arrogant beauty who had refused my hand? Was this the Sanoma Tora who had aspired to be a jeddara? She was humbled now—I read it in the droop of her shoulders, in the trembling of her lips, in the fear-haunted light that shone from her eyes.
What a change had come over the proud Sanoma Tora! Was this the same arrogant beauty who had rejected my proposal? Was this the Sanoma Tora who had wanted to be a jeddara? She seemed humbled now—I could see it in the slump of her shoulders, in the quiver of her lips, in the fearful light that flickered in her eyes.
My heart was filled with compassion for her, but I was astonished and dismayed to discover that no other emotion overwhelmed me. The last time that I had seen Sanoma Tora I would have given my soul to have been able to take her into my arms. Had the hardships that I had undergone so changed me? Was Sanoma Tora, a slave, less desirable to me than Sanoma Tora, daughter of the rich Tor Hatan? No; I knew that that could not be true. I had changed, but doubtless it was only a temporary metamorphosis induced by the nervous strain which I was undergoing consequent upon the responsibility imposed upon me by the necessity for carrying word to Helium in time to save her from destruction at the hands of Tul Axtar—to save not only Helium, but a world. It was a grave responsibility. How might one thus burdened have time for thoughts of love? No, I was not myself; yet I knew that I still loved Sanoma Tora.
My heart was filled with compassion for her, but I was shocked and upset to find that no other emotion overwhelmed me. The last time I saw Sanoma Tora, I would have given anything to hold her in my arms. Had the struggles I faced changed me so much? Was Sanoma Tora, a slave, less appealing to me than Sanoma Tora, the daughter of the wealthy Tor Hatan? No, I knew that couldn’t be true. I had changed, but it was probably just a temporary shift caused by the stress I was under from the responsibility of delivering a message to Helium in time to save her from being destroyed by Tul Axtar—to save not just Helium, but a world. It was a huge responsibility. How could someone with such a burden have time for thoughts of love? No, I wasn’t myself; yet I knew I still loved Sanoma Tora.
Realizing the necessity for haste, I made a speedy examination of the room and discovered that I could easily effect Sanoma Tora's rescue by taking her through the window, just as I had taken Tavia and Phao from the east tower at Tjanath.
Realizing I needed to hurry, I quickly checked the room and found that I could easily rescue Sanoma Tora by taking her out the window, just like I had done with Tavia and Phao from the east tower at Tjanath.
Briefly, but carefully, I explained my plan to her and bid her prepare herself while I was gone that there might be no delay when I was ready to take her aboard the Jhama.
Briefly, but carefully, I explained my plan to her and asked her to get ready while I was away so there wouldn't be any delays when I was ready to take her on the Jhama.
"And now, Sanoma Tora," I said, "for a few moments, good-bye! The next that you will hear will be a voice at your window, but you will see no one nor any ship. Extinguish the light in your room and step to the sill. I will take your hand. Put your trust in me then and do as I bid."
"And now, Sanoma Tora," I said, "for a little while, goodbye! The next thing you'll hear will be a voice at your window, but you won't see anyone or any ship. Turn off the light in your room and go to the window. I will take your hand. Trust me and do as I say."
"Good-bye, Hadron!" she said. "I cannot express now in adequate words the gratitude that I feel, but when we are returned to Helium there is nothing that you can demand of me that I shall not grant you, not only willingly, but gladly."
"Goodbye, Hadron!" she said. "I can't find the right words to express my gratitude right now, but when we get back to Helium, there's nothing you can ask of me that I won't give you, not just willingly, but happily."
I raised my fingers to my lips and had turned toward the door when Sanoma Tora laid a detaining hand upon my arm. "Wait!" she said. "Someone is coming."
I raised my fingers to my lips and had turned toward the door when Sanoma Tora put a hand on my arm to stop me. "Wait!" she said. "Someone's coming."
Hastily I resumed my cloak of invisibility and stepped to one side of the room as the door, leading into the corridor, was thrown open, revealing one of the female courtiers of Tul Axtar in gorgeous harness. The woman entered the room and stepped to one side of the doorway, which remained opened.
Hastily, I grabbed my cloak of invisibility and moved to one side of the room as the door to the corridor swung open, revealing one of the female courtiers of Tul Axtar in a stunning outfit. The woman entered the room and positioned herself to one side of the doorway, which stayed open.
"The Jeddak! Tul Axtar, Jeddak of Jahar!" she announced.
"The Jeddak! Tul Axtar, Jeddak of Jahar!" she proclaimed.
A moment later Tul Axtar entered the room, followed by half a dozen of his female courtiers. He was a gross man with repulsive features, which reflected a combination of strength and weakness, of haughty arrogance, of pride and of doubt—an innate questioning of his own ability.
A moment later, Tul Axtar walked into the room, followed by half a dozen of his female courtiers. He was an unpleasant man with unattractive features that showed a mix of strength and vulnerability, haughty arrogance, pride, and uncertainty—an inherent doubt about his own abilities.
As he faced Sanoma Tora his courtiers formed behind him. They were masculine looking women, who had evidently been selected because of this very characteristic. They were good looking in a masculine way and their physiques suggested that they might prove a very effective body guard for the Jeddak.
As he faced Sanoma Tora, his courtiers lined up behind him. They were women with a strong, masculine appearance, clearly chosen for this very reason. They looked attractive in a rugged way, and their physiques indicated they could be a very effective bodyguard for the Jeddak.
For several minutes Tul Axtar examined Sanoma Tora with appraising eyes. He came closer to her and there was that in his attitude which I did not like, and when he laid a hand upon her shoulder, I could scarce restrain myself.
For several minutes, Tul Axtar looked at Sanoma Tora with a critical eye. He stepped closer to her, and there was something in his demeanor that unsettled me. When he placed a hand on her shoulder, I could barely hold myself back.
"I was not wrong," he said. "You are gorgeous. How long have you been here?"
"I wasn't wrong," he said. "You're stunning. How long have you been here?"
She shuddered, but did not reply.
She shivered but stayed silent.
"You are from Helium?"
"Are you from Helium?"
No answer.
No response.
"The ships of Helium are on their way to Jahar." He laughed. "My scouts bring word that they will soon be here. They will meet with a warm welcome from the great fleet of Tul Axtar." He turned to his courtiers. "Go!" he said, "and let none return until I summon her."
"The ships from Helium are heading to Jahar." He laughed. "My scouts report that they’ll be here soon. They'll receive a warm welcome from the great fleet of Tul Axtar." He turned to his courtiers. "Go!" he said, "and don’t let anyone return until I call for her."
They bowed and retired, closing the door after them, and then Tul Axtar laid his hand again upon the bare flesh of Sanoma Tora's shoulder.
They bowed and left, closing the door behind them, and then Tul Axtar placed his hand once more on the bare skin of Sanoma Tora's shoulder.
"Come!" he said. "I shall not war with all of Helium—with you I shall love—by my first ancestor, but you are worthy the love of a jeddak."
"Come!" he said. "I won’t fight with all of Helium—I'll love you—by my first ancestor, but you deserve the love of a jeddak."
He drew her toward him. My blood boiled—so hot was my anger that it boiled over and without thought of the consequences I let the cloak fall from me.
He pulled her closer to him. I was furious—my anger was so intense that it spilled over, and without thinking about the consequences, I let the cloak slip from my shoulders.
XIV
XIV
THE CANNIBALS OF U-GOR
The Cannibals of U-Gor
As I dropped the cloak of invisibility aside I drew my long sword and as it slithered from its sheath, Tul Axtar heard and faced me. His craven blood rushed to his heart and left his face pale at the sight of me. A scream was in his throat when my point touched him in warning.
As I threw the cloak of invisibility aside, I pulled out my long sword, and as it slipped from its sheath, Tul Axtar heard me and turned to face me. His cowardly blood rushed to his heart, leaving his face pale when he saw me. A scream was stuck in his throat when my blade touched him as a warning.
"Silence!" I hissed.
"Be quiet!" I hissed.
"Who are you?" he demanded.
"Who are you?" he asked.
"Silence!"
"Quiet!"
Even in the instant my plans were formed. I made him turn with his back toward me and then I disarmed him, after which I bound him securely and gagged him.
Even as soon as I made my plans, I had him turn his back to me, then I took away his weapon, after which I tied him up tightly and silenced him.
"Where can I hide him, Sanoma Tora?" I asked.
"Where can I hide him, Sanoma Tora?" I asked.
"There is a little closet here," she said, pointing toward a small door in one side of the room, and then she crossed to it and opened it, while I dragged Tul Axtar behind her and cast him into the closet—none too gently I can assure you.
"There’s a small closet here," she said, pointing to a little door on one side of the room. Then she walked over and opened it, while I pulled Tul Axtar behind her and shoved him into the closet—definitely not gently, I can assure you.
As I closed the closet door I turned to find Sanoma Tora white and trembling. "I am afraid," she said. "If they come back and find him thus, they will kill me."
As I shut the closet door, I turned to see Sanoma Tora pale and shaking. "I'm scared," she said. "If they come back and find him like this, they'll kill me."
"His courtiers will not return until he summons them," I reminded her. "You heard him tell them that such were his wishes—his command."
"His courtiers won't come back until he calls for them," I reminded her. "You heard him tell them that those were his wishes—his command."
She nodded.
She agreed.
"Here is his dagger," I told her. "If worse comes to worst you can hold them off by threatening to kill Tul Axtar," but the girl seemed terrified, she trembled in every limb and I feared that she might fail if put to the test. How I wished that Tavia were here. I knew that she would not fail, and, in the name of my first ancestor, how much depended upon success!
"Here's his dagger," I said to her. "If things get really bad, you can scare them off by threatening to kill Tul Axtar," but the girl looked terrified; she shook all over, and I worried she might not be able to handle it. I really wished Tavia were here. I knew she wouldn't mess up, and, for the sake of my first ancestor, so much was riding on our success!
"I shall return soon," I said, as I groped about the floor for the robe of invisibility. "Leave that large window open and when I return, be ready."
"I'll be back soon," I said, as I fumbled around on the floor for the invisibility robe. "Keep that big window open, and when I come back, be ready."
As I replaced the cloak about me I saw that she was trembling so that she could not reply; in fact, she was even having difficulty in holding the dagger, which I expected momentarily to see drop from her nerveless fingers, but there was naught that I could do but hasten to the Jhama and try to return before it was too late.
As I put the cloak back on, I noticed she was trembling so much that she couldn't respond; in fact, she was struggling to hold the dagger, which I thought would slip from her weak fingers at any moment. But there was nothing I could do except hurry to the Jhama and try to get back before it was too late.
I gained the summit of the tower without incident. Above me twinkled the brilliant stars of a Barsoomian night, while just above the palace roof hung the gorgeous planet, Jasoom (Earth).
I reached the top of the tower without any problems. Above me sparkled the bright stars of a Barsoom night, and just over the palace roof hung the beautiful planet, Jasoom (Earth).
The Jhama, of course, was invisible, but so great was my confidence in Tavia that when I stretched a hand upward I knew that I should feel the keel of the craft, and sure enough I did. Three times I rapped gently upon the forward hatch, which was the signal that we had determined upon before I had entered the palace. Instantly the hatch was raised and a moment later I had clambered aboard.
The Jhama was obviously invisible, but I had so much faith in Tavia that when I reached my hand up, I knew I would touch the keel of the boat, and I did. I lightly knocked three times on the front hatch, the signal we had agreed on before I went into the palace. Immediately, the hatch opened, and a moment later, I climbed aboard.
"Where is Sanoma Tora?" asked Tavia.
"Where's Sanoma Tora?" Tavia inquired.
"No questions now," I replied. "We must work quickly. Be ready to take over the controls the moment that I leave them."
"No questions right now," I replied. "We need to move fast. Be ready to take over the controls as soon as I step away from them."
In silence she took her place at my side, her soft shoulder touching my arm, and in silence I dropped the Jhama to the level of the windows in the women's quarters. In a general way I knew the location of Sanoma Tora's apartment, and as I moved slowly along I kept the periscope pointed toward the windows and presently I saw the figure of Sanoma Tora upon the ground glass before me. I brought the Jhama close to the sill, her upper deck just below it.
In silence, she settled next to me, her soft shoulder brushing against my arm. Quietly, I lowered the Jhama to the level of the windows in the women's quarters. I had a general idea of where Sanoma Tora's apartment was, and as I moved slowly, I kept the periscope aimed at the windows. Soon, I spotted Sanoma Tora's figure on the frosted glass in front of me. I brought the Jhama close to the sill, with her upper deck just below it.
"Hold her here, Tavia," I said. Then I raised the upper hatch a few inches and called to the girl within the room.
"Hold her here, Tavia," I said. Then I lifted the upper hatch a few inches and called to the girl inside the room.
At the sound of my voice she trembled so that she almost dropped the dagger, although she must have known that I was coming and had been awaiting me.
At the sound of my voice, she shivered so much that she nearly dropped the dagger, even though she must have known I was coming and had been waiting for me.
"Darken your room," I whispered to her. I saw her stagger across to a button that was set in the wall and an instant later the room was enveloped in darkness. Then I raised the hatch and stepped to the sill. I did not wish to be bothered with the enveloping folds of the mantle of invisibility and so I had folded it up and tucked it into my harness, where I could have it instantly ready for use in the event of an emergency. I found Sanoma Tora in the darkness and so weak with terror was she that I had to lift her in my arms and carry her to the window, where with Phao's help I managed to draw her through the open hatch into the interior. Then I returned to the closet where Tul Axtar lay bound and gagged. I stooped and cut the bonds which held his ankles.
"Darken your room," I whispered to her. I watched her stumble over to a button on the wall, and a moment later, the room was filled with darkness. Then I lifted the hatch and stepped to the sill. I didn't want to deal with the surrounding folds of the invisibility cloak, so I folded it up and tucked it into my harness, ready to grab in case of an emergency. I found Sanoma Tora in the dark, so paralyzed with fear that I had to pick her up and carry her to the window, where, with Phao's help, I managed to pull her through the open hatch into the room. Then I went back to the closet where Tul Axtar was tied up and gagged. I bent down and cut the ties that bound his ankles.
"Do precisely as I tell you, Tul Axtar," I said, "or my steel will have its way yet and find your heart. It thirsts for your blood, Tul Axtar, and I have difficulty in restraining it, but if you do not fail me perhaps I shall be able to save you yet. I can use you, Tul Axtar, and upon your usefulness to me depends your life, for dead you are of no value to me."
"Do exactly what I say, Tul Axtar," I said, "or my blade will get what it wants and find your heart. It's hungry for your blood, Tul Axtar, and I'm having a hard time holding it back, but if you don’t let me down, maybe I can still save you. I can make use of you, Tul Axtar, and your life depends on how useful you are to me, because dead, you’re no use at all."
I made him rise and walk to the window and there I assisted him to the sill. He was terror-stricken when I tried to make him step out into space, as he thought, but when I stepped to the deck of the Jhama ahead of him and he saw me apparently floating there in the air, he took a little heart and I finally succeeded in getting him aboard.
I helped him get up and walk to the window, and then I guided him to the sill. He was terrified when I tried to make him step out into what he thought was nothingness, but when I stepped onto the deck of the Jhama in front of him and he saw me seemingly floating in the air, he started to feel a bit braver, and I eventually managed to get him on board.
Following him I closed the hatch and lighted a single dim light within the hull. Tavia turned and looked at me for orders.
Following him, I shut the hatch and turned on a single dim light inside the hull. Tavia turned to me, waiting for orders.
"Hold her where she is, Tavia," I said.
"Keep her right there, Tavia," I said.
There was a tiny desk in the cabin of the Jhama where the officer of the ship was supposed to keep his log and attend to any other records or reports that it might be necessary to make. Here were writing materials, and as I got them out of the drawer in which they were kept, I called Phao to my side.
There was a small desk in the Jhama's cabin where the ship's officer was supposed to keep his log and handle any other records or reports that might be needed. It had writing supplies, and as I pulled them out of the drawer they were stored in, I called Phao over to me.
"You are of Jahar," I said. "You can write in the language of your country?"
"You are from Jahar," I said. "Can you write in your country's language?"
"Of course," she said.
"Sure," she said.
"Then write what I dictate," I instructed her.
"Then write what I say," I told her.
She prepared to do my bidding.
She got ready to do what I asked.
"If a single ship of Helium is destroyed," I dictated, "Tul Axtar dies. Now sign it Hadron of Hastor, Padwar of Helium."
"If a single ship of Helium is destroyed," I said, "Tul Axtar dies. Now sign it Hadron of Hastor, Padwar of Helium."
Tavia and Phao looked at me and then at the prisoner, their eyes wide in astonishment, for in the dim light of the ship's interior they had not recognized the prisoner.
Tavia and Phao looked at me and then at the prisoner, their eyes wide in shock, because in the dim light of the ship's interior they hadn't recognized the prisoner.
"Tul Axtar of Jahar!" breathed Tavia incredulously. "Tan Hadron of Hastor, you have saved Helium and Barsoom tonight."
"Tul Axtar of Jahar!" Tavia gasped in disbelief. "Tan Hadron of Hastor, you saved Helium and Barsoom tonight."
I could not but note how quickly her mind functioned, with what celerity she had seen the possibilities that lay in the possession of the person of Tul Axtar, Jeddak of Jahar.
I couldn't help but notice how quickly her mind worked and how fast she recognized the opportunities that came with having Tul Axtar, Jeddak of Jahar, around.
I took the note that Phao had written, and, returning quickly to Sanoma Tora's room, I laid it upon her dressing table. A moment later I was again in the cabin of the Jhama and we were rising swiftly above the roofs of Jahar.
I grabbed the note that Phao had written, and, hurrying back to Sanoma Tora's room, I placed it on her dressing table. A moment later, I was back in the cabin of the Jhama and we were quickly ascending above the rooftops of Jahar.
Morning found us beyond the uttermost line of Jaharian ships, beneath which we had passed, guided by their lights—evidence to me that the fleet was poorly officered, for no trained man, expecting an enemy in force, would show lights aboard his ships at night.
Morning found us beyond the farthest line of Jaharian ships, beneath which we had passed, guided by their lights—showing me that the fleet was poorly managed, because no skilled person, expecting a strong enemy, would have their ships displaying lights at night.
We were speeding now in the direction of far Helium, following the course that I hoped would permit us to intercept the fleet of the Warlord in the event that it was already bound for Jahar as Tul Axtar had announced.
We were now speeding toward distant Helium, following the path I hoped would allow us to catch up with the Warlord's fleet if it was already headed for Jahar, as Tul Axtar had said.
Sanoma Tora had slightly recovered her poise and control of her nerves. Tavia's sweet solicitude for her welfare touched me deeply. She had soothed and quieted her as she might have soothed and quieted a younger sister, though she herself was younger than Sanoma Tora, but with the return of confidence Sanoma Tora's old haughtiness was returning and it seemed to me that she showed too little gratitude to Tavia for her kindliness, but I realized that that was Sanoma Tora's way, that it was born in her and that doubtless deep in her heart she was fully appreciative and grateful. However that may be, I cannot but admit that I wished at the time that she would show it by some slight word or deed. We were flying smoothly, slightly above the normal altitude of battleships. The destination control compass was holding the Jhama to her course, and after all that I had passed through, I felt the need of sleep. Phao, at my suggestion, had rested earlier in the night, and as all that was needed was a lookout to keep a careful watch for ships, I entrusted this duty to Phao, and Tavia and I rolled up in our sleeping silks and furs and were soon asleep.
Sanoma Tora had slightly regained her composure and control over her nerves. Tavia's sweet concern for her well-being really moved me. She had comforted and calmed Sanoma Tora as if she were a younger sister, even though Tavia was younger than Sanoma Tora herself. But as Sanoma Tora regained her confidence, her old arrogance started to creep back in, and it seemed to me that she showed too little appreciation to Tavia for her kindness. I understood that this was just how Sanoma Tora was, that it was part of her nature, and deep down she was probably fully appreciative and grateful. Still, I couldn't help but wish that she would express it in some small way. We were flying smoothly, just above the normal altitude for battleships. The destination control compass was keeping the Jhama on its course, and after everything I had been through, I felt the need for sleep. Phao, at my suggestion, had rested earlier in the night, and since all that was needed was someone to keep a careful lookout for ships, I assigned this task to Phao. Tavia and I wrapped ourselves in our sleeping silks and furs and quickly fell asleep.
Tavia and I were about mid-ship, Phao was forward at the controls, constantly swinging the periscope to and fro searching the sky for ships. When I retired Sanoma Tora was standing at one of the starboard ports looking out into the night, while Tul Axtar lay down in the stern of the ship. I had long since removed the gag from his mouth, but he seemed too utterly cowed even to address us and lay there in morose silence, or perhaps he was asleep, I do not know.
Tavia and I were around the middle of the ship, while Phao was up front at the controls, regularly moving the periscope back and forth, scanning the sky for ships. When I went to rest, Sanoma Tora was standing by one of the starboard windows, looking out into the night, while Tul Axtar was lying in the back of the ship. I had taken the gag off him a while ago, but he seemed too defeated to talk to us and lay there in gloomy silence, or maybe he was asleep; I couldn't tell.
I was thoroughly fatigued and must have slept like a log from the moment that I laid down until I was suddenly awakened by the impact of a body upon me. As I struggled to free myself, I discovered to my chagrin that my hands had been deftly bound while I slept, a feat that had been rendered simple by the fact that it is my habit to sleep with my hands together in front of my face.
I was completely exhausted and must have slept deeply from the moment I lay down until I was abruptly awakened by someone landing on me. As I tried to get free, I realized with dismay that my hands had been skillfully tied while I slept, which was made easy by the fact that I usually sleep with my hands together in front of my face.
A man's knee was upon my chest, pressing me heavily against the deck and one of his hands clutched me by the throat. In the dim light of the cabin I saw that it was Tul Axtar and that his other hand held a dagger.
A man's knee was on my chest, pushing me down hard against the deck, and one of his hands was gripping my throat. In the dim light of the cabin, I saw that it was Tul Axtar and that his other hand was holding a dagger.
"Silence!" he whispered. "If you would live, make no sound," and then to make assurance doubly sure he gagged me and bound my ankles. Then he crossed quickly to Tavia and bound her, and as he did so my eyes moved quickly about the interior of the cabin in search of aid. On the floor, near the controls, I saw Phao lying bound and gagged as was I. Sanoma Tora crouched against the wall, apparently overcome by terror. She was neither bound nor gagged. Why had she not warned me? Why had she not come to my help? If it had been Tavia who remained unbound instead of Sanoma Tora, how different would have been the outcome of Tul Axtar's bid for liberty and revenge.
"Shh!" he whispered. "If you want to live, don't make a sound," and then to be extra sure, he gagged me and tied up my ankles. After that, he quickly went to Tavia and bound her too, and while he was doing that, my eyes scanned the inside of the cabin looking for help. On the floor, near the controls, I spotted Phao, also tied up and gagged like me. Sanoma Tora was huddled against the wall, clearly paralyzed with fear. She wasn't bound or gagged. Why hadn’t she warned me? Why didn’t she come to my aid? If it had been Tavia who was unbound instead of Sanoma Tora, the outcome of Tul Axtar's attempt for freedom and revenge would have been so different.
How had it all happened? I was sure that I had bound Tul Axtar so securely that he could not possibly have freed himself, and yet I must have been mistaken and I cursed myself for the carelessness that had upset all my plans and that might easily eventually spell the doom of Helium.
How did it all happen? I was sure I had tied up Tul Axtar so securely that he couldn’t possibly have escaped, but I must have been wrong, and I cursed myself for the carelessness that messed up all my plans and could easily lead to the downfall of Helium.
Having disposed of Phao, Tavia and me, Tul Axtar moved quickly to the controls, ignoring Sanoma Tora as he passed by her. In view of the marked terror that she displayed, I could readily understand why he did not consider her any menace to his plans—she was as harmless to him free as bound.
Having dealt with Phao, Tavia, and me, Tul Axtar quickly moved to the controls, ignoring Sanoma Tora as he walked by her. Given the obvious fear she was showing, it was easy to see why he didn’t see her as a threat to his plans—she was just as harmless to him whether she was free or restrained.
Putting the ship about he turned back toward Jahar, and though he did not understand the mechanism of the destination control compass and could not cut it out, this made no difference as long as he remained at the controls, the only effect that the compass might have being to return the ship to its former course should the controls be again abandoned while the ship was in motion.
Putting the ship around, he turned back toward Jahar. Even though he didn't understand how the destination control compass worked and couldn't disconnect it, it didn't matter as long as he was at the controls. The only impact the compass could have would be to steer the ship back to its original course if the controls were left unattended while the ship was moving.
Presently he turned toward me. "I should destroy you, Hadron of Hastor," he said, "had I not given the word of a jeddak that I would not."
Presently he turned toward me. "I should destroy you, Hadron of Hastor," he said, "if I hadn't given my word as a jeddak that I wouldn't."
Vaguely I had wondered to whom he had given his word that he would not kill me, but other and more important thoughts were racing through my mind, crowding all else into the background. Uppermost among them, of course, were plans for regaining control of the Jhama and, secondarily, apprehension as to the fate of Tavia, Sanoma Tora and Phao.
Vaguely, I had wondered who he promised that he wouldn't kill me, but other, more pressing thoughts were racing through my mind, pushing everything else aside. At the forefront were my plans to regain control of the Jhama, and next was my worry about the fate of Tavia, Sanoma Tora, and Phao.
"Give thanks for the magnanimity of Tul Axtar," he continued, "who exacts no penalty for the affront you have put upon him. Instead you are to be set free. I shall land you." He laughed. "Free! I shall land you in the province of U-Gor!"
"Give thanks for the generosity of Tul Axtar," he continued, "who imposes no punishment for the offense you've caused him. Instead, you will be released. I will take you there." He laughed. "Released! I will take you to the province of U-Gor!"
There was something nasty in the tone of his voice which made his promise sound more like a threat. I had never heard of U-Gor, but I assumed that it was some remote province from which it would be difficult or impossible for me to make my way either to Jahar or Helium. Of one thing I was confident—that Tul Axtar would not set me free any place that I might become a menace to him.
There was something unpleasant in his tone that made his promise feel more like a threat. I had never heard of U-Gor, but I figured it was some far-off province that would be hard or impossible for me to get to, whether it was Jahar or Helium. One thing I was sure of—Tul Axtar wouldn’t let me go anywhere I could be a threat to him.
For hours the Jhama moved on in silence. Tul Axtar had not had the decency or the humanity to remove our gags. He was engrossed with the business of the controls, and Sanoma Tora, crouching against the side of the cabin, never spoke; nor once in all that time did her eyes turn toward me. What thoughts were passing in that beautiful head? Was she trying to find some plan by which she might turn the tables upon Tul Axtar, or was she merely crushed by the hopeless outlook—the prospect of being returned to the slavery of Jahar? I did not know; I could not guess; she was an enigma to me.
For hours, the Jhama kept moving in silence. Tul Axtar hadn’t bothered to take off our gags. He was focused on operating the controls, and Sanoma Tora, huddled against the side of the cabin, didn’t say a word; not once during that whole time did she look at me. What was going through that beautiful mind? Was she trying to come up with a plan to turn the tables on Tul Axtar, or was she just overwhelmed by the bleak situation—the thought of being sent back into the slavery of Jahar? I didn’t know; I couldn’t guess; she was a mystery to me.
How far we traveled or in what direction, I did not know. The night had long since passed and the sun was high when I became aware that Tul Axtar was bringing the ship down. Presently the purring of the motor ceased and the ship came to a stop. Leaving the controls he walked back to where I lay.
How far we traveled or in what direction, I didn't know. The night had long passed and the sun was high when I realized that Tul Axtar was landing the ship. Soon, the engine's purring stopped and the ship came to a halt. He left the controls and walked back to where I was lying.
"We have arrived in U-Gor," he said. "Here I shall set you at liberty, but first give me the strange thing that rendered you invisible in my palace."
"We've arrived in U-Gor," he said. "Here, I'll set you free, but first give me that strange thing that made you invisible in my palace."
The cloak of invisibility! How had he learned of that? Who could have told him? There seemed but one explanation, but every fiber of my being shrank even from considering it. I had rolled it up into a small ball and tucked it into the bottom of my pocket pouch, its sheer silk permitting it to be compressed into a very small space. He took the gag from my mouth.
The invisibility cloak! How did he find out about that? Who could have mentioned it? There seemed to be only one explanation, but every part of me recoiled at the thought. I had balled it up and stuffed it into the bottom of my pocket pouch, its fine silk allowing it to be squeezed into a tiny space. He took the gag out of my mouth.
"When you return to your palace at Jahar," I said, "look upon the floor beneath the window in the apartment that was occupied by Sanoma Tora. If you find it there you are welcome to it. As far as I am concerned it has served its purpose well."
"When you get back to your palace at Jahar," I said, "check the floor under the window in the room that Sanoma Tora used to stay in. If you find it there, it's yours. As far as I'm concerned, it has done its job."
"Why did you leave it there?" he demanded.
"Why did you leave it there?" he asked.
"I was in a great hurry when I quit the palace and accidents will happen." I will admit that my lie may not have been very clever, but neither was Tul Axtar and he was deceived by it.
"I was in a big rush when I left the palace, and accidents happen." I’ll admit that my lie might not have been very smart, but neither was Tul Axtar, and he fell for it.
Grumbling, he opened one of the keel hatches and very unceremoniously dropped me through it. Fortunately the ship lay close to the ground and I was not injured. Next he lowered Tavia to my side, and then he, himself, descended to the ground. Stooping, he cut the bonds that secured Tavia's wrists.
Grumbling, he opened one of the keel hatches and unceremoniously dropped me through it. Luckily, the ship was close to the ground, so I wasn't hurt. Next, he lowered Tavia down to me, and then he climbed down himself. Bending down, he cut the ropes that bound Tavia's wrists.
"I shall keep the other," he said. "She pleases," and somehow I knew that he meant Phao. "This one looks like a man and I swear that she would be as easy to subdue as a she-banth. I know the type. I shall leave her with you." It was evident that he had not recognized Tavia as one of the former occupants of the women's quarters in his palace and I was glad that he had not.
"I'll keep the other one," he said. "She’s appealing," and for some reason, I knew he meant Phao. "This one looks like a man, and I swear it would be as easy to control her as a she-banth. I know that type. I’ll leave her with you." It was clear that he hadn’t recognized Tavia as one of the previous residents of the women’s quarters in his palace, and I was relieved that he hadn’t.
He re-entered the Jhama, but before he closed the hatch he spoke to us again. "I shall drop your weapons when we are where you cannot use them against me and you may thank the future Jeddara of Jahar for the clemency I have shown you!"
He went back into the Jhama, but before he shut the hatch, he talked to us again. "I’ll drop your weapons when we reach a place where you can't use them against me, and you can thank the future Jeddara of Jahar for the mercy I’ve shown you!"
Slowly the Jhama rose. Tavia was removing the cords from her ankles and when she was free she came and fell to work upon the bonds that secured me, but I was too dazed, too crushed by the blow that had been struck me to realize any other fact than that Sanoma Tora, the woman I loved, had betrayed me, for I fully realized now what any one but a fool would have guessed before—that Tul Axtar had bribed her to set him free by the promise that he would make her Jeddara of Jahar.
Slowly, the Jhama rose. Tavia was untying the cords from her ankles, and when she was free, she came over to work on the bindings that held me. But I was too dazed, too overwhelmed by the blow I had received to grasp anything other than the fact that Sanoma Tora, the woman I loved, had betrayed me. I finally understood what anyone but a fool would have figured out earlier—that Tul Axtar had bribed her to help him escape by promising to make her Jeddara of Jahar.
Well, her ambition would be fulfilled, but at what a hideous cost. Never, if she lived for a thousand years could she look upon herself or her act with aught but contempt and loathing, unless she was far more degraded than I could possibly believe. No; she would suffer, of that I was sure; but that thought gave me no pleasure. I loved her and I could not even now wish her unhappiness.
Well, her ambition would be fulfilled, but at such a terrible cost. Never, even if she lived for a thousand years, could she view herself or her actions without contempt and disgust, unless she had become more degraded than I could ever imagine. No; she would suffer, of that I was certain; but that thought brought me no joy. I loved her, and I still couldn’t wish her unhappiness.
As I sat there on the ground, my head bowed in misery, I felt a soft arm steal about my shoulders and a tender voice spoke close to my ear. "My poor Hadron!"
As I sat there on the ground, my head down in despair, I felt a gentle arm wrap around my shoulders, and a soothing voice spoke softly next to my ear. "My poor Hadron!"
That was all; but those few words embodied such a wealth of sympathy and understanding that, like some miraculous balm, they soothed the agony of my tortured heart.
That was everything; but those few words carried so much sympathy and understanding that, like some magical remedy, they eased the pain of my aching heart.
No one but Tavia could have spoken them. I turned and taking one of her little hands in mine, I pressed it to my lips. "Loved friend," I said. "Thanks be to all my ancestors that it was not you."
No one but Tavia could have said those words. I turned and took one of her small hands in mine, pressing it to my lips. "Dear friend," I said. "I’m grateful to all my ancestors that it wasn’t you."
I do not know what made me say that. The words seemed to speak themselves without my volition, and yet when they were spoken there came to me a sudden realization of the horror that I would have felt had it been Tavia who had betrayed me. I could not even contemplate it without an agony of pain. Impulsively I took her in my arms.
I don't know why I said that. The words just came out without my control, and yet as soon as I said them, I suddenly realized how horrifying it would have been if Tavia had been the one to betray me. I couldn't even think about it without feeling intense pain. On impulse, I pulled her into my arms.
"Tavia," I cried, "promise me that you will never desert me. I could not live without you."
"Tavia," I shouted, "promise me that you will never leave me. I couldn't survive without you."
She put her strong, young arms about my neck and clung to me. "Never this side of death," she whispered, and then she tore herself from me and I saw that she was weeping.
She wrapped her strong, young arms around my neck and held on tight. "Never this side of death," she whispered, and then she pulled away from me, and I saw that she was crying.
What a friend! I knew that I could never again love a woman, but what cared I for that if I could have Tavia's friendship for life.
What a friend! I knew I could never love another woman again, but I didn’t care about that if I could have Tavia's friendship for life.
"We shall never part again, Tavia," I said. "If our ancestors are kind and we are permitted to return to Helium, you shall find a home in the house of my father and a mother in my mother."
"We will never be apart again, Tavia," I said. "If our ancestors are kind and we are allowed to return to Helium, you will find a home in my father's house and a mother in my mother."
She dried her eyes and looked at me with a strange wistful expression that I could not fathom, and then, through her tears, she smiled—that odd, quizzical little smile that I had seen before and that I did not understand any more than I understood a dozen of her moods and expressions, which made her so different from other girls and which, I think, helped to attract me toward her. Her characteristics lay not all upon the surface—there were depths and under-currents which one might not easily fathom. Sometimes when I expected her to cry, she laughed; and when I thought that she should be happy, she wept, but she never wept as I have seen other women weep—never hysterically, for Tavia never lost control of herself, but quietly as though from a full heart rather than from over-wrought nerves, and through her tears there might burst a smile at the end.
She dried her eyes and looked at me with a strange, wistful expression that I couldn't understand. Then, through her tears, she smiled—that odd, curious little smile that I had seen before and still didn't get, just like I didn’t understand many of her moods and expressions. It was those things that made her so different from other girls and, I think, drew me to her. Her traits weren’t all on the surface—there were deeper layers and currents that weren’t easy to grasp. Sometimes, when I expected her to cry, she laughed, and when I thought she should be happy, she cried. But she never wept like I’d seen other women do—never hysterically, because Tavia never lost her composure. She cried quietly, as if from a full heart rather than frayed nerves, and sometimes a smile would emerge through her tears.
I think that Tavia was quite the most wonderful girl that I have ever known and as I had come to know her better and see more of her, I had grown to realize that despite her attempt at mannish disguise to which she still clung, she was quite the most beautiful girl that I had ever seen. Her beauty was not like that of Sanoma Tora, but as she looked up into my face now the realization came to me quite suddenly, and for what reason I do not know, that the beauty of Tavia far transcended that of Sanoma Tora because of the beauty of the soul that, shining through her eyes, transfigured her whole countenance.
I believe that Tavia was the most amazing girl I've ever known, and as I got to know her better and spent more time with her, I started to realize that despite her efforts to mask her femininity, she was truly the most beautiful girl I had ever seen. Her beauty wasn't like that of Sanoma Tora, but as she looked up at me now, it hit me suddenly—though I can't quite say why—that Tavia's beauty far surpassed Sanoma Tora's because of the beauty of her soul, which shone through her eyes and transformed her entire appearance.
Tul Axtar, true to his promise, dropped our weapons through a lower hatch of the Jhama and as we buckled them on we listened to the rapidly diminishing sound of the propellers of the departing craft. We were alone and on foot in a strange and, doubtless, an unhospitable country.
Tul Axtar, keeping his word, dropped our weapons through a lower hatch of the Jhama, and as we strapped them on, we listened to the quickly fading sound of the propellers of the departing craft. We were alone and on foot in a strange and likely unwelcoming country.
"U-Gor!" I said. "I have never heard of it. Have you, Tavia?"
"U-Gor!" I said. "I've never heard of it. Have you, Tavia?"
"Yes," she said. "This is one of the outlying provinces of Jahar. Once it was a rich and thriving agricultural country, but as it fell beneath the curse of Tul Axtar's mad ambition for manpower, the population grew to such enormous proportions that U-Gor could not support its people. Then cannibalism started. It began justly with the eating of the officials that Tul Axtar had sent to enforce his cruel decrees. An army was dispatched to subdue the province, but the people were so numerous that they conquered the army and ate the warriors. By this time their farms were ruined. They had no seed and they had developed a taste for human flesh. Those who wished to till the ground were set upon by bands of roving men and devoured. For a hundred years they have been feeding upon one another until now it is no longer a populace province, but a wasteland inhabited by roving bands, searching for one another that they may eat."
"Yeah," she said. "This is one of the remote regions of Jahar. It used to be a rich and thriving agricultural area, but after it fell under the curse of Tul Axtar's insane desire for more people, the population exploded to such huge numbers that U-Gor couldn't support them. That's when cannibalism began. It started justly with the eating of the officials that Tul Axtar sent to enforce his harsh rules. An army was sent to take control of the province, but the people were so numerous that they overpowered the army and ate the soldiers. By then, their farms were destroyed. They had no seeds left and had developed a taste for human flesh. Those who wanted to farm were attacked by bands of roaming men and devoured. For a hundred years, they've been feeding on each other until now it’s no longer a populated area, but a wasteland filled with wandering groups, searching for others to eat."
I shuddered at her recital. It was obvious that we must escape this accursed place as rapidly as possible. I asked Tavia if she knew the location of U-Gor and she told me that it lay southeast of Jahar, about a thousand haads and about two thousand haads southwest of Xanator.
I shuddered at her performance. It was clear that we needed to get out of this cursed place as quickly as we could. I asked Tavia if she knew where U-Gor was, and she told me it was southeast of Jahar, about a thousand haads and roughly two thousand haads southwest of Xanator.
I saw that it would be useless to attempt to reach Helium from here. Such a journey on foot, if it could be accomplished at all, would require years. The nearest friendly city toward which we could turn was Gathol, which I estimated lay some seven thousand haads almost due north. The possibility of reaching Gathol seemed remote in the extreme, but it was our only hope and so we turned our faces toward the north and set out upon our long and seemingly hopeless journey toward the city of my mother's birth.
I realized that trying to get to Helium from here would be pointless. A journey on foot, if it could even be done, would take years. The closest friendly city we could head to was Gathol, which I figured was about seven thousand haads straight north. The chance of reaching Gathol felt incredibly slim, but it was our only hope, so we faced north and began our long and seemingly hopeless journey toward the city where my mother was born.
The country about us was rolling, with here and there a range of low hills, while far to the north I could see the outlines of higher hills against the horizon. The land was entirely denuded of all but noxious weeds, attesting the grim battle for survival waged by its unhappy people. There were no reptiles; no insects; no birds—all had been devoured during the century of misery that had lain upon the land.
The countryside around us was undulating, with occasional low hills, while far to the north I could see the shapes of taller hills against the skyline. The land was completely stripped bare except for some harmful weeds, showing the harsh struggle for survival faced by its unfortunate people. There were no reptiles, no insects, no birds—everything had been consumed during the century of suffering that had affected the land.
As we plodded onward through this desolate and depressing waste, we tried to keep up one another's spirit as best we could and a hundred times I had reason to give thanks that it was Tavia who was my companion and no other.
As we trudged onward through this barren and gloomy wasteland, we did our best to lift each other's spirits, and a hundred times I felt grateful that it was Tavia by my side and not anyone else.
What could I have done under like circumstances burdened with Sanoma Tora? I doubt that she could have walked a dozen haads, while Tavia swung along at my side with the lithe grace of perfect health and strength. It takes a good man to keep up with me on a march, but Tavia never lagged; nor did she show signs of fatigue more quickly than I.
What could I have done in such a situation carrying Sanoma Tora? I don’t think she could have walked even a dozen miles, while Tavia kept pace beside me with the smooth grace of perfect health and strength. It takes a good person to keep up with me on a hike, but Tavia never fell behind; nor did she show signs of tiredness any sooner than I did.
"We are well matched, Tavia," I said.
"We're a good match, Tavia," I said.
"I had thought of that—a long time ago," she said quietly.
"I thought about that—a long time ago," she said softly.
We continued on until almost dusk without seeing a sign of any living thing and were congratulating ourselves upon our good fortune when Tavia glanced back, as one of us often did.
We kept going until it was almost dark without spotting any signs of life, and we were praising ourselves for our luck when Tavia looked back, as one of us often did.
She touched my arm and nodded toward the rear. "They come!" she said simply.
She touched my arm and nodded toward the back. "They're coming!" she said simply.
I looked back and saw three figures upon our trail. They were too far away for me to be able to do more than identify them as human beings. It was evident that they had seen us and they were closing the distance between us at a steady trot.
I looked back and saw three figures on our path. They were too far away for me to identify more than that they were human. It was clear they had seen us, and they were steadily getting closer at a jog.
"What shall we do?" asked Tavia. "Stand and fight, or try to elude them until night falls?"
"What should we do?" Tavia asked. "Should we stand and fight, or try to avoid them until night falls?"
"We shall do neither," I said. "We shall elude them now without exerting ourselves in the least."
"We're not going to do either," I said. "We're going to dodge them now without putting in any effort at all."
"How?" she asked.
"How?" she asked.
"Through the inventive genius of Phor Tak, and the compound of invisibility that I filched from him."
"Thanks to the creative genius of Phor Tak and the invisibility substance that I took from him."
"Splendid!" exclaimed Tavia. "I had forgotten your cloak. With it we should have no difficulty in eluding all dangers between here and Gathol."
"Awesome!" Tavia shouted. "I completely forgot about your cloak. With it, we should have no trouble avoiding any dangers between here and Gathol."
I opened my pocket pouch and reached in to withdraw the cloak. It was gone! As was the vial containing the remainder of the compound. I looked at Tavia and she must have read the truth in my expression.
I opened my pocket pouch and reached in to grab the cloak. It was gone! So was the vial with the rest of the compound. I looked at Tavia, and she must have seen the truth in my face.
"You have lost it?" she asked.
"You lost it?" she asked.
"No, it has been stolen from me," I replied.
"No, it was taken from me," I replied.
She came again and laid her hand upon my arm in sympathy and I knew that she was thinking what I was thinking, that it could have been none other than Sanoma Tora who had stolen it.
She came again and placed her hand on my arm in sympathy, and I knew that she was thinking what I was thinking—that it could only have been Sanoma Tora who had taken it.
I hung my head. "And to think that I jeopardized your safety, Tavia, to save such as she."
I lowered my head. "And to think that I put your safety at risk, Tavia, to save someone like her."
"Do not judge her hastily," she said. "We cannot know how sorely she may have been tempted, or what threats were used to turn her from the path of honor. Perhaps she is not as strong as we."
"Don’t judge her too quickly," she said. "We don’t know how strongly she may have been tempted, or what threats were used to lead her away from the path of honor. Maybe she’s just not as strong as we are."
"Let us not speak of her," I said. "It is a hideous sensation, Tavia, to feel love turned to hatred."
"Let's not talk about her," I said. "It's a terrible feeling, Tavia, to have love turn into hatred."
She pressed my arm. "Time heals all hurts," she said, "and some day you will find a woman worthy of you, if such a one exists."
She squeezed my arm. "Time heals all wounds," she said, "and one day you’ll find a woman who deserves you, if someone like that even exists."
I looked down at her. "If such a one exists," I mused, but she interrupted my meditation with a question.
I looked down at her. "If someone like that exists," I thought, but she broke my train of thought with a question.
"Shall we fight or run, Hadron of Hastor?" she demanded.
"Should we fight or run, Hadron of Hastor?" she asked.
"I should prefer to fight and die," I replied, "but I must think of you, Tavia."
"I would rather fight and die," I said, "but I have to think about you, Tavia."
"Then we shall remain and fight," she said; "but, Hadron, you must not die."
"Then we'll stay and fight," she said, "but, Hadron, you can’t die."
There was a note of reproach in her tone that did not escape me and I was ashamed of myself for having seemed to forget the great debt that I owed her for her friendship.
There was a hint of disappointment in her voice that I couldn't ignore, and I felt ashamed for acting like I had forgotten how much I owed her for her friendship.
"I am sorry," I said. "Tavia, I could not wish to die while you live."
"I’m sorry," I said. "Tavia, I couldn’t imagine dying while you’re still alive."
"That is better," she said. "How shall we fight? Shall I stand upon your right or upon your left?"
"That's better," she said. "How should we fight? Should I stand on your right or on your left?"
"You shall stand behind me, Tavia," I told her. "While my hand can hold a sword, you will need no other defense."
"You should stand behind me, Tavia," I said to her. "As long as I can hold a sword, you won’t need any other protection."
"A long time ago, after we first met," she said, "you told me that we should be comrades in arms. That means that we fight together, shoulder to shoulder, or back to back. I hold you to your word, Tan Hadron of Hastor."
"A long time ago, when we first met," she said, "you told me that we should be allies in battle. That means we stand together, side by side, or back to back. I hold you to your promise, Tan Hadron of Hastor."
I smiled, and, though I felt that I could fight better alone than with a woman at my side, I admired her courage. "Very well," I said; "fight at my right, for thus you will be between two swords."
I smiled, and even though I thought I could fight better by myself than with a woman beside me, I admired her bravery. "Alright," I said; "fight to my right, so you'll be between two swords."
The three upon our trail had approached us so closely by this time that I could discern what manner of creatures they were and I saw before me naked savages with tangled, unkempt hair, filthy bodies and degraded faces. The wild light in their eyes, their snarling lips exposing yellow fangs, their stealthy, slinking carriage gave them more the appearance of wild beasts than men.
The three following us had gotten so close by now that I could make out what kind of creatures they were. I saw before me naked savages with messy, tangled hair, dirty bodies, and degraded faces. The wild look in their eyes, their snarling lips showing yellow fangs, and their stealthy, slinking movements made them seem more like wild animals than human beings.
They were armed with swords which they carried in their hands, having neither harness nor scabbard. They halted at a short distance from us, eyeing us hungrily, and doubtless they were hungry for their flabby bellies suggested that they went often empty and were then gorged when meat fell to their lot in sufficient quantities. Tonight these three had hoped to gorge themselves; I could see it in their eyes. They whispered together in low tones for a few minutes and then they separated and circled us. It was evident that they intended to rush us from different points simultaneously.
They had swords in their hands and no armor or sheaths. They stopped a short distance away from us, looking at us hungrily, and it was clear they were starving since their soft bellies suggested they often went without food and then overindulged when they had the chance. Tonight, the three of them wanted to feast; I could see it in their eyes. They quietly whispered among themselves for a few minutes before separating and surrounding us. It was clear they planned to attack us from different angles at the same time.
"We'll carry the battle to them, Tavia," I whispered. "When they have taken their positions around us, I shall give the word and then I shall rush the one in front of me and try to dispatch him before the others can set upon us. Keep close beside me so that they cannot cut you off."
"We'll take the fight to them, Tavia," I whispered. "Once they’ve set up their positions around us, I’ll give the signal and then I’ll charge the one in front of me and try to take him down before the others can swarm us. Stick close to me so they can't isolate you."
"Shoulder to shoulder until the end," she said.
"Standing side by side until the end," she said.
XV
XV
THE BATTLE OF JAHAR
THE BATTLE OF JAHAR
Glancing across my shoulder I saw that the two circling to our rear were already further away from us than he who stood facing us and realizing that the unexpectedness of our act would greatly enhance the chances of success, I gave the word.
Glancing over my shoulder, I noticed that the two circling behind us were already farther away than the one standing in front of us. Realizing that the surprise of our action would greatly increase our chances of success, I gave the signal.
"Now, Tavia," I whispered, and together we leaped forward at a run straight for the naked savage facing us.
"Now, Tavia," I whispered, and together we sprinted straight toward the naked savage in front of us.
It was evident that he had not expected this and it was also evident that he was a slow witted beast, for as he saw us coming his lower jaw dropped and he just stood there, waiting to receive us; whereas if he had had any intelligence he would have fallen back to give his fellows time to attack us from the rear.
It was clear that he hadn't seen this coming and it was also obvious that he was pretty dim-witted, because as he saw us approaching, his jaw dropped and he just stood there, ready to face us; if he had any smarts, he would have backed off to let his friends attack us from behind.
As our swords crossed I heard a savage growl from behind, such a growl as might issue from the throat of a wild beast. From the corner of my eye I saw Tavia glance back and then before I could realize what she intended, she sprang forward and ran her sword through the body of the man in front of me as he lunged at me with his own weapon, and now, wheeling together, we faced the other two who were running rapidly toward us and I can assure you that it was with a feeling of infinite relief that I realized that the odds were no longer so greatly against us.
As our swords clashed, I heard a fierce growl from behind, like something that could come from a wild animal. Out of the corner of my eye, I saw Tavia look back and before I could figure out what she was planning, she lunged forward and drove her sword through the body of the man in front of me just as he charged at me with his weapon. Now, turning together, we faced the other two who were quickly approaching us, and I can honestly say that I felt an immense sense of relief at realizing the odds were no longer stacked so heavily against us.
As the two engaged us, I was handicapped at first by the necessity of constantly keeping an eye upon Tavia, but not for long.
As the two interacted with us, I was initially held back by the need to constantly watch Tavia, but that didn't last long.
In an instant I realized that a master hand was wielding that blade. Its point wove in and out past the clumsy guard of the savage and I knew, and I guessed he must have sensed, that his life lay in the hollow of the little hand that gripped the hilt. Then I turned my attention to my own antagonist.
In a flash, I understood that a skilled person was controlling that sword. Its tip danced around the rough defense of the savage, and I knew—and I guessed he must have felt it too—that his life depended on the small hand holding the hilt. Then, I focused on my own opponent.
These were not the best swordsmen that I have ever met, but they were far from being poor swordsmen. Their defense, however, far excelled their offense and this, I think, was due to two things, natural cowardice and the fact that they usually hunted in packs, which far outnumbered the quarry. Thus a good defense only was required, since the death blow might always be struck from behind by a companion of the one who engaged the quarry from in front.
These weren't the best swordsmen I've ever encountered, but they were definitely not bad. Their defense was much stronger than their offense, and I believe this was due to two reasons: a natural tendency towards cowardice and the fact that they typically hunted in groups, which greatly outnumbered their target. So, just a solid defense was needed since a fatal blow could always come from behind by a companion of the one confronting the target in front.
Never before had I seen a woman fight and I should have thought that I should have been chagrined to have one fighting at my side, but instead I felt a strange thrill that was partly pride and partly something else that I could not analyze.
Never before had I seen a woman fight, and I would have thought I’d feel embarrassed to have one fighting by my side, but instead I felt a strange thrill that was part pride and part something else I couldn’t understand.
At first, I think, the fellow facing Tavia did not realize that she was a woman, but he must have soon as the scant harness of Barsoom hides little and certainly did not hide the rounded contours of Tavia's girlish body. Perhaps, therefore, it was surprise that was his undoing, or possibly when he discovered her sex he became overconfident, but at any rate Tavia slipped her point into his heart just an instant before I finished my man.
At first, I think the guy facing Tavia didn’t realize she was a woman, but he must have quickly figured it out since the minimal outfit of Barsoom reveals everything and definitely didn’t conceal the curves of Tavia's youthful body. So maybe it was surprise that got him, or perhaps once he realized she was a woman, he became too confident. Either way, Tavia drove her weapon into his heart just a moment before I finished off my opponent.
I cannot say that we were greatly elated over our victory. Each of us felt compassion for the poor creatures who had been reduced to their horrid state by the tyranny of cruel Tul Axtar, but it had been their lives or ours and we were glad that it had not been ours.
I can't say we were really thrilled about our win. We all felt sorry for the poor beings who had been brought to such a terrible state by the tyranny of the cruel Tul Axtar, but it was either their lives or ours, and we were relieved it wasn't ours.
As a matter of precaution I took a quick look about us as the last of our antagonists fell and I was glad that I had, for I immediately discerned three creatures crouching at the top of a low hill not far distant.
As a precaution, I quickly glanced around after the last of our enemies fell, and I was glad I did, because I immediately spotted three creatures crouching at the top of a nearby low hill.
"We are not done yet, Tavia," I said. "Look!" and pointed in the direction of the three.
"We're not finished yet, Tavia," I said. "Look!" and pointed toward the three.
"Perhaps they do not care to share the fate of their fellows," she said. "They are not approaching."
"Maybe they don't want to share the same fate as the others," she said. "They're not coming over."
"They can have peace if they want it as far as I am concerned," I said. "Come, let us go on. If they follow us, then will be time enough to consider them."
"They can have peace if they want it, as far as I'm concerned," I said. "Come on, let's move forward. If they follow us, then we'll have time to think about them."
As we walked on toward the north we glanced back occasionally and presently we saw the three rise and come down the hill toward the bodies of their slain fellows, and as they did so we saw that they were women and that they were unarmed.
As we walked north, we looked back now and then, and soon we saw the three come up and down the hill toward the bodies of their fallen companions. As they approached, we realized they were women and they were unarmed.
When they realized that we were departing and had no intention of attacking them, they broke into a run and, uttering loud, uncanny shrieks, raced madly toward the corpses.
When they saw that we were leaving and had no plans to attack them, they started running and, letting out loud, eerie screams, dashed frantically toward the bodies.
"How pathetic," said Tavia sadly. "Even these poor degraded creatures possess human emotions. They, too, can feel sorry at the loss of loved ones."
"How pathetic," Tavia said sadly. "Even these poor, degraded creatures have human emotions. They can also feel sorry for the loss of loved ones."
"Yes," I said. "Poor things, I am sorry for them."
"Yeah," I said. "Those poor things, I feel sorry for them."
Fearing that in the frenzy of their grief they might attempt to avenge their fallen mates, we kept a close eye upon them or we might not have witnessed the horrid sequel of the fray. I wish that we had not.
Fearing that in their grief they might try to get revenge for their fallen friends, we kept a close watch on them; otherwise, we might have missed the terrible aftermath of the fight. I wish we hadn't.
When the three women reached the corpses they fell upon them, but not with weeping and lamentation—they fell upon them to devour them.
When the three women reached the bodies, they pounced on them, but not with tears and mourning—they pounced on them to consume them.
Sickened, we turned away and walked rapidly toward the north until long after darkness had descended.
Sickened, we turned away and hurried north until long after night had fallen.
We felt that there was little danger of attack at night since there were no savage beasts in a country where there was nothing to support them and also that it was reasonable to assume that the hunting men would be abroad by day rather than by night, since at night they would be far less able to find quarry or follow it.
We thought there was little risk of an attack at night because there were no wild animals in a place where there was nothing to sustain them. It also seemed reasonable to believe that hunters would be out during the day instead of at night, since they would have a harder time finding and tracking their prey in the dark.
I suggested to Tavia that we rest for a short time and then push on for the balance of the night, find a place of concealment early in the day and remain there until night had fallen again, as I was sure that if we followed this plan we would make better time and suffer less exhaustion by traveling through the cool hours of darkness and at the same time would greatly minimize the danger of discovery and attack by whatever hostile people lay between us and Gathol.
I suggested to Tavia that we take a short break and then continue for the rest of the night. We should find a hiding spot early in the day and stay there until it got dark again. I was confident that if we followed this plan, we would travel faster and feel less tired by going through the cooler hours of the night, while also significantly reducing the risk of being discovered or attacked by any hostile people between us and Gathol.
Tavia agreed with me and so we rested for a short time, taking turns at sleeping and watching.
Tavia agreed with me, so we rested for a little while, taking turns sleeping and keeping watch.
Later we pushed on and I am sure that we covered a great distance before dawn, though the high hills to the north of us still looked as far away as they had upon the previous day.
Later, we kept going, and I'm sure we covered a lot of ground before dawn, even though the tall hills to the north still looked as distant as they had the day before.
We now set about searching for some comfortable place of concealment where we might spend the daylight hours. Neither of us was suffering to any extent from either hunger or thirst, as the ancients would have done under like circumstances, for with the gradual diminution of water and vegetable matter upon Mars during countless ages all her creatures have by a slow process of evolution been enabled to go for long periods without either food or drink and we have also learned so to control our minds that we do not think of food or drink until we are able to procure it, which doubtless greatly assists us in controlling the cravings of our appetite.
We started looking for a safe, comfy spot to hide out during the day. Neither of us was really feeling hungry or thirsty, unlike what people in ancient times would have experienced in the same situation. Over countless ages, as water and plants dwindled on Mars, all its creatures slowly evolved to go long stretches without food or drink. We’ve also learned to manage our thoughts so that we don’t focus on eating or drinking until we can actually get it, which definitely helps us control our hunger.
After considerable search we found a deep and narrow ravine which seemed a most favorable place in which to hide, but, scarcely had we entered it, when I chanced to see two eyes looking down upon us from the summit of one of the ridges that flanked it. As I looked, the head in which the eyes were set was withdrawn below the summit.
After a lot of searching, we found a deep, narrow ravine that looked like the perfect spot to hide. But just as we entered, I noticed two eyes watching us from the top of one of the ridges beside it. As I stared, the head that held those eyes pulled back out of sight.
"That puts an end to this place," I said to Tavia, telling her what I had seen. "We must move on and look for a new sanctuary."
"That’s it for this place," I said to Tavia, sharing what I had seen. "We need to move on and find a new safe haven."
As we emerged from the ravine at its upper end I glanced back, and again I saw the creature looking at us and once again he tried to hide himself from us. As we moved on I kept glancing back and occasionally I would see him—one of the hunting men of U-Gor. He was stalking us as the wild beast stalks its prey. The very thought of it filled me with disgust. Had he been a fighting man stalking us merely to kill, I should not have felt as I did, but the thought that he was stealthily trailing us because he desired to devour us was repellent—it was horrifying.
As we came out of the ravine at the top, I looked back and saw the creature watching us again, trying to hide from view. As we continued onward, I kept turning around, and every now and then, I would catch sight of him—one of U-Gor's hunting men. He was tracking us like a wild animal stalks its prey. Just the thought of it made me feel sick. If he had been a warrior following us to fight, I wouldn’t have felt the same way, but the idea that he was quietly trailing us because he wanted to eat us was disgusting—it was terrifying.
Hour after hour the thing kept upon our trail; doubtless he feared to attack because we outnumbered him, or perhaps he thought we might become separated, or lie down to sleep or do one of the number of things that travelers might do that would give him the opportunity he sought, but after awhile he must have given up hope. He no longer sought to conceal himself from us and once, as he mounted a low hill, he stood there silhouetted against the sky and throwing his head back, he gave voice to a shrill, uncanny cry that made the short hairs upon my neck stand erect. It was the hunting cry of the wild beast calling the pack to the kill.
Hour after hour, it stayed on our trail; he probably didn’t attack because we outnumbered him, or maybe he thought we might get separated, lie down to sleep, or do something travelers might do that would give him the chance he was looking for. But after a while, he must have lost hope. He stopped trying to hide from us, and once, as he climbed a low hill, he stood there outlined against the sky. Throwing his head back, he let out a sharp, eerie cry that sent chills down my spine. It was the hunting call of a wild animal summoning the pack to hunt.
I could feel Tavia shudder and press more closely to me and I put my arm about her in a gesture of protection, and thus we walked on in silence for a long time.
I could feel Tavia shiver and lean in closer to me, so I wrapped my arm around her in a protective gesture, and we continued walking in silence for a long time.
Twice again the creature voiced his uncanny cry until at last it was answered ahead of us and to the right.
Twice more, the creature made its strange cry until finally, it was answered up ahead and to the right.
Again we were forced to fight, but this time only two, and when we pushed on again it was with a feeling of depression that I could not shake off—depression for the utter hopelessness of our situation.
Again we had to fight, but this time just two of us, and as we moved forward again, I felt a sense of depression that I couldn't shake off—depression over the complete hopelessness of our situation.
At the summit of a higher hill than we had before crossed, I halted. Some tall weeds grew there. "Let us lie down here, Tavia," I said. "From here we can watch; let us be the watchers for a while. Sleep, and when night comes we shall move on."
At the top of a taller hill than we had crossed before, I stopped. Some tall weeds grew there. "Let’s lie down here, Tavia," I said. "From here we can watch; let’s be the watchers for a bit. Sleep, and when night comes, we’ll move on."
She looked tired and that worried me, but I think she was suffering more from the nervous strain of the eternal stalking than from physical fatigue. I know that it affected me and how much more might it affect a young girl than a trained fighting man. She lay very close to me, as though she felt safer thus and was soon asleep, while I watched.
She looked exhausted, and that concerned me, but I think she was struggling more with the constant anxiety of being followed than with actual physical tiredness. I know it impacted me, so it must impact a young girl even more than a trained soldier. She lay very close to me, as if it made her feel safer, and soon fell asleep while I kept watch.
From this high vantage point I could see a considerable area of country about us and it was not long before I detected figures of men prowling about like hunting banths and often it was apparent that one was stalking another. There were at least a half dozen such visible to me at one time. I saw one overtake his prey and leap upon it from behind. They were at too great a distance from me for me to discern accurately the details of the encounter, but I judged that the stalker ran his sword through the back of his quarry and then, like a hunting banth, he fell upon his kill and devoured it. I do not know that he finished it, but he was still eating when darkness fell.
From this high viewpoint, I could see a large area around us, and it didn't take long before I noticed men lurking like hunting creatures, and often it seemed one was tracking another. There were at least half a dozen of them visible to me at once. I saw one catch up to his target and pounce on it from behind. They were too far away for me to see the details of what happened, but I figured the hunter stabbed his target in the back and then, like a predatory animal, he fell on his kill and started to eat it. I don’t know if he finished it, but he was still eating when darkness fell.
Tavia had had a long sleep and when she awoke she reproached me for having permitted her to sleep so long and insisted that I must sleep.
Tavia had a long sleep, and when she woke up, she scolded me for letting her sleep so long and insisted that I should sleep too.
From necessity I have learned to do with little sleep when conditions are such that I cannot spare the time, though I always make up for it later, and I have also learned to limit my sleep to any length of time that I choose, so that now I awoke promptly when my allotted time had elapsed and again we set out toward far Gathol.
From necessity, I’ve learned to get by on little sleep when I can't afford the time, though I always catch up later. I’ve also learned to control my sleep to whatever length I choose, so now I wake up right when my time is up, and we set out again toward far Gathol.
Again this night, as upon the preceding one, we moved unmolested through the horrid land of U-Gor and when morning dawned we saw the high hills rising close before us.
Again this night, just like the one before, we traveled peacefully through the dreadful land of U-Gor, and when morning arrived, we saw the tall hills rising right in front of us.
"Perhaps these hills mark the northern limits of U-Gor," I suggested.
"Maybe these hills are the northern boundary of U-Gor," I suggested.
"I think they do," replied Tavia.
"I think they do," Tavia replied.
"They are only a short distance away now," I said; "let us keep on until we have passed them. I cannot leave this accursed land behind me too soon."
"They're just a little way off now," I said; "let's keep going until we pass them. I can't get out of this cursed land fast enough."
"Nor I," said Tavia. "I sicken at the thought of what I have seen."
"Me neither," said Tavia. "I feel sick just thinking about what I saw."
We had crossed a narrow valley and were entering the hills when we heard the hateful hunting cry behind us. Turning, I saw a single man moving across the valley toward us. He knew that I had seen him, but he kept steadily on, occasionally stopping to voice his weird scream. He heard an answer come from the east and then another and another from different directions. We hastened onward, climbing the low foothills that led upward toward the summit far above, and as we looked back we saw the hunting men converging upon us from all sides. We had never seen so many of them at one time before.
We had crossed a narrow valley and were entering the hills when we heard the awful hunting cry behind us. Turning, I saw a single man moving across the valley toward us. He knew I had spotted him, but he kept going, occasionally stopping to let out his eerie scream. He heard a response from the east, then another, and another from different directions. We hurried onward, climbing the low foothills that led up to the summit far above, and as we looked back, we saw the hunters closing in on us from all sides. We had never seen so many of them at once before.
"Perhaps if we get well up into the mountains we can elude them," I said.
"Maybe if we head further into the mountains, we can escape them," I said.
Tavia shook her head. "At least we have made a good fight, Hadron," she said.
Tavia shook her head. "At least we put up a good fight, Hadron," she said.
I saw that she was discouraged; nor could I wonder; yet a moment later she looked up at me and smiled brightly. "We still live, Hadron of Hastor!" she exclaimed.
I could see she was feeling down; I couldn't blame her. But a moment later, she looked up at me and smiled brightly. "We're still alive, Hadron of Hastor!" she exclaimed.
"We still live and we have our swords," I reminded her.
"We're still alive, and we have our swords," I reminded her.
As we climbed they pressed upward behind us and presently I saw others coming through the hills from the right and from the left. We were turned from the low saddle over which I had hoped to cross the summit of the range, for hunting men had entered it from above and were coming down toward us. Directly ahead of us now loomed a high peak, the highest in the range as far as I could see, and only there, up its steep side, were there no hunting men to bar our way.
As we climbed, they pushed up behind us, and soon I spotted others coming through the hills from both the right and the left. We were redirected from the low saddle where I had hoped to cross the summit of the range, because hunters had come in from above and were heading down toward us. Right in front of us now stood a tall peak, the highest in the range as far as I could see, and only there, up its steep side, were there no hunters to block our path.
As we climbed, the sides of the mountain grew steeper until the ascent was not only most arduous, but sometimes difficult and dangerous; yet there was no alternative and we pressed onward toward the summit, while behind us came the hunting men of U-Gor. They were not rushing us and from that I felt confident that they knew that they had us cornered. I was looking for a place in which we might make a stand, but I found none and at last we reached the summit, a circular, level space perhaps a hundred feet in diameter.
As we climbed, the sides of the mountain became steeper until the ascent was not only really tough but also sometimes challenging and risky; yet there was no other option, and we kept pushing toward the summit, while behind us came the hunting men of U-Gor. They weren't rushing us, and that made me feel confident that they knew they had us trapped. I was searching for a spot where we could make a stand, but I found none, and eventually, we reached the summit, a flat circular area about a hundred feet in diameter.
As our pursuers were yet some little distance below us, I walked quickly around the outside of the table-like top of the peak. The entire northern face dropped sheer from the summit for a couple of hundred feet, definitely blocking our retreat. At every other point the hunting men were ascending. Our situation appeared hopeless; it was hopeless, and yet I refused to admit defeat.
As our pursuers were still a bit below us, I hurried around the edge of the flat top of the peak. The entire northern side dropped straight down from the summit for a couple of hundred feet, completely cutting off our escape. Everywhere else, the hunters were climbing up. Our situation seemed hopeless; it was hopeless, and yet I wouldn't accept defeat.
The summit of the mountain was strewn with loose rock. I hurled a rock down at the nearest cannibal. It struck him upon the head and sent him hurtling down the mountain-side, carrying a couple of his fellows with him. Then Tavia followed my example and together we bombarded them, but more often we scored misses than hits and there were so many of them and they were so fierce and so hungry that we did not even stem their advance. So numerous were they now that they reminded me of insects, crawling up there from below—huge, grotesque insects that would soon fall upon us and devour us.
The top of the mountain was covered in loose rocks. I threw a rock at the nearest cannibal. It hit him on the head and sent him tumbling down the mountainside, taking a couple of his companions with him. Then Tavia followed my lead, and together we bombarded them, but we missed more often than we hit, and there were so many of them, so fierce and hungry, that we didn’t even slow their advance. They were so numerous now that they reminded me of insects, crawling up from below—huge, grotesque insects that would soon swarm us and eat us alive.
As they came nearer they gave voice to a new cry that I had not heard before. It was a cry that differed from the hunting call, but was equally as terrible.
As they got closer, they let out a new cry that I hadn't heard before. It was different from the hunting call, but just as frightening.
"Their war-cry," said Tavia.
"Their battle cry," said Tavia.
On and on with relentless persistency the throng swarmed upward toward us. We drew our swords; it was our last stand. Tavia pressed closer to me and for the first time I thought I felt her tremble.
On and on, the crowd surged upward toward us without stopping. We drew our swords; this was our final stand. Tavia moved closer to me, and for the first time, I thought I felt her shaking.
"Do not let them take me," she said. "It is not death that I fear."
"Don't let them take me," she said. "I'm not afraid of death."
I knew what she meant and I took her in my arms. "I cannot do it, Tavia," I said. "I cannot."
I understood what she meant and I held her close. "I can't do it, Tavia," I said. "I just can't."
"You must," she replied in a firm voice. "If you care for me even as a friend, you cannot let these beasts take me alive."
"You have to," she said firmly. "If you care about me even as a friend, you can't let these creatures take me alive."
I know that I choked then so that I could not reply, but I knew that she was right and I drew my dagger.
I know I froze up then and couldn’t respond, but I knew she was right, so I pulled out my dagger.
"Good-bye, Hadron—my Hadron!"
"Goodbye, Hadron—my Hadron!"
Her breast was bared to receive my dagger, her face was upturned toward mine. It was still a brave face with no fear upon it, and oh how beautiful it was.
Her breast was exposed to receive my dagger, her face tilted up toward mine. It was still a courageous face with no fear on it, and oh how beautiful it was.
Impulsively, guided by a power I could not control, I bent and crushed my lips to hers. With half closed eyes she pressed her own lips upward more tightly against mine.
Impulsively, driven by a force I couldn’t control, I leaned in and pressed my lips against hers. With her eyes half closed, she pushed her lips up more firmly against mine.
"Oh, Issus!" she breathed as she took them away, and then, "They come! Strike now, Hadron, and strike deep!"
"Oh, Issus!" she gasped as she took them away, and then, "They're coming! Hit now, Hadron, and hit hard!"
The creatures were almost at the summit. I swung my hand upward that I might bury the slim dagger deeply in that perfect breast: To my surprise my knuckles struck something hard above me. I glanced upward. There was nothing there; yet something impelled me to feel again, to solve that uncanny mystery even in that instant of high tragedy.
The creatures were almost at the top. I raised my hand to stab the slim dagger deep into that perfect chest: To my surprise, my knuckles hit something hard above me. I looked up. There was nothing there; yet something drove me to touch it again, to uncover that strange mystery even in that moment of intense tragedy.
Again I felt above me. By Issus, there was something there! My fingers passed over a smooth surface—a familiar surface.
Again I felt above me. By Issus, there was something there! My fingers brushed over a smooth surface—a familiar surface.
It could not be, and yet I knew that it must be—the Jhama. I asked no questions of myself nor of fate at that instant. The hunting men of U-Gor were almost upon us as my groping fingers found one of the mooring rings in the bow of the Jhama. Quickly I swung Tavia above my head.
It couldn't be, but I knew it had to be—the Jhama. In that moment, I didn't question myself or fate. The hunters of U-Gor were nearly upon us when my searching fingers found one of the mooring rings at the front of the Jhama. I quickly lifted Tavia above my head.
"It is the Jhama. Climb to her deck," I cried.
"It’s the Jhama. Get up to her deck," I shouted.
The dear girl, as quick to seize upon the fortuitous opportunities as any trained fighting man, did not pause to question, but swung herself upward to the deck with the agility of an athlete, and as I seized the mooring ring and drew myself upward she lay flat upon her belly and reaching down assisted me; nor was the strength in that slender frame unequal to the task.
The girl, quick to take advantage of lucky opportunities like any skilled fighter, didn’t hesitate but pulled herself up to the deck with the agility of an athlete. As I grabbed the mooring ring and pulled myself up, she lay flat on her stomach and reached down to help me; her strength, though she was slender, was more than enough for the job.
The leaders of the horde had reached the summit. They paused in momentary confusion when they saw us climb into thin air and stand there apparently just above their heads, but hunger urged them on and they leaped for us, clambering upon one another's back and shoulders to seize us and drag us down.
The leaders of the horde had reached the top. They stopped for a moment in confusion when they saw us climbing into thin air and standing there, seemingly just above their heads, but hunger drove them on, and they jumped for us, scrambling over each other's backs and shoulders to grab us and pull us down.
Two almost gained the deck as I fought them all back single-handed while Tavia had raised a hatch and leaped to the controls.
Two nearly reached the deck as I held them off by myself while Tavia opened a hatch and jumped to the controls.
Another foul-faced thing reached the deck upon the opposite side and only chance revealed him to me before he had run his sword through my back. The Jhama was already rising as I turned to engage him. There was little room there in which to fight, but I had the advantage in that I knew the extent of the deck beneath my feet, while he could see nothing but thin air. I think it frightened him, too, and when I rushed him he stepped backward out into space and, with a scream of terror, hurtled downward toward the ground.
Another ugly figure appeared on the deck on the other side, and only luck alerted me to him before he could stab me in the back. The Jhama was already rising as I turned to face him. There wasn't much space to fight, but I had the upper hand because I knew the deck beneath my feet, while he saw nothing but open air. I think that scared him, too, and when I charged at him, he stepped back into nothingness and, with a scream of fear, fell down toward the ground.
We were saved, but how in the name of all our ancestors had the Jhama chanced to be at this spot.
We were saved, but how in the world had the Jhama ended up here?
Perhaps Tul Axtar was aboard! The thought filled me with alarm for Tavia's safety and with my sword ready I leaped through the hatchway into the cabin, but only Tavia was there.
Perhaps Tul Axtar was on board! The thought filled me with worry for Tavia's safety, and with my sword ready, I jumped through the hatchway into the cabin, but only Tavia was there.
We tried to arrive at some explanation of the miracle that had saved us, but no amount of conjecture brought forth anything that was at all satisfactory.
We attempted to come up with an explanation for the miracle that had saved us, but no amount of speculation led to anything that was even slightly satisfactory.
"She was there when we needed her most," said Tavia; "that fact should satisfy us."
"She was there when we needed her the most," Tavia said. "That alone should be enough for us."
"I guess it will have to for the time being at least," I said, "and now once more we can turn a ship's nose toward Helium."
"I guess it will have to for now," I said, "and now we can once again set a ship's course for Helium."
We had passed but a short distance beyond the mountains when I sighted a ship in the distance and shortly thereafter another and another until I was aware that we were approaching a great fleet moving toward the east. As we came closer I descried the hulls painted with the ghastly blue of Jahar and I knew that this was Tul Axtar's formidable armada.
We had traveled just a little way past the mountains when I spotted a ship in the distance, and soon after, I saw another and another until I realized we were getting close to a huge fleet heading east. As we got nearer, I could see the hulls painted in the eerie blue of Jahar, and I knew this was Tul Axtar's powerful armada.
And then we saw ships approaching from the east and I knew that it was the fleet of Helium. It could be no other; yet I must make certain, and so I sped in the direction of the nearest ship of this other fleet until I saw the banners and pennons of Helium floating from her upper works and the battle insignia of the Warlord painted upon her prow. Behind her came the other ships—a noble fleet moving to inevitable doom.
And then we saw ships coming in from the east, and I realized it was the fleet of Helium. It could be no other; still, I needed to be sure, so I rushed toward the nearest ship of this other fleet. Once there, I spotted the banners and flags of Helium waving from the upper decks and the battle emblem of the Warlord painted on her front. Following her were the other ships—a proud fleet heading toward certain disaster.
A Jaharian cruiser was moving toward the first great battleship as I raced to intercept them and bring one of my rifles into action.
A Jaharian cruiser was heading toward the first big battleship as I rushed to intercept them and get one of my rifles ready.
I was forced to come close to my target as was the Jaharian cruiser, since the effective range of the disintegrating ray rifle is extremely limited.
I had to get close to my target just like the Jaharian cruiser, because the effective range of the disintegrating ray rifle is really short.
Everything aboard the battleship of Helium was ready for action, but I knew why they had not fired a gun. It has ever been the boast of John Carter, Warlord of Barsoom, that he would not start a war. The enemy must fire the first shot. If I could have reached them in time he would have realized the fatal consequences of this magnanimous and chivalrous code and the ships of Helium, with their long range guns, might have annihilated Jahar's entire fleet before it could have brought its deadly rifles within range, but fate had ordained otherwise and now the best that I could hope was that I might reach the Jaharian ship before it was too late.
Everything on the battleship of Helium was set for action, but I knew why they hadn't fired a shot. John Carter, Warlord of Barsoom, always claimed he wouldn't start a war. The enemy had to fire first. If I could have made it to them in time, he would have seen the disastrous results of this noble and honorable code, and the ships of Helium, with their long-range guns, could have wiped out Jahar's entire fleet before it could bring its deadly rifles into play. But fate had decided differently, and now all I could hope for was to reach the Jaharian ship before it was too late.
Tavia was at the controls. We were racing toward the blue cruiser of Jahar. I was standing at the forward rifle. In another moment we should be within range and then I saw the great battleship of Helium crumble in mid-air. Its wooden parts dropped slowly toward the ground and a thousand warriors plunged to a cruel death upon the barren land beneath.
Tavia was in charge. We were speeding toward Jahar's blue cruiser. I stood at the front with the rifle. In a moment, we would be in range and then I watched as the massive battleship of Helium shattered in mid-air. Its wooden fragments fell slowly to the ground, and a thousand warriors plunged to a brutal death on the desolate land below.
Almost immediately the other ships of Helium were brought to a stop. They had witnessed the catastrophe that had engulfed the first ship of the line and the commander of the fleet had realized that they were menaced by a new force of which they had no knowledge.
Almost immediately, the other ships of Helium came to a halt. They had seen the disaster that had taken down the first ship in line, and the fleet commander understood that they were threatened by a new force they knew nothing about.
The ships of Tul Axtar, encouraged by this first success, were now moving swiftly to the attack. The cruiser that had destroyed the great battleship was in the lead, but now I was within range of it.
The ships of Tul Axtar, motivated by this initial victory, were now advancing quickly to launch their attack. The cruiser that had taken down the massive battleship was in the front, but now I was within its reach.
Realizing that the blue protective paint of Jahar would safeguard the ship itself against the disintegrating ray, I had rammed home a cartridge of another type in the chamber and swinging the muzzle of the rifle so that it would rake the entire length of the ship, I pressed the button.
Realizing that Jahar's blue protective paint would protect the ship from the disintegrating ray, I loaded a different type of cartridge into the chamber. Then, aiming the rifle to cover the entire length of the ship, I pressed the button.
Instantly the men upon deck dissolved into thin air—only their harness and their metal and their weapons were left.
Instantly, the men on deck vanished into thin air—only their gear, metal, and weapons remained.
Directing Tavia to run the Jhama alongside, I raised the upper hatch and leaped to the deck of the cruiser and a moment later I had raised the signal of surrender above her. One can imagine the consternation aboard the nearer ships of Jahar as they saw that signal flying from her forward mast, for there was none sufficiently close to have witnessed what actually transpired aboard her.
Directing Tavia to run the Jhama alongside, I opened the upper hatch and jumped onto the cruiser’s deck. A moment later, I raised the surrender flag above her. You can imagine the shock on the ships of Jahar nearby as they saw that signal waving from her front mast, since none were close enough to witness what really happened on board.
Returning to the cabin of the Jhama I lowered the hatch and went at once to the periscope. Far in the rear of the first line of Jaharian ships I could just discern the royal insignia upon a great battleship, which told me that Tul Axtar was there, but in a safe position. I should have liked to reach his ship next, but the fleet was moving forward toward the ships of Helium and I dared not spare the time.
Returning to the cabin of the Jhama, I closed the hatch and immediately went to the periscope. Far behind the first line of Jaharian ships, I could just make out the royal insignia on a large battleship, which indicated that Tul Axtar was there but in a safe spot. I would have liked to reach his ship next, but the fleet was advancing towards the ships of Helium, and I couldn’t afford to take the time.
By now the ships of Helium had opened fire and shells were exploding about the leading ships of the Jaharian fleet—shells so nicely timed that they can be set to explode at any point up to the extreme range of the gun that discharges them. It takes nice gunnery to synchronize the timing with the target.
By now, the Helium ships had opened fire, and shells were exploding around the leading vessels of the Jaharian fleet—shells that were timed so perfectly they could be set to detonate at any point within the gun's maximum range. It requires precise marksmanship to synchronize the timing with the target.
As ship after ship of the Jaharian fleet was hit, the others brought their big guns into action. Temporarily, at least, the disintegrating ray rifles had failed, but that they would succeed I knew if a single ship could get through the Heliumetic line, where among the great battleships she could destroy a dozen in the space of a few minutes.
As ship after ship from the Jaharian fleet was targeted, the others fired their big guns. For now, at least, the disintegrating ray rifles weren’t working, but I knew they would succeed if even one ship could break through the Heliumetic line, where it could take out a dozen of the massive battleships in just a few minutes.
The gunnery of the Jaharians was poor; their shells usually exploded high in air before they reached their target, but as the battle continued it improved; yet I knew that Jahar never could hope to defeat Helium with Helium's own weapons.
The aim of the Jaharians was off; their shells typically exploded high in the air before hitting their target, but as the battle went on, it got better; still, I knew that Jahar could never hope to defeat Helium using Helium's own weapons.
A great battleship of Tul Axtar's fleet was hit three times in succession almost alongside of me. I saw her drop by the stern and I knew that she was done for, and then I saw her commander rush to the bow and take the last long dive and I knew that there were brave men in Tul Axtar's fleet as well as in the fleet of Helium, but Tul Axtar was not one of them, for in the distance I could see his flagship racing toward Jahar.
A massive battleship from Tul Axtar's fleet took three hits in a row right next to me. I watched as it sank at the back, knowing it was finished. Then I saw her commander charge to the front and make a final leap, and I realized there were courageous men in both Tul Axtar's fleet and the Helium fleet. But Tul Axtar wasn't one of them, as I could see his flagship speeding away toward Jahar in the distance.
Despite the cowardice of the Jeddak, the great fleet pushed on to the attack. If they had the courage they could still win, for their ships outnumbered the ships of Helium ten to one and as far as the eye could reach I could see them speeding from the north, from the south and from the west toward the scene of battle.
Despite the Jeddak's cowardice, the massive fleet continued its advance toward the attack. If they had the guts, they could still win, as their ships outnumbered the Helium fleet ten to one, and as far as I could see, I noticed them racing in from the north, the south, and the west toward the battlefield.
Closer and closer the ships of Helium were pressing toward the ships of Jahar. In his ignorance the Warlord was playing directly into the hands of the enemy. With their superior marksmanship and twenty battleships protected by the blue paint of Jahar, Helium could wipe out Tul Axtar's great armada; of that I was confident, and with that thought came an inspiration. It might be done and only Tan Hadron of Hastor could do it.
Closer and closer the ships of Helium were moving toward the ships of Jahar. In his ignorance, the Warlord was playing right into the enemy's hands. With their superior marksmanship and twenty battleships covered in Jahar's blue paint, Helium could wipe out Tul Axtar's massive fleet; I was sure of that, and with that thought came a spark of inspiration. It could be done, and only Tan Hadron of Hastor could pull it off.
Shells were falling all about us. The force of the explosions rocked the Jhama until she tossed and pitched like an ancient ship upon an ancient sea. Again and again were we perilously close to the line of fire of the Jaharian disintegrating ray rifles. I felt that I might no longer risk Tavia thus, yet I must carry out the plan that I had conceived.
Shells were falling all around us. The force of the explosions rocked the Jhama until she heaved and swayed like an old ship on a stormy sea. Time and again, we were dangerously close to the line of fire from the Jaharian disintegrating ray rifles. I felt that I could no longer put Tavia in harm's way like this, but I had to go through with the plan I had devised.
It is strange how men change and for what seemingly trivial reasons. I had thought all my life that I would make any sacrifice for Helium, but now I knew that I would not sacrifice a single hair of that tousled head for all Barsoom. This, I soliloquized, is friendship.
It's odd how much men can change and for what seem like minor reasons. I always believed I would do anything for Helium, but now I realized I wouldn't even give up a single hair from that messy head for all of Barsoom. This, I thought to myself, is friendship.
Taking the controls I turned the bow of the Jhama toward one of the ships of Helium, that was standing temporarily out of the line of fire, and as we approached her side I turned the controls back over to Tavia, and, raising the forward hatch, sprang to the deck of the Jhama, raising both hands above my head in signal of surrender in the event that they might take me for a Jaharian.
Taking the controls, I pointed the bow of the Jhama towards one of the ships from Helium, which was momentarily out of the line of fire. As we got closer to her side, I handed the controls back to Tavia, then opened the forward hatch and jumped onto the deck of the Jhama, raising both hands above my head as a signal of surrender in case they mistook me for a Jaharian.
What must they have thought when they saw me apparently floating upright upon thin air? That they were astonished was evident by the expressions on the faces of those nearest to me as the Jhama touched the side of the battleship.
What must they have thought when they saw me seemingly floating upright in mid-air? It was clear from the expressions on the faces of those closest to me that they were astonished as the Jhama made contact with the side of the battleship.
They kept me covered as I came aboard, leaving Tavia to maneuver the Jhama.
They kept me shielded as I boarded, leaving Tavia to handle the Jhama.
Before I could announce myself I was recognized by a young officer of my own umak. With a cry of surprise he leaped forward and threw his arms about me: "Hadron of Hastor!" he cried. "Have I witnessed your resurrection from death; but no, you are too real, too much alive to be any wraith of the other world."
Before I could introduce myself, a young officer from my own unit recognized me. With a gasp of surprise, he rushed over and hugged me: "Hadron of Hastor!" he exclaimed. "Is it possible I've seen your return from the dead? No, you're too real, too alive to be any ghost from the afterlife."
"I am alive now," I cried, "but none of us will be unless I can get word to your commander. Where is he?"
"I’m alive now," I shouted, "but none of us will be unless I can get a message to your commander. Where is he?"
"Here," said a voice behind me and I turned to see an old odwar who had been a great friend of my father's. He recognized me immediately, but there was no time even for greetings.
"Here," said a voice behind me, and I turned to see an old odwar who had been a close friend of my father's. He recognized me right away, but there wasn't even time for greetings.
"Warn the fleet that the ships of Jahar are armed with disintegrating ray rifles that can dissolve every ship as you saw the first one dissolve. They are only effective at short range. Keep at least a haad distance from them and you are relatively safe. And now if you will give me three men and direct the fire of your fleet away from the Jaharian ships on the south of their line, I will agree to have twenty ships for you in an hour—ships protected by the blue of Jahar in which you may face their disintegrating ray rifles with impunity."
"Alert the fleet that the ships from Jahar are equipped with disintegrating ray rifles that can destroy any ship, just like you saw the first one disintegrate. Those rifles are only effective at close range. Stay at least a haad distance away from them and you should be fairly safe. Now, if you can provide me with three men and redirect your fleet's fire away from the Jaharian ships on the south of their line, I will arrange for twenty ships for you in an hour—ships shielded by the blue of Jahar, which will allow you to confront their disintegrating ray rifles without fear."
The odwar knew me well and upon his own responsibility he agreed to do what I asked.
The odwar knew me well, and on his own accord, he agreed to do what I asked.
Three padwars of my own class guaranteed to accompany me. I fetched Tavia aboard the battleship and turned her over to the protection of the old odwar, though she objected strenuously to being parted from me.
Three padwars from my own class were sure to come with me. I brought Tavia onto the battleship and handed her over to the care of the old odwar, even though she strongly protested being separated from me.
"We have gone through so much together, Hadron of Hastor," she said, "let us go on to the end together."
"We've been through so much together, Hadron of Hastor," she said, "let's see this through to the end together."
She had come quite close to me and spoken in a low voice that none might overhear. Her eyes, filled with pleading, were upturned to mine.
She had moved in close and spoke softly so no one could overhear. Her eyes, filled with desperation, were looking up at mine.
"I cannot risk you further, Tavia," I said.
"I can’t put you in any more danger, Tavia," I said.
"There is so much danger then, you think?" she asked.
"There’s a lot of danger, right?" she asked.
"We shall be in danger, of course." I said; "this is war and one can never tell. Do not worry though. I shall come back safely."
"We're definitely going to be in danger." I said, "This is war and you can never be sure. But don't worry. I'll come back safe."
"Then it is that you fear that I shall be in the way," she said, "and another can do the work better than I?"
"Then you’re worried that I’ll just get in the way," she said, "and that someone else can do the job better than I can?"
"Of course not," I replied. "I am thinking only of your safety."
"Of course not," I replied. "I'm just thinking about your safety."
"If you are lost, I shall not live. I swear it," she said, "so if you can trust me to do the work of a man, let me go with you instead of one of those."
"If you're lost, I can't go on living. I swear it," she said, "so if you can trust me to do a man's job, let me go with you instead of one of them."
I hesitated. "Oh, Hadron of Hastor, please do not leave me here without you," she said.
I hesitated. "Oh, Hadron of Hastor, please don’t leave me here without you," she said.
I could not resist her. "Very well, then," I said, "come with me. I would rather have you than any other," and so it was that Tavia replaced one of the padwars on the Jhama, much to the officer's chagrin.
I couldn't resist her. "Alright then," I said, "come with me. I’d rather have you than anyone else," and that's how Tavia took the place of one of the padwars on the Jhama, much to the officer's annoyance.
Before entering the Jhama I turned again to the old odwar. "If we are successful," I said, "a number of Tul Axtar's battleships will move slowly toward the Helium line beneath signals of surrender. Their crews will have been destroyed. Have boarding parties ready to take them over."
Before entering the Jhama, I turned back to the old odwar. "If we're successful," I said, "a bunch of Tul Axtar's battleships will move slowly toward the Helium line under signals of surrender. Their crews will be gone. Get boarding parties ready to take them over."
Naturally every one aboard the battleship was intensely interested in the Jhama, though all that they could see of her was the open hatch and the eye of the periscope. Officers and men lined the rail as we went aboard our invisible craft and as I closed the hatch, a loud cheer rang out above me.
Naturally, everyone on the battleship was really curious about the Jhama, even though all they could see of her was the open hatch and the periscope. Officers and crew lined the railing as we boarded our hidden vessel, and as I closed the hatch, a loud cheer erupted above me.
My first act thoroughly evidenced my need of Tavia, for I put her at the after turret in charge of the rifle there, while one of the padwars took the controls and turned the prow of the Jhama toward the Jaharian fleet.
My first action clearly showed how much I needed Tavia, so I assigned her to the back turret to handle the rifle while one of the padwars took over the controls and pointed the front of the Jhama toward the Jaharian fleet.
I was standing in a position where I could watch the changing scene upon the ground glass beneath the periscope and when a great battleship swung slowly into the miniature picture before me, I directed the padwar to lay a straight course for her, but a moment later I saw another battleship moving abreast of her. This was better and we changed our course to pass between the two.
I was in a spot where I could see the shifting scene on the ground glass under the periscope, and when a massive battleship slowly came into view, I told the padwar to set a straight course for her. But a moment later, I noticed another battleship moving alongside her. This was even better, so we adjusted our course to pass between the two.
They were moving gallantly toward the fleet of Helium, firing their big guns now and reserving their disintegrating ray rifles for closer range. What a magnificent sight they were, and yet how helpless. The tiny, invisible Jhama, with her little rifles, constituted a greater menace to them than did the entire fleet of Helium. On they drove, unconscious of the inevitable fate bearing down upon them.
They were boldly advancing toward the fleet of Helium, shooting their big guns now and saving their disintegration ray rifles for when they got closer. They looked magnificent, yet felt so powerless. The tiny, unseen Jhama, with her small rifles, posed a bigger threat to them than the whole fleet of Helium. They pushed ahead, unaware of the unavoidable fate coming their way.
"Sweep the starboard ship from stem to stern," I called to Tavia. "I will take this fellow on our port," and then to the padwar at the controls, "Half speed!"
"Sweep the right side of the ship from front to back," I called to Tavia. "I'll handle this guy on our left," and then to the crew member at the controls, "Half speed!"
Slowly we passed their bows. I touched the button upon my rifle and through the tiny sighting aperture I saw the crew dissolve in the path of those awful rays, as the two ships passed. We were very close—so close that I could see the expressions of consternation and horror on the faces of some of the warriors as they saw their fellows disappear before their eyes, and then their turn would come and they would be snuffed out in the twinkling of an eye, their weapons and their metal clattering to the deck.
Slowly, we moved past their ships. I pressed the button on my rifle, and through the small sighting aperture, I watched the crew vanish in the path of those terrible rays as the two ships went by. We were really close—close enough to see the looks of shock and horror on some of the warriors' faces as they witnessed their comrades disappear right before their eyes, and then it would be their turn, snuffed out in an instant, their weapons and metal clattering to the deck.
As we dropped astern of them, our work completed, I had the padwar bring the Jhama about and alongside one of the ships, which I quickly boarded, running up the signal of surrender. With the death of the officer at her controls she had fallen off with the wind, but I quickly brought her up again and, setting her at half speed, her bow toward the ships of Helium, I locked the controls and left her.
As we fell behind them, our task done, I had the second-in-command turn the Jhama around and alongside one of the ships, which I quickly boarded, raising the surrender signal. With the officer at the controls dead, she had drifted away with the wind, but I swiftly corrected her course and set her to half speed, pointing her bow toward the ships of Helium. I then locked the controls and stepped away.
Returning to the Jhama, we crossed quickly to the other ship and a few moments later it, too, was moving slowly toward the fleet of the Warlord, the signal of surrender fluttering above it.
Returning to the Jhama, we quickly crossed to the other ship, and a few moments later, it was also moving slowly toward the Warlord's fleet, the signal of surrender fluttering above it.
So quickly had the blow been struck that even the nearer ships of Jahar were some time in realizing that anything was amiss. Perhaps they were unable to believe their own eyes when they saw two of their great battleships surrender before having been struck by a single shot, but presently the commander of a light cruiser seemed to awaken to the seriousness of the situation, even though he could not fully have understood it. We were already moving toward another battleship when I saw the cruiser speeding directly toward one of our prizes and I knew that it would never reach the fleet of Helium if he boarded it, a thing which I must prevent at all costs. His course would bring him across our bow and as he passed I raked him with the forward rifle.
The blow had been struck so quickly that even the nearby ships of Jahar took a while to realize something was wrong. They might have doubted their own eyes when they saw two of their huge battleships surrender without being hit by a single shot, but soon the commander of a light cruiser seemed to recognize the seriousness of the situation, even if he didn’t fully grasp it. We were already heading toward another battleship when I saw the cruiser rushing straight toward one of our captured ships, and I knew it wouldn’t make it to the fleet of Helium if he boarded it, a situation I had to stop at all costs. His path would take him across our front, and as he passed, I fired at him with the forward rifle.
I saw that it would be impossible for the Jhama to overtake this swift cruiser, which was moving at full speed and so we had to let her go her way. At first I was afraid she would ram the nearer prize and had she hit her squarely at the rate that she was traveling, the cruiser would have plowed half way through the hull of the battleship. Fortunately, she missed the great ship by a hair and went speeding on into the midst of the fleet of Helium.
I realized that it would be impossible for the Jhama to catch up to this fast cruiser, which was moving at full speed, so we had to let her go her way. At first, I was worried she would collide with the closer prize, and if she had hit her directly at the speed she was going, the cruiser would have cut halfway through the hull of the battleship. Fortunately, she just barely missed the large ship and continued speeding into the fleet of Helium.
Instantly she was the target for a hundred guns, a barrage of shells was bursting about her and then there must have been a dozen hits simultaneously, for the cruiser simply disappeared—a mass of flying debris.
Instantly, she became the target of a hundred guns; a barrage of shells exploded around her, and then it seemed like a dozen hits occurred at once, because the cruiser just vanished—caught in a cloud of flying debris.
As I turned back to our work I saw the havoc being wrought by the big guns of Helium upon the enemy ships to the north of me. In the instant that I glanced I saw three great battleships take the final dive, while at least four others were drifting helplessly with the wind, but other ships of that mighty armada were swinging into action. As far as I could see they were coming from the north, from the south and from the west. There seemed no end to them and now, at last, I realized that only a miracle could give victory to Helium.
As I turned back to our work, I saw the chaos being caused by the big guns of Helium on the enemy ships to my north. In that moment, I witnessed three massive battleships go down for good, while at least four others floated helplessly with the wind. However, other ships from that huge fleet were moving into action. They were coming from the north, the south, and the west as far as I could see. It seemed like there was no end to them, and now, finally, I understood that only a miracle could lead Helium to victory.
In accordance with my suggestion our own fleet was holding off, concentrating the fire of its big guns upon the nearer ship of Jahar—constantly seeking to keep those deadly rifles out of range.
In line with my suggestion, our fleet was holding back, focusing the fire of its big guns on the closer ship of Jahar—continuously trying to keep those deadly rifles out of range.
Again we fell to work—to the grim work that the god of battle had allotted to us. One by one, twenty great battleships surrendered their deserted decks to us and as we worked I counted fully as many more destroyed by the guns of the Warlord.
Again we got back to work—doing the tough job that the god of battle had assigned to us. One by one, twenty massive battleships gave up their empty decks to us, and as we worked, I counted just as many more destroyed by the guns of the Warlord.
In the prosecution of our work we had been compelled to destroy at least half a dozen small craft, such as scout fliers and light cruisers, and now these were racing erratically among the remaining ships of the Jaharian fleet, carrying consternation and doubtless terror to the hearts of Tul Axtar's warriors, for all the nearer ships must have realized long since that some strange, new force had been loosed upon them by the ships of Helium.
In the course of our work, we had to take out at least six small vessels, like scout fliers and light cruisers, and now they were darting unpredictably among the remaining ships of the Jaharian fleet, spreading panic and probably fear among Tul Axtar's warriors, since the nearby ships must have realized long ago that a strange new force had been unleashed upon them by the ships of Helium.
By this time we had worked so far behind the Jaharian first line that we could no longer see the ships of Helium, though bursting shells attested the fact that they were still there.
By this point, we had moved so far behind the Jaharian front line that we could no longer see the ships of Helium, although the sound of exploding shells confirmed that they were still present.
From past experience I realized that it would be necessary to protect the captured Jaharian ships from being retaken and so I turned back, taking a position where I could watch as many of them as possible and it was well that I did so, for we found it necessary to destroy the crews of three more ships before we reached the battle line of Helium.
From previous experience, I knew I needed to protect the captured Jaharian ships from being taken back, so I turned around and took a position where I could see as many of them as possible. It was a good decision because we ended up needing to destroy the crews of three more ships before we reached the battle line of Helium.
Here they had already manned a dozen of the captured battleships of Jahar, and, with the banners and pennons of Helium above them, they had turned about and were moving into action against their sister ships.
Here they had already crewed a dozen of the captured battleships from Jahar, and, with the flags and pennants of Helium flying above them, they had turned around and were heading into battle against their sister ships.
It was then that the spirit of Jahar was broken. This, I think, was too much for them as doubtless the majority of them believed that these ships had gone over to the enemy voluntarily with all their officers and crews, for few, if any, could have known that the latter had been destroyed.
It was then that Jahar's spirit was crushed. I think this was too much for them since most likely the majority believed that these ships had willingly gone over to the enemy along with all their officers and crews, because few, if any, could have known that the latter had been destroyed.
Their Jeddak had long since deserted them. Twenty of their largest ships had gone over to the enemy and now protected by the blue of Jahar and manned by the best gunners of Barsoom, were plowing through them, spreading death and destruction upon every hand.
Their leader had long since abandoned them. Twenty of their biggest ships had switched sides to the enemy and were now shielded by the blue of Jahar and crewed by the top gunners of Barsoom, cutting through them and spreading death and destruction all around.
A dozen of Tul Axtar's ships surrendered voluntarily and then the others turned and scattered; very few of them headed toward Jahar and I knew by that that they believed that the city must inevitably fall.
A dozen of Tul Axtar's ships surrendered willingly, and then the others turned and fled; very few of them headed toward Jahar, which made me realize that they believed the city was doomed to fall.
The Warlord made no effort to pursue the fleeing craft; instead he stationed the ships that we had captured from the enemy, more than thirty all told now, entirely around the fleet of Helium to protect it from the disintegrating ray rifles of the enemy in the event of a renewed attack, and then slowly we moved on Jahar.
The Warlord didn't try to chase the escaping ship; instead, he positioned the ships we had taken from the enemy—now more than thirty in total—completely around the Helium fleet to shield it from the enemy's disintegration ray rifles if they attacked again, and then we gradually headed toward Jahar.
XVI
16
DESPAIR
Despair
Immediately after the close of the battle the Warlord sent for me and a few moments later Tavia and I stepped aboard the flagship.
Immediately after the battle ended, the Warlord called for me, and a few moments later, Tavia and I boarded the flagship.
The Warlord himself came forward to meet us. "I knew," he said, "that the son of Had Urtur would give a good account of himself. Helium can scarcely pay the debt of gratitude that you have placed upon her today. You have been to Jahar; your work today convinces me of that. May we with safety approach and take the city?"
The Warlord stepped up to meet us. "I knew," he said, "that the son of Had Urtur would prove himself well. Helium can hardly repay the debt of gratitude you've earned today. You've been to Jahar; your actions today confirm that. Can we safely approach and take the city?"
"No," I replied, and then briefly I explained the mighty force that Tul Axtar had gathered and the armament with which he expected to subdue the world. "But there is a way," I said.
"No," I replied, and then I briefly explained the powerful force that Tul Axtar had gathered and the weapons with which he planned to conquer the world. "But there is a way," I said.
"And what is that?" he asked.
"And what is that?" he asked.
"Send one of the captured Jaharian ships with a flag of truce and I believe that Tul Axtar will surrender. He is a coward. He fled in terror when the battle was still young."
"Send one of the captured Jaharian ships with a flag of truce, and I believe that Tul Axtar will give up. He’s a coward. He ran away in fear when the battle had just started."
"Will he honor a flag of truce?"
"Will he respect a flag of truce?"
"If it is carried aboard one of his own ships, protected by the blue paint of Jahar, I believe that he will," I said; "but at the same time I shall accompany the ship in the invisible Jhama. I know how I may gain entrance to the palace. I have abducted Tul Axtar once and perchance I may be able to do it again. If you have him in your hands, you can dictate terms to the nobles, all of whom fear the terrific power of the hungry multitude that is held in check now only by the instinctive terror they feel for their Jeddak."
"If it's brought on one of his own ships, shielded by the blue paint of Jahar, I think he will," I said; "but at the same time, I'll be on the ship in the invisible Jhama. I know how to get into the palace. I've kidnapped Tul Axtar before, and maybe I can do it again. If you have him captured, you can set the terms for the nobles, all of whom are afraid of the overwhelming power of the restless crowd that's only being kept in check by their instinctive fear of their Jeddak."
As we waited for the former Jaharian cruiser that was to carry the flag of truce to come alongside, John Carter told me what had delayed the expedition against Jahar for so many months.
As we waited for the old Jaharian cruiser that was supposed to bring the truce flag alongside, John Carter explained to me what had held up the mission against Jahar for so many months.
The majordomo of Tor Hatan's palace, to whom I had entrusted the message to John Carter and which would have led immediately to the descent upon Jahar, had been assassinated while on his way to the palace of the Warlord. Suspicion, therefore, did not fall upon Tul Axtar and the ships of Helium scoured Barsoom for many months in vain search for Sanoma Tora.
The head servant of Tor Hatan's palace, to whom I had sent the message for John Carter that would have triggered the attack on Jahar, had been killed while headed to the Warlord's palace. So, suspicion didn’t land on Tul Axtar, and the ships from Helium searched Barsoom for many months in vain looking for Sanoma Tora.
It was only by accident that Kal Tavan the slave, who had overheard my conversation with the majordomo, learned that the ships of Helium had not been dispatched to Jahar, for a slave ordinarily is not taken into the confidences of his master and the arrogant Tor Hatan was, of all men, least likely to do so; but Kal Tavan did hear eventually and he went himself to the Warlord and told his story.
It was purely by chance that Kal Tavan the slave, who had overheard my talk with the majordomo, found out that the ships from Helium hadn’t been sent to Jahar, since a slave is usually kept out of his master’s secrets, and the arrogant Tor Hatan was, above all, the least likely to share such information; but Kal Tavan eventually did hear, and he went personally to the Warlord and shared his story.
"For his services," said John Carter, "I gave him his freedom and as it was apparent from his demeanor that he had been born to the nobility in his native country, though he did not tell me this, I gave him service aboard the fleet. He has turned out to be an excellent man and recently I have made him a dwar. Having been born in Tjanath and served in Kobol, he was more familiar with this part of Barsoom than any other man in Helium. I, therefore, assigned him to duty with the navigating officer of the fleet and he is now aboard the flagship."
"For his services," John Carter said, "I gave him his freedom, and since it was clear from his attitude that he was born into nobility in his home country, even though he didn't mention it, I gave him a position on the fleet. He has proven to be an excellent man, and recently, I made him a dwar. Having been born in Tjanath and served in Kobol, he knows this part of Barsoom better than anyone else in Helium. So, I assigned him to work with the fleet's navigating officer, and now he is on the flagship."
"I had occasion to notice the man immediately after Sanoma Tora's abduction," I said, "and I was much impressed by him. I am glad that he has found his freedom and the favor of the Warlord."
"I noticed the man right after Sanoma Tora was kidnapped," I said, "and I was really impressed by him. I'm happy he's found his freedom and earned the Warlord's favor."
The cruiser that was to bear the flag of truce was now alongside. The officer in command reported to the Warlord and as he received his instructions, Tavia and I returned to the Jhama. We had decided to carry on our part of the plan alone, for if it became necessary to abduct Tul Axtar again I had hoped, also, that I might find Phao and Sanoma Tora, and if so the small cabin of the Jhama would be sufficiently crowded without the addition of the two padwars. They were reluctant to leave her for I think they had had the most glorious experience of their lives during the short time that they had been aboard her, but I gained permission from the Warlord for them to accompany the cruiser to Jahar.
The cruiser that was supposed to carry the truce flag was now moored beside us. The officer in charge reported to the Warlord, and while he received his orders, Tavia and I went back to the Jhama. We decided to handle our part of the plan by ourselves, because if we needed to kidnap Tul Axtar again, I also hoped to find Phao and Sanoma Tora. If that happened, the small cabin of the Jhama would be too cramped without adding the two padwars. They were hesitant to leave her because I think they had the most amazing experience of their lives during their short time on board, but I got the Warlord's permission for them to join the cruiser to Jahar.
Once again Tavia and I were alone. "Perhaps this will be our last cruise aboard the Jhama," I said.
Once again, Tavia and I were alone. "Maybe this will be our last trip on the Jhama," I said.
"I think I shall be glad to rest," she replied.
"I think I’ll be glad to rest," she replied.
"You are tired?" I asked.
"Are you tired?" I asked.
"More tired than I realized until I felt the safety and security of that great fleet of Helium about me. I think that I am just tired of being always in danger."
"More tired than I realized until I felt the safety and security of that great fleet of Helium surrounding me. I think I’m just tired of always being in danger."
"I should not have brought you now," I said. "There is yet time to return you to the flagship."
"I shouldn't have brought you here now," I said. "There's still time to take you back to the flagship."
She smiled. "You know better than that, Hadron," she said.
She smiled. "You know better than that, Hadron," she said.
I did know better. I knew that she would not leave me. We were silent for a while as the Jhama slid through the air slightly astern of the cruiser. As I looked at Tavia's face, it seemed to reflect a great weariness and there were little lines of sadness there that I had not seen before. Presently she spoke again in a dull tone that was most unlike her own.
I did know better. I knew she wouldn’t leave me. We were quiet for a bit as the Jhama glided through the air slightly behind the cruiser. As I looked at Tavia's face, it seemed to show a deep weariness, and there were little lines of sadness I hadn't noticed before. Eventually, she spoke again in a flat tone that didn’t sound like her at all.
"I think that Sanoma Tora will be glad to come away with you this time," she said.
"I think Sanoma Tora will be happy to go away with you this time," she said.
"I do not know," I said. "It makes no difference to me whether she wishes to come or not. It is my duty to fetch her."
"I don’t know," I said. "It doesn’t matter to me whether she wants to come or not. It's my responsibility to get her."
She nodded. "Perhaps it is best," she said; "her father is a noble and very rich."
She nodded. "Maybe that's for the best," she said; "her dad is a nobleman and really wealthy."
I did not understand what that had to do with it and not being particularly interested further in either Sanoma Tora or her father, I did not pursue the conversation. I knew that it was my duty to return Sanoma Tora to Helium if possible, and that was the only interest that I had in the affair.
I didn’t get what that had to do with anything, and since I wasn't particularly interested in either Sanoma Tora or her dad, I didn’t continue the conversation. I knew it was my responsibility to take Sanoma Tora back to Helium if I could, and that was the only thing I cared about in the situation.
We were well within sight of Jahar before we encountered any warships and then a cruiser came to meet ours which bore the flag of truce. The commanders of the two boats exchanged a few words and then the Jaharian craft turned and led the way toward the palace of Tul Axtar. It moved slowly and I forged on ahead, my plans already made, and the Jhama, being clothed with invisibility, needed no escort. I steered directly to that wing of the palace which contained the women's quarters and slowly circled it, my periscope on a line with the windows.
We were clearly in sight of Jahar before we spotted any warships, and then a cruiser approached us, flying a truce flag. The commanders of both vessels exchanged a few words, and then the Jaharian ship turned and led us toward the palace of Tul Axtar. It moved slowly, and I pushed ahead, my plans already set. The Jhama, being cloaked in invisibility, didn’t need any escort. I directed my course straight to the section of the palace that housed the women's quarters and slowly circled it, with my periscope aligned with the windows.
We had rounded the end of the wing, in which the great hall lay where Tul Axtar held court with his women, when the periscope came opposite the windows of a gorgeous apartment. I brought the ship to a stop before it, as I had before some of the others which I wished to examine, and while the slowly moving periscope brought different parts of the large room to the ground glass plate before me I saw the figures of two women and instantly I recognized them. One was Sanoma Tora and the other Phao, and upon the figure of the former hung the gorgeous trappings of a Jeddara. The woman I had loved had achieved her goal, but it caused me no pang of jealousy. I searched the balance of the apartment and finding no other occupant, I brought the deck of the Jhama close below the sill of the window. Then I raised a hatch and leaped into the room.
We had turned the corner of the wing where the grand hall was, where Tul Axtar held court with his women, when the periscope came level with the windows of a beautiful apartment. I stopped the ship in front of it, just like I had done before with some of the other places I wanted to check out, and as the slowly moving periscope revealed different parts of the large room on the ground glass plate in front of me, I saw the figures of two women and recognized them immediately. One was Sanoma Tora and the other was Phao, and the former was adorned in the stunning attire of a Jeddara. The woman I had loved had achieved her dream, but I felt no jealousy. I scanned the rest of the apartment and, finding no one else there, I brought the deck of the Jhama close under the window sill. Then I opened a hatch and jumped into the room.
At sight of me Sanoma Tora arose from the divan upon which she had been sitting and shrank back in terror. I thought that she was about to scream for help, but I warned her to silence, and at the same instant Phao sprang forward and, seizing Sanoma Tora's arm, clapped a palm over her mouth. A moment later I had gained her side.
At the sight of me, Sanoma Tora got up from the couch she had been sitting on and recoiled in fear. I thought she was about to scream for help, but I quickly told her to be quiet, and at the same time, Phao rushed forward, grabbed Sanoma Tora's arm, and covered her mouth with his hand. A moment later, I was by her side.
"The fleet of Jahar has gone down to defeat before the ships of Helium," I told Sanoma Tora, "and I have come to take you back to your own country."
"The fleet of Jahar has been defeated by the ships of Helium," I told Sanoma Tora, "and I've come to take you back to your home country."
She was trembling so that she could not reply. I had never seen such a picture of abject terror, induced no doubt by her own guilty conscience.
She was shaking so much that she couldn't respond. I had never seen such a clear picture of complete fear, likely caused by her own guilty conscience.
"I am glad you have come, Hadron of Hastor," said Phao, "for I know that you will take me, too."
"I’m glad you’re here, Hadron of Hastor," said Phao, "because I know you’ll take me with you."
"Of course," I said. "The Jhama lies just outside that window. Come! We shall soon be safe aboard the flagship of the Warlord."
"Of course," I said. "The Jhama is right outside that window. Come! We'll be safe soon on the flagship of the Warlord."
While I had been talking I had become aware of a strange noise that seemed to come from a distance and which rose and fell in volume and now it appeared to be growing nearer and nearer. I could not explain it; perhaps I did not attempt to, for at best I could be only mildly interested. I had found two of those whom I sought. I would get them aboard the Jhama and then I would try to locate Tul Axtar.
While I was talking, I noticed a strange noise in the distance that would come and go in volume, and now it seemed to be getting closer and closer. I couldn't explain it; maybe I didn't even try because, at most, I was only a little curious. I had found two of the people I was looking for. I would get them on the Jhama, and then I would try to find Tul Axtar.
At that instant the door burst open and a man rushed into the room. It was Tul Axtar. He was very pale and he was breathing hard. At sight of me he halted and shrank back and I thought that he was going to turn and run, but he only looked fearfully back through the open door and then he turned to me, trembling.
At that moment, the door swung open, and a man hurried into the room. It was Tul Axtar. He looked very pale and was breathing heavily. When he saw me, he stopped and recoiled, and I thought he might turn and flee, but he just looked back through the open door in fear and then faced me, shaking.
"They are coming!" he cried in a voice of terror. "They will tear me to pieces."
"They're coming!" he shouted in a terrified voice. "They'll tear me apart."
"Who is coming?" I demanded.
"Who's coming?" I demanded.
"The people," he said. "They have forced the gates and they are coming. Do you not hear them?"
"The people," he said. "They've broken through the gates and they're coming. Can't you hear them?"
So that was the noise that had attracted my attention—the hungry hordes of Jahar searching out the author of their misery.
So that was the noise that had caught my attention—the desperate crowds of Jahar looking for the person responsible for their suffering.
"The Jhama is outside that window," I said. "If you will come aboard her as a prisoner of war, I will take you to the Warlord of Barsoom."
"The Jhama is outside that window," I said. "If you come on board as a prisoner of war, I’ll take you to the Warlord of Barsoom."
"He will kill me, too," wailed Tul Axtar.
"He'll kill me, too," cried Tul Axtar.
"He should," I assured him.
"He should," I told him.
He stood looking at me for a moment and I could see in his eyes and the expression of his face the reflection of a dawning idea. His countenance lightened. He looked almost hopeful. "I will come," he said; "but first let me get one thing to take with me. It is in yonder cabinet."
He stood there staring at me for a moment, and I could see in his eyes and the look on his face the hint of a new idea. His expression brightened. He looked almost hopeful. "I'll come," he said, "but first let me grab something to take with me. It's in that cabinet over there."
"Hasten," I said.
"Go faster," I said.
He went quickly to the cabinet, which was a tall affair reaching from the floor almost to the ceiling, and when he opened the door it hid him from our view.
He hurried over to the tall cabinet that reached almost to the ceiling, and when he opened the door, it kept him out of sight.
As I waited I could hear the crash of weapons upon levels below and the screams and shrieks and curses of men and I judged that the palace guard was holding the mob, temporarily at least. Finally I became impatient. "Hasten, Tul Axtar," I called, but there was no reply. Again I called him, with the same result, and then I crossed the room to the cabinet, but Tul Axtar was not behind the door.
As I waited, I could hear the clash of weapons on the floors below and the cries, shouts, and curses of men, and I figured that the palace guard was keeping the mob at bay, at least for now. Finally, I grew impatient. "Hurry, Tul Axtar," I called, but there was no answer. I called for him again, and once again, I got no response. Then I crossed the room to the cabinet, but Tul Axtar wasn't behind the door.
The cabinet contained many drawers of different sizes, but there was not one large enough to conceal a man, nor any through which he could have passed to another apartment. Hastily I searched the room, but Tul Axtar was nowhere to be found and then I chanced to glance at Sanoma Tora. She was evidently trying to attract my attention, but she was so terrified that she could not speak. With trembling fingers she was pointing toward the window. I looked in that direction, but I could see nothing.
The cabinet had a lot of drawers of different sizes, but none were big enough to hide a man, and there wasn’t a way to get through to another room. I quickly searched the room, but Tul Axtar was nowhere to be found, and then I happened to look at Sanoma Tora. She clearly wanted to get my attention, but she was so scared that she couldn't speak. With shaking fingers, she was pointing toward the window. I looked that way, but I couldn’t see anything.
"What is it? What are you trying to say, Sanoma Tora?" I demanded as I rushed to her side.
"What is it? What are you trying to say, Sanoma Tora?" I asked urgently as I rushed to her side.
"Gone!" she managed to say. "Gone!"
"Gone!" she was able to say. "Gone!"
"Who is gone?" I demanded.
"Who is missing?" I demanded.
"Tul Axtar."
"Tul Search."
"Where? What do you mean?" I insisted.
"Where? What are you talking about?" I pressed.
"The hatch of the Jhama—I saw it open and close."
"The hatch of the Jhama—I watched it open and close."
"But it cannot be possible. We have been standing here looking—" and then a thought struck me that left me almost dazed. I turned to Sanoma Tora. "The cloak of invisibility?" I whispered.
"But that can't be true. We've been standing here looking—" and then an idea hit me that left me feeling almost stunned. I turned to Sanoma Tora. "The invisibility cloak?" I whispered.
She nodded.
She agreed.
Almost in a single bound I crossed the room to the window and was feeling for the deck of the Jhama. It was not there. The ship had gone. Tul Axtar had taken it and Tavia was with him.
Almost in a single leap, I crossed the room to the window and was searching for the deck of the Jhama. It wasn’t there. The ship had left. Tul Axtar had taken it, and Tavia was with him.
I turned back and crossed the room to Sanoma Tora. "Accursed woman!" I cried. "Your selfishness, your vanity, your treachery has jeopardized the safety of one whose footprints you are not fit to touch." I wanted to close my fingers upon that perfect throat, I yearned to see the agony of death upon that beautiful face; but I only turned away, my hands dropping at my sides, for I am a man—a noble of Helium—and the women of Helium are sacred, even such as Sanoma Tora.
I turned back and crossed the room to Sanoma Tora. "Damn you!" I shouted. "Your selfishness, your arrogance, your betrayal have put at risk the safety of someone whose footsteps you’re not worthy to follow." I wanted to wrap my hands around that perfect throat; I longed to see the pain of death on that beautiful face. But instead, I just turned away, my hands falling to my sides, because I am a man—a noble of Helium—and the women of Helium are sacred, even someone like Sanoma Tora.
From below came the sounds of renewed fighting. If the mob broke through I knew that we should all be lost. There was but one hope for even temporary safety and that was the slender tower above the women's quarters.
From below came the sounds of renewed fighting. If the mob broke through, I knew that we would all be lost. There was only one hope for even temporary safety, and that was the slender tower above the women's quarters.
"Follow me," I said curtly. As we entered the main corridor I caught a glimpse of the interior of the great hall where Tul Axtar had held court. It was filled with terrified women. Well they knew what the fate of the women of a Jeddak would be at the hands of an infuriated mob. My heart went out to them, but I could not save them. Lucky, indeed, should I be if I were able to save these two.
"Follow me," I said sharply. As we stepped into the main hallway, I caught a glimpse of the inside of the grand hall where Tul Axtar used to hold court. It was packed with frightened women. They understood exactly what would happen to the women of a Jeddak when faced with an angry mob. I felt for them, but I couldn’t rescue them. I would be fortunate if I could manage to save these two.
Crossing the corridor we ascended the spiral ramp to the storeroom, where, after entering, I took the precaution to bolt the door, then I ascended the ladder toward the trap door at the summit of the tower, the two women following me. As I raised the trap and looked about me I could have cried aloud with joy, for circling low above the roof of the palace was the cruiser flying the flag of truce. I apprehended no danger of discovery by Jaharian warriors since I knew that they were all well occupied below—those who were not fleeing for their lives—and so I sprang to the summit of the tower and hailed the cruiser in a voice that they might well hear above the howling of the mob. An answering hail came from the deck of the craft and a moment later she dropped to the level of the tower roof. With the help of the crew I assisted Phao and Sanoma Tora aboard.
Crossing the hallway, we climbed the spiral ramp to the storeroom. Once inside, I made sure to lock the door, then I climbed the ladder to the trapdoor at the top of the tower, with the two women following me. As I opened the trap and looked around, I seemed ready to shout with joy, because hovering just above the palace roof was the cruiser flying the flag of truce. I didn’t worry about being discovered by Jaharian warriors since I knew they were all occupied below, those who weren’t running for their lives. So, I rushed to the top of the tower and called out to the cruiser in a voice loud enough to be heard over the chaos of the crowd. I got a shout back from the deck of the ship, and a moment later, it lowered to the level of the tower roof. With the crew's help, I assisted Phao and Sanoma Tora onboard.
The officer in command of the cruiser stepped to my side. "Our mission here is fruitless," he said. "Word has just been brought me that the palace has fallen before the onslaught of a mob of infuriated citizens. The nobles had commandeered every craft upon which they could lay hands and have fled. There is no one with whom we can negotiate a peace. No one knows what has become of Tul Axtar."
The officer in charge of the cruiser walked up to me. "Our mission here is pointless," he said. "I just got word that the palace has fallen to a mob of angry citizens. The nobles took every boat they could find and escaped. There’s no one left to negotiate peace with. No one knows what happened to Tul Axtar."
"I know," I told him, and then I narrated what had happened in the apartment of the Jeddara.
"I know," I told him, and then I recounted what had happened in the apartment of the Jeddara.
"We must pursue him," he said. "We must overtake him and carry him back to the Warlord."
"We have to chase him," he said. "We need to catch up to him and bring him back to the Warlord."
"Where shall we look?" I asked. "The Jhama may lie within a dozen sofads of us and even so we could not see her. I shall search for him; never fear, and some day I shall find him, but it is useless now to try to find the Jhama. Let us return to the flagship of the Warlord."
"Where should we look?" I asked. "The Jhama could be just a dozen sofads away from us, and even then we wouldn't see her. I'll search for him; don't worry, and someday I'll find him, but right now it's pointless to try to find the Jhama. Let's go back to the flagship of the Warlord."
I do not know that John Carter fully realized the loss that I had sustained, but I suspect that he did for he offered me all the resources of Helium in my search for Tavia.
I don't know if John Carter fully understood the loss I had experienced, but I have a feeling he did because he offered me all the resources of Helium to help find Tavia.
I thanked him, but asked only for a fast ship; one in which I might devote the remainder of my life in what I truly believed would prove a futile search for Tavia, for how could I know where in all wide Barsoom Tul Axtar would elect to hide. Doubtless there were known to him many remote spots in his own empire where he could live in safety for the balance of his allotted time on Barsoom. To such a place he would go and because of the Jhama no man could see him pass; there would be no clue by which to follow him and he would take Tavia with him and she would be his slave. I shuddered and my nails sank into my palms at the thought.
I thanked him but only asked for a fast ship; one where I could spend the rest of my life on what I genuinely believed would be a useless quest for Tavia, since how could I know where in all of Barsoom Tul Axtar would choose to hide? I'm sure there were many secluded places in his empire where he could live safely for the rest of his time on Barsoom. He would go to such a place, and because of the Jhama, no one would see him leave; there would be no way to track him, and he would take Tavia with him to be his slave. I shuddered as my nails dug into my palms at the thought.
The Warlord ordered one of the newest and swiftest fliers of Helium to be brought alongside the flagship. It was a trim craft of the semi-cabin type that would easily accommodate four or five in comfort. From his own stores he had provisions and water transferred to it and he added wine from Ptarth and jars of the famous honey of Dusar.
The Warlord ordered one of the newest and fastest fliers from Helium to be brought alongside the flagship. It was a sleek semi-cabin craft that could comfortably hold four or five people. He had supplies and water moved from his own stores, and he added wine from Ptarth and jars of the famous honey from Dusar.
Sanoma Tora and Phao had been sent at once to a cabin by the Warlord, for the deck of a man-of-war on duty is no place for women. I was about to depart when a messenger came saying that Sanoma Tora wished to see me.
Sanoma Tora and Phao were immediately sent to a cabin by the Warlord, because the deck of a warship on duty is not a place for women. I was just about to leave when a messenger arrived saying that Sanoma Tora wanted to see me.
"I do not wish to see her," I replied.
"I don't want to see her," I said.
"Her companion also begged that you would come," replied the messenger.
"Her friend also asked if you would come," replied the messenger.
That was different. I had almost forgotten Phao, but if she wished to see me I would go, and so I went at once to the cabin where the two girls were. As I entered Sanoma Tora came forward and threw herself upon her knees before me.
That was different. I had almost forgotten Phao, but if she wanted to see me, I would go, so I went right away to the cabin where the two girls were. As I walked in, Sanoma Tora stepped forward and knelt down in front of me.
"Have pity on me, Hadron of Hastor," she cried. "I have been wicked, but it was my vanity and not my heart that sinned. Do not go away. Come back to Helium and I will devote my life to your happiness. Tor Hatan, my father, is rich. The mate of his only child may live forever in luxury."
"Please have mercy on me, Hadron of Hastor," she pleaded. "I've done wrong, but it was my pride, not my heart, that led me to sin. Don’t leave me. Come back to Helium, and I will dedicate my life to making you happy. Tor Hatan, my father, is wealthy. The partner of his only child can enjoy a life of luxury forever."
I am afraid that my lips curled to the sneer that was in my heart. What a petty soul was hers! Even in her humiliation and her penitence she could see no beauty and no happiness greater than wealth and power. She thought that she was changed, but I knew that Sanoma Tora never could change.
I’m afraid my lips twisted into the sneer I felt inside. What a small-minded person she was! Even in her embarrassment and regret, she could see no beauty or happiness greater than wealth and power. She believed she had changed, but I knew that Sanoma Tora could never truly change.
"Forgive me, Tan Hadron," she cried. "Come back to me, for I love you. Now I know that I love you."
"Forgive me, Tan Hadron," she cried. "Come back to me, because I love you. Now I realize that I love you."
"Your love has come too late, Sanoma Tora," I said.
"Your love has come too late, Sanoma Tora," I said.
"You love another?" she asked.
"You love someone else?" she asked.
"Yes," I replied.
"Yes," I said.
"The Jeddara of some of the strange countries you have been through?" she asked.
"The Jeddara from some of the strange countries you've traveled through?" she asked.
"A slave girl," I replied.
"A servant girl," I replied.
Her eyes went wide in incredulity. She could not conceive that one might choose a slave girl to the daughter of Tor Hatan. "Impossible," she said.
Her eyes widened in disbelief. She couldn't understand how anyone could choose a slave girl over the daughter of Tor Hatan. "That's impossible," she said.
"It is true, though," I assured her; "a little slave girl is more desirable to Tan Hadron of Hastor than is Sanoma Tora, the daughter of Tor Hatan," and with that I turned my back upon her and faced Phao. "Good-bye, dear friend," I said. "Doubtless we shall never meet again, but I shall see to it that you have a good home in Hastor. I shall speak to the Warlord before I leave and have him send you directly to my mother."
"It’s true, though," I assured her; "a young slave girl is more appealing to Tan Hadron of Hastor than Sanoma Tora, the daughter of Tor Hatan," and with that, I turned my back on her and faced Phao. "Goodbye, dear friend," I said. "We probably won’t meet again, but I’ll make sure you have a good home in Hastor. I’ll talk to the Warlord before I leave and have him send you straight to my mother."
She laid her hand upon my shoulder. "Let me go with you, Tan Hadron," she said, "for perhaps while you are searching for Tavia you will pass near Jhama."
She placed her hand on my shoulder. "Let me come with you, Tan Hadron," she said, "because maybe while you're looking for Tavia, you'll be close to Jhama."
I understood instantly what she meant, and I reproached myself for having even temporarily forgotten Nur An. "You shall come with me, Phao," I said, "and my first duty shall be to return to Jhama and rescue Nur An from poor old Phor Tak."
I got what she meant right away, and I felt guilty for temporarily forgetting Nur An. "You’re coming with me, Phao," I said, "and my first job will be to go back to Jhama and save Nur An from that poor old Phor Tak."
Without another glance at Sanoma Tora I led Phao from the cabin, and after a few parting words with the Warlord we boarded my new ship and with friendly farewells in our ears, headed west toward Jhama.
Without looking back at Sanoma Tora, I led Phao out of the cabin, exchanged a few parting words with the Warlord, and then we boarded my new ship. With friendly goodbyes ringing in our ears, we set off west toward Jhama.
Being no longer protected by the invisibility compound of Phor Tak, or the disintegrating ray resisting paint of Jahar, we were forced to keep a sharp lookout for enemy ships, of which I had but little fear if we sighted them in time for I knew that I could outdistance any of them.
Being no longer shielded by the invisibility compound of Phor Tak, or the disintegration ray-resistant paint of Jahar, we had to stay on alert for enemy ships. I wasn’t too worried if we spotted them early because I knew I could outrun any of them.
I set the destination control compass upon Jhama and opened the throttle wide; the swift Barsoomian night had fallen; the only sound was the rush of thin air along our sides which drowned out the quiet purring of our motor.
I set the destination control compass to Jhama and opened the throttle fully; the fast Barsoomian night had arrived; the only sound was the rush of thin air against us, which drowned out the soft purring of our engine.
For the first time since I had found her again in the quarters of the Jeddara at Jahar, I had an opportunity to talk with Phao and the first thing I asked her was for an explanation of the abandonment of the Jhama after Tul Axtar had grounded Tavia and me in U-Gor.
For the first time since I found her again in the Jeddara's quarters at Jahar, I had a chance to talk with Phao, and the first thing I asked her was to explain why the Jhama was abandoned after Tul Axtar had grounded Tavia and me in U-Gor.
"It was an accident," she said, "that threw Tul Axtar into a great fit of rage. We were headed for Jahar when he sighted one of his own ships, which took us aboard as soon as they discovered the identity of the Jeddak. It was night and in the confusion of boarding the Jaharian warship Tul Axtar momentarily forgot the Jhama, which must have drifted away from the larger craft the moment that we left her. They cruised about searching for her for awhile, but at last they had to give it up and the ship proceeded toward Jahar."
"It was an accident," she said, "that drove Tul Axtar into a huge rage. We were headed to Jahar when he spotted one of his own ships, which took us on board as soon as they realized who the Jeddak was. It was night, and in the chaos of getting on the Jaharian warship, Tul Axtar momentarily forgot about the Jhama, which must have drifted away from the larger ship as soon as we left her. They searched for her for a while, but eventually, they had to give up and the ship continued toward Jahar."
The miracle of the presence of the Jhama at the top of the peak, where we had so providentially found it in time to escape from the hunting men of U-Gor, was now no longer a miracle. The prevailing winds in this part of Barsoom are from the northwest at this time of year. The Jhama had merely drifted with the wind and chanced to lodge upon the highest peak of the range.
The amazing presence of the Jhama at the top of the peak, where we had so fortuitously discovered it just in time to escape from the hunting men of U-Gor, was now no longer a miracle. The prevailing winds in this part of Barsoom come from the northwest at this time of year. The Jhama had simply drifted with the wind and happened to settle on the highest peak of the range.
Phao also told me why Tul Axtar had originally abducted Sanoma Tora from Helium. He had had his secret agents at Helium for some time previous and they had reported to him that the best way to lure the fleet of Helium to Jahar was to abduct a woman of some noble family. He had instructed them to select a beautiful one, and so they had decided upon the daughter of Tor Hatan.
Phao also told me why Tul Axtar had originally kidnapped Sanoma Tora from Helium. He had his secret agents stationed in Helium for a while, and they reported back to him that the best way to lure Helium's fleet to Jahar was to abduct a woman from a noble family. He had directed them to choose a beautiful one, and they settled on the daughter of Tor Hatan.
"But how did they expect to lure the fleet of Helium to Jahar if they left no clue as to the identity of the abductors of Sanoma Tora?" I asked.
"But how did they expect to lure the Helium fleet to Jahar if they left no hint about who kidnapped Sanoma Tora?" I asked.
"They left no clue at the time because Tul Axtar was not ready to receive the attack of Helium," explained Phao; "but he had already sent his agents word to drop a hint as to the whereabouts of Sanoma Tora when John Carter learned through other sources the identity of her abductors."
"They left no clue at the time because Tul Axtar wasn't ready to handle Helium's attack," Phao explained; "but he had already instructed his agents to drop a hint about Sanoma Tora's location when John Carter found out through other sources who her kidnappers were."
"So it all worked out the way Tul Axtar had planned," I said, "except the finish."
"So everything went according to Tul Axtar's plan," I said, "except for the ending."
We passed the hours with brief snatches of conversation and long silences, each occupied with his own thoughts—Phao's doubtless a mixture of hope and fear, but there was little room for hope in mine. The only pleasant prospects that lay before me lay in rescuing Nur An and reuniting him and Phao. After that I would take them to any country to which they wished to go and then return to the vicinity of Jahar and prosecute my hopeless search.
We spent the hours with short talks and long silences, each lost in our own thoughts—Phao's were probably a mix of hope and fear, but I didn’t have much hope at all. The only good thing I could see ahead was saving Nur An and bringing him and Phao back together. After that, I’d take them to any country they wanted to go to and then come back to the area around Jahar to continue my futile search.
"I heard what you said to Sanoma Tora in the cabin of the flagship," said Phao after a long silence, "and I was glad."
"I heard you talking to Sanoma Tora in the cabin of the flagship," Phao said after a long silence, "and I was happy."
"I said a number of things," I reminded her; "to which do you refer?"
"I said a bunch of things," I reminded her; "which one are you talking about?"
"You said that you loved Tavia," she replied.
"You said you loved Tavia," she replied.
"I said nothing of the kind," I rejoined rather shortly, for I almost loathed that word.
"I didn't say anything like that," I replied rather curtly, because I almost hated that word.
"But you did," she insisted. "You said that you loved a little slave girl and I know that you love Tavia. I have seen it in your eyes."
"But you did," she insisted. "You said you loved a little slave girl, and I know you love Tavia. I've seen it in your eyes."
"You have seen nothing of the kind. Because you are in love, you think that everyone must be."
"You haven't seen anything like that. Just because you're in love, you think everyone else must feel the same way."
She laughed. "You love her and she loves you."
She laughed. "You love her, and she loves you."
"We are only friends—very good friends," I insisted, "and furthermore I know that Tavia does not love me."
"We're just friends—really good friends," I insisted, "and besides, I know that Tavia doesn't love me."
"How do you know?"
"How do you know that?"
"Let us not speak of it any more," I said, but though I did not speak of it, I thought about it. I recalled that I had told Sanoma Tora that I loved a little slave girl and I knew that I had had Tavia in my mind at the time, but I thought that I had said it more to wound Sanoma Tora than for any other purpose. I tried to analyze my own feelings, but at last I gave it up as a foolish thing to do. Of course, I did not love Tavia; I loved no one; love was not for me—Sanoma Tora had killed it within my breast, and I was equally sure that Tavia did not love me; if she had, she would have shown it and I was quite sure that she had never demonstrated any other feeling for me than the finest of comradeship. We were just what she had said we were—comrades in arms, and nothing else.
"Let's not talk about it anymore," I said, but even though I didn't say anything, I couldn't stop thinking about it. I remembered telling Sanoma Tora that I loved a little slave girl, and I knew I was thinking about Tavia at that moment, but I realized I said it more to hurt Sanoma Tora than for any other reason. I tried to figure out my own feelings, but eventually, I decided it was pointless. Of course, I didn't love Tavia; I loved no one. Love wasn't meant for me—Sanoma Tora had destroyed it within me, and I was also certain that Tavia didn’t love me either. If she did, she would have shown it, and I was sure she had never expressed anything more than a strong sense of companionship toward me. We were exactly what she had said we were—comrades in arms, and nothing more.
It was still dark when I saw the gleaming white palace of Phor Tak shining softly in the moonlight far below us. Late as it was, there were lights in some of the rooms. I had hoped that all would be asleep, for my plans depended upon my ability to enter the palace secretly. I knew that Phor Tak never kept any watch at night, feeling that none was needed in such an isolated spot.
It was still dark when I saw the shining white palace of Phor Tak glowing softly in the moonlight far below us. Even though it was late, there were lights on in some of the rooms. I had hoped everyone would be asleep because my plans relied on me being able to sneak into the palace. I knew that Phor Tak never kept any guards at night, believing that none were necessary in such a remote location.
Silently I dropped the flier until it rested upon the roof of the building where Nur An and I had first landed, for I knew that there I would find a passage to the palace below.
Silently, I let the flier drop until it landed on the roof of the building where Nur An and I had first arrived, because I knew that there I would find a way down to the palace below.
"Wait here at the controls, Phao," I whispered. "Nur An and I may have to come away in a hurry and you must be ready."
"Wait here at the controls, Phao," I whispered. "Nur An and I might need to leave quickly, and you have to be ready."
She nodded her head understandingly, and a moment later I had slipped quietly to the roof and was approaching the opening that led down into the interior.
She nodded her head in understanding, and a moment later, I had quietly made my way to the roof and was nearing the opening that led down into the interior.
As I paused at the top of the spiral ramp I felt quickly of my weapons to see that each was in its place. John Carter had fitted me out anew. Once more I stood in the leather and metal of Helium, with a full complement of weapons such as belong to a fighting man of Barsoom. My long sword was of the best steel, for it was one of John Carter's own. Beside this, I carried a short sword and a dagger, and once again a heavy radium pistol hung at my hip. I loosened the latter in its holster as I started down the spiral ramp.
As I paused at the top of the spiral ramp, I quickly checked my weapons to make sure each was in its place. John Carter had equipped me again. Once more, I was clad in the leather and metal of Helium, carrying a full set of weapons fit for a warrior of Barsoom. My longsword was made of the best steel, as it was one of John Carter's own. In addition, I had a shortsword and a dagger, and once again a heavy radium pistol hung at my hip. I loosened the pistol in its holster as I began my descent down the spiral ramp.
As I approached the bottom I heard a voice. It was coming from the direction of Phor Tak's laboratory, the door of which opened upon the corridor at the bottom of the ramp. I crept slowly downward. The door leading to the laboratory was closed. Two men were conversing. I could recognize the thin, high voice of Phor Tak; the other voice was not that of Nur An; yet it was strangely familiar.
As I got closer to the bottom, I heard a voice. It was coming from Phor Tak's lab, which opened onto the hallway at the bottom of the ramp. I crept down slowly. The door to the lab was closed. Two men were talking. I recognized the thin, high-pitched voice of Phor Tak; the other voice wasn't Nur An's, but it sounded oddly familiar.
"—riches beyond your dream," I heard the second man say.
"—wealth beyond your wildest dreams," I heard the second man say.
"I do not need riches," cackled Phor Tak. "Heigh-oo! Presently I shall own all the riches in the world."
"I don't need wealth," cackled Phor Tak. "Heigh-oo! Soon I'll own all the riches in the world."
"You will need help," I could hear the other man say in a pleading tone. "I can give you help; you shall have every ship of my great fleet."
"You’re going to need help," I heard the other man say, sounding desperate. "I can help you; you can have every ship in my huge fleet."
That remark brought me upstanding—"every ship of my great fleet!" It could not be possible and yet—
That comment got me to my feet—"every ship of my huge fleet!" It couldn't be true, and yet—
Gently I tried the door. To my surprise it swung open revealing the interior of the room. Beneath a bright light stood Tul Axtar. Fifty feet from him Phor Tak was standing behind a bench upon which was mounted a disintegrating ray rifle, aimed full at Tul Axtar.
Gently, I tried the door. To my surprise, it swung open, revealing the interior of the room. Under a bright light stood Tul Axtar. Fifty feet away, Phor Tak was standing behind a bench with a disintegrating ray rifle aimed directly at Tul Axtar.
Where was Tavia? Where was Nur An? Perhaps this man alone knew where Tavia was and Phor Tak was about to destroy him. With a cry of warning I leaped into the room. Tul Axtar and Phor Tak looked at me quickly, surprise large upon their countenances.
Where was Tavia? Where was Nur An? Maybe this guy was the only one who knew where Tavia was, and Phor Tak was about to take him out. With a shout of warning, I jumped into the room. Tul Axtar and Phor Tak glanced at me, surprise written all over their faces.
"Heigh-oo!" screamed the old inventor. "So you have come back! Knave! Ingrate! Traitor! But you have come back only to die."
"Hey there!" shouted the old inventor. "So you've returned! Scoundrel! Ungrateful wretch! Traitor! But you've only come back to meet your end."
"Wait," I cried, raising my hand. "Let me speak."
"Wait," I shouted, raising my hand. "I need to say something."
"Silence!" screamed Phor Tak. "You shall see Tul Axtar die. I hated to kill him without someone to see—someone to witness his death agony. I shall have my revenge on him first and then on you."
"Shut up!" shouted Phor Tak. "You'll watch Tul Axtar die. I didn’t want to kill him without anyone there—someone to witness his suffering as he dies. I’ll get my revenge on him first, and then on you."
"Stop!" I cried. His finger was already hovering over the button that would snatch Tul Axtar into oblivion, perhaps with the secret of the whereabouts of Tavia.
"Stop!" I shouted. His finger was already hovering over the button that would drag Tul Axtar into oblivion, possibly taking the secret of Tavia's location with it.
I drew my pistol. Phor Tak made a sudden motion with his hands and disappeared. He vanished as though turned to thin air by his own disintegrating rays, but I knew what had happened. I knew that he had thrown a mantle of invisibility around himself and I fired at the spot where he had last been visible.
I pulled out my gun. Phor Tak suddenly moved his hands and disappeared. He seemed to vanish into thin air, as if his own disintegrating rays had made him invisible, but I understood what had occurred. I realized he had thrown an invisibility cloak around himself, so I shot at the place where he had last been seen.
At the same instant the floor opened beneath me and I shot into utter darkness.
At that moment, the floor gave way under me and I fell into complete darkness.
I felt myself hurtling along a smooth surface which gradually became horizontal and an instant later I shot into a dimly lighted apartment, which I knew must be located in the pits beneath the palace.
I felt myself racing along a smooth surface that gradually leveled out, and in an instant, I shot into a dimly lit apartment, which I knew had to be in the depths beneath the palace.
I had clung to my pistol as I fell and now, as I arose to my feet, I thrust it back into its holster; at least I was not unarmed.
I had held onto my gun as I fell, and now, as I got back on my feet, I shoved it back into its holster; at least I wasn't unarmed.
The dim light in the apartment, which was little better than no light at all, I discovered, came from a ventilator in the ceiling and that aside from the shaft that had conducted me to the cell, there was no other opening in the wall or ceiling or floor. The ventilator was about two feet in diameter and led straight up from the center of the ceiling to the roof of the building, several levels above. The lower end of the shaft was about two feet above my finger tips when I extended them high above my head. This avenue of escape, then, was useless, but, alas, how tantalizing. It was maddening to see daylight and an open avenue to the outer world just above me and be unable to reach it. I was glad that the sun had risen, throwing its quick light over the scene, for had I fallen here in utter darkness my plight would have seemed infinitely worse than now, and my first ancestor knew that it was bad enough. I turned my attention now to the chute through which I had descended and I found that I could ascend it quite a little distance, but presently it turned steeply upward and its smoothly polished walls were unscalable.
The dim light in the apartment, which was barely better than complete darkness, came from a vent in the ceiling. I realized that aside from the shaft that had brought me to the cell, there was no other opening in the walls, ceiling, or floor. The vent was about two feet wide and went straight up from the center of the ceiling to the roof of the building, several floors above. The bottom of the shaft was roughly two feet above my fingertips when I reached my hands up high. So, this escape route was useless, but, unfortunately, it was so tempting. It was frustrating to see daylight and an open path to the outside world just above me and not be able to reach it. I was relieved that the sun had risen, casting its bright light over the scene, because if I had fallen here in complete darkness, my situation would have felt infinitely worse than it was now, and my ancestor knew it was bad enough. I then focused on the chute I had come down and discovered that I could climb it a bit, but soon it turned steeply upward, and its smooth walls were impossible to scale.
I returned to the pits. I must escape, but now, as my eyes became accustomed to the dim light, I saw strewn about the floor, that which snatched away my last hope and filled me with horror. Everywhere upon the stone flagging were heaps and mounds of human bones picked clean by gnawing rats. I shuddered as I contemplated the coming of night. How long before my bones, too, would be numbered among the rest?
I went back to the pits. I have to get out of here, but now that my eyes are adjusting to the dim light, I see what's scattered across the floor, which took away my last hope and filled me with dread. Everywhere on the stone floor are piles and heaps of human bones picked clean by gnawing rats. I shivered at the thought of nightfall. How long until my bones, too, would be added to the others?
The thought made me frantic, not for myself but for Tavia. I could not die. I must not die. I must live until I had found her.
The thought drove me crazy, not for myself but for Tavia. I couldn’t die. I must not die. I have to live until I find her.
Hastily I circled the room, searching for some clue to hope, but I found only rough-hewn stone set in soft mortar.
Hurrying around the room, I looked for any sign of hope, but all I found was crude stone embedded in soft mortar.
Soft mortar! With the realization, hope dawned anew. If I could remove a few of these blocks and pile them one on top of the other, I might easily reach the shaft that terminated in the ceiling above my head. Drawing my dagger I fell to work, scraping and scratching at the mortar about one of the stones in the nearest wall. It seemed slow work, but in reality I had loosened the stone in an incredibly short time. The mortar was poor stuff and crumbled away easily. As I drew the block out my first plan faded in the light of what I saw in front of me. Beyond the opening I saw a corridor at the foot of a spiral ramp leading upward, and from somewhere above, daylight was filtering down.
Soft mortar! With that realization, hope came back. If I could take out a few of these blocks and stack them, I might easily reach the shaft that ended in the ceiling above me. Drawing my dagger, I got to work, scraping and scratching at the mortar around one of the stones in the nearest wall. It felt slow, but in reality, I loosened the stone in no time. The mortar was weak and crumbled away easily. As I pulled the block out, my original plan faded when I saw what was in front of me. Beyond the opening, I noticed a corridor at the base of a spiral ramp leading upward, and daylight was filtering down from somewhere above.
I knew that if I could remove three more of those stones before I was detected I could worm my body through the opening into the corridor beyond, and you may well believe that I worked rapidly.
I knew that if I could take out three more of those stones before anyone noticed, I could squeeze my body through the opening into the corridor beyond, and you can believe I worked quickly.
One by one the blocks were loosened and removed and it was with a feeling of exultation that I slipped through into the corridor. Above me rose a spiral ramp. Where it led, I did not know, but at least it led out of the pits. Cautiously, and yet without any hesitation, I ascended. I must try to reach the laboratory before Phor Tak had slain Tul Axtar. This time I would make sure of the old inventor before I entered the room and I prayed to all my ancestors that I should be in time.
One by one, the blocks were loosened and taken away, and I felt a rush of excitement as I slipped into the corridor. Above me was a spiral ramp. I had no idea where it went, but at least it was a way out of the pits. Carefully, but without hesitating, I climbed up. I needed to get to the lab before Phor Tak killed Tul Axtar. This time, I would make sure to check on the old inventor before entering the room, and I prayed to all my ancestors that I would make it in time.
Doors, leading from the ramp to various levels of the palace, were all locked and I was forced to ascend to the roof. As it chanced the wing upon which I found myself was more or less detached, so that at first glance I could see no way whereby I could make my way from it to any of the adjoining roofs.
Doors leading from the ramp to different levels of the palace were all locked, forcing me to go up to the roof. As it turned out, the wing I was in was somewhat separate, so at first glance, I didn’t see any way to get from it to the nearby roofs.
As I walked around the edge of the building hurriedly, looking for some means of descent to the roof below, I saw something one level below me that instantly charged my attention. It was a man's leg protruding from a window, as though he had thrown one limb across the sill. A moment later I saw an arm emerge, and the top of a man's head and his shoulders were visible as he leaned out. He reached down and up and I saw something appear directly beneath him that had not been there before, and at the same instant I caught a glimpse of a girl, lying a few feet further down, and then I saw the man slide over the sill quickly and drop down and disappear, and all that lay below me was the flagging of a courtyard.
As I hurried around the edge of the building, looking for a way down to the roof below, something caught my eye one level beneath me. It was a man's leg sticking out of a window, as if he had thrown one limb over the sill. A moment later, I saw an arm come out, and then the top of a man's head and his shoulders appeared as he leaned out. He reached down and up, and I noticed something show up directly beneath him that hadn’t been there before. At the same time, I caught a glimpse of a girl lying a few feet further down, then I saw the man quickly slide over the sill, drop down, and disappear, leaving only the flagging of a courtyard below me.
But in that brief instant I knew precisely what I had seen. I had seen Tul Axtar raise the hatch of the Jhama. I had seen Tavia lying bound upon the floor of the ship beneath the hatch. I had seen Tul Axtar enter the interior of the craft and close the hatch above his head.
But in that brief moment, I knew exactly what I had seen. I had seen Tul Axtar lift the hatch of the Jhama. I had seen Tavia tied up on the floor of the ship below the hatch. I had seen Tul Axtar go inside the craft and shut the hatch above him.
It takes a long while to tell it when compared with the time in which it actually transpired; nor was I so long in acting as I have been in telling.
It takes a lot longer to share this story than it did to actually experience it; and I wasn't as slow in acting as I am in telling it.
As the hatch closed, I leaped.
As the hatch shut, I jumped.
XVII
XVII
I FIND A PRINCESS
I find a princess.
It would be as unreasonable to aver that I fully visualized the outcome of my act as I leaped out into space with nothing visible between me and the flagstones of the courtyard forty feet below as it would be to assume that I acted solely upon unreasoning impulse. There are emergencies in which the mind functions with inconceivable celerity. Perceptions are received, judgments arrived at and reason operates to a definite conclusion all so swiftly that the three acts appear simultaneous. Thus must have been the process in this instance.
It would be just as unreasonable to claim that I completely envisioned the outcome of my jump into the open space with nothing visible between me and the flagstones of the courtyard forty feet below as it would be to think that I acted entirely on a blind impulse. There are situations where the mind works with incredible speed. We take in perceptions, make judgments, and reason leads to a clear conclusion so quickly that those three actions seem simultaneous. That must have been how it worked in this case.
I knew where the narrow walkway upon the upper deck of the Jhama must lie in the seemingly empty space below me, for I had jumped almost the instant that the hatch had closed. Of course I know now, and I knew then, that it would have been a dangerous feat and difficult of achievement even had I been able to see the Jhama below me; yet as I look back upon it now there was nothing else that I could have done. It was my one, my last chance to save Tavia from a fate worse than death—it was perhaps my last opportunity ever to see her again. As I jumped then I should jump again under like conditions even though I knew that I should miss the Jhama, for now as then I know that I should rather die than lose Tavia; although then I did not know why, while now I do.
I knew where the narrow walkway on the upper deck of the Jhama had to be in the seemingly empty space below me because I jumped almost right after the hatch closed. Of course, I know now, and I knew then, that it would have been a risky move and tough to pull off even if I could see the Jhama beneath me; yet looking back now, there was nothing else I could have done. It was my one, my final chance to save Tavia from a fate worse than death—it was maybe my last opportunity to see her again. If I were in that situation again, I would jump just like I did, even knowing I would miss the Jhama, because even then, I would rather die than lose Tavia; though back then, I didn't know why, and now I do.
But I did not miss. I landed squarely upon my feet upon the narrow walkway. The impact of my weight upon the upper deck of the craft must have been noticeable to Tul Axtar, for I could feel the Jhama drop a little beneath me. Doubtless he wondered what had happened, but I do not think that he guessed the truth. However, he did not raise the hatch as I hoped he would, but instead he must have leaped to the controls at once for almost immediately the Jhama rose swiftly at an acute angle, which made it difficult for me to cling to her since her upper deck was not equipped with harness rings. By grasping the forward edge of the turret, however, I managed to hold on.
But I didn't miss. I landed solidly on my feet on the narrow walkway. The impact of my weight on the upper deck of the craft must have been noticeable to Tul Axtar, because I could feel the Jhama dip slightly beneath me. He probably wondered what had happened, but I don't think he figured out the truth. Still, he didn't open the hatch as I had hoped; instead, he must have jumped straight to the controls, because almost immediately the Jhama shot up at a steep angle, making it hard for me to hold on since the upper deck didn't have harness rings. However, by gripping the front edge of the turret, I managed to stay put.
As Tul Axtar gained sufficient altitude and straightened out upon his course he opened the throttle wide so that the wind rushing by me at terrific velocity seemed momentarily upon the point of carrying me from my precarious hold and hurtling me to the ground far below. Fortunately I am a strong man—none other could have survived that ordeal—yet how utterly helpless I was.
As Tul Axtar climbed high enough and leveled out on his path, he opened the throttle wide, making the wind rush past me at an incredible speed, feeling like it might throw me off my unstable grip and send me crashing to the ground far below. Thankfully, I'm a strong guy—no one else could have made it through that experience—but I felt completely powerless.
Had Tul Axtar guessed the truth he could have raised the after hatch and had me at his mercy, for though my pistol hung at my side I could not have released either hand to use it, but doubtless Tul Axtar did not know, or if he did he hoped that the high speed of the ship would dislodge whoever or whatever it might have been that he felt drop upon it.
Had Tul Axtar known the truth, he could have opened the after hatch and had me at his mercy. Even though my pistol was at my side, I couldn’t have used it since I couldn't free either hand. But Tul Axtar probably didn’t know that, or if he did, he was counting on the ship’s high speed to shake off whoever or whatever he felt land on it.
I had hung there but a short time before I realized that eventually my hold must weaken and be torn loose. Something must be done to rectify my position. Tavia must be saved and because I alone could save her, I must not die.
I had been hanging there for only a little while before I realized that eventually my grip would weaken and I'd fall. I needed to do something to fix my situation. Tavia had to be saved, and since I was the only one who could save her, I couldn't let myself die.
Straining every thew I dragged myself further forward until I lay with my chest upon the turret. Slowly, inch by inch, I wormed myself forward. The tubular sheeting of the periscope was just in front of me. If I could but reach that with one hand I might hope to attain greater safety. The wind was buffeting me, seeking to tear me away. I sought a better hold with my left forearm about the turret and then I reached quickly forward with my right hand and my fingers closed about the sheathing.
Straining every muscle, I pulled myself forward until I was lying with my chest on the turret. Slowly, inch by inch, I inched my way forward. The tubular casing of the periscope was right in front of me. If I could just grab it with one hand, I might have a better chance of staying safe. The wind was pushing against me, trying to pull me away. I looked for a better grip with my left forearm around the turret, then quickly reached forward with my right hand and wrapped my fingers around the casing.
After that it was not difficult to stretch a part of my harness about the front of the turret. Now I found that I could have one hand free, but until the ship stopped I could not hope to accomplish anything more.
After that, it wasn't hard to wrap a part of my harness around the front of the turret. Now I realized I could have one hand free, but until the ship came to a stop, I couldn't expect to achieve anything else.
What was transpiring beneath me? Could Tavia be safe even for a brief time in the power of Tul Axtar? The thought drove me frantic. The Jhama must be stopped, and then an inspiration came to me.
What was happening beneath me? Could Tavia be safe, even for a little while, in the hands of Tul Axtar? That thought drove me crazy. The Jhama needed to be stopped, and then an idea struck me.
With my free hand I unsnapped my pocket pouch from my harness and drawing myself still further forward, I managed to place the opened pouch over the eye of the periscope.
With my free hand, I unsnapped my pocket pouch from my harness and, leaning further forward, I managed to position the open pouch over the periscope's eye.
Immediately Tul Axtar was blind; he could see nothing, nor was it long before the reaction that I had expected and hoped for came—the Jhama slowed down and finally came to a stop.
Immediately, Tul Axtar was blind; he could see nothing, and it wasn't long before the reaction I had anticipated and hoped for happened—the Jhama slowed down and eventually came to a stop.
I had been lying partially upon the forward hatch and now I drew myself away from and in front of it. I hoped that it would be the forward hatch that he would open. It was the closer to him. I waited, and then glancing forward I saw that he was opening the ports. In this way he could see to navigate the ship and my plan was blocked.
I had been lying partly on the forward hatch, and now I pulled myself away from it. I hoped he would open that hatch since it was closer to him. I waited, and then glancing forward, I saw that he was opening the ports. That way he could see to navigate the ship, and my plan was ruined.
I was disappointed, but I would not give up hope. Very quietly I tried the forward hatch, but it was locked upon the inside. Then I made my way swiftly and silently to the after hatch. If he should start the Jhama again at full speed now, doubtless I should be lost, but I felt that I was forced to risk the chance. Already the Jhama was in motion again as I laid my hand upon the hatch cover. This time I was neither silent nor gentle. I heaved vigorously and the hatch opened. Not an instant did I hesitate and as the Jhama leaped forward again at full speed, I dropped through the hatchway to the interior of the craft.
I was let down, but I wouldn't lose hope. Quietly, I tried the forward hatch, but it was locked from the inside. Then I quickly and silently made my way to the back hatch. If he started the Jhama up again at full speed now, I would probably be lost, but I felt I had to take the risk. The Jhama was already in motion again as I placed my hand on the hatch cover. This time, I wasn't quiet or gentle. I pulled hard, and the hatch opened. Without any hesitation, as the Jhama jumped forward again at full speed, I dropped through the hatch into the interior of the craft.
As I struck the deck Tul Axtar heard me and wheeling from the controls to face me, he recognized me. I think I never before beheld such an expression of mingled astonishment, hatred and fear as convulsed his features. At his feet lay Tavia, so quietly still that I thought her dead, and then Tul Axtar reached for his pistol and I for mine, but I have led a cleaner life than Tul Axtar had. My mind and muscles coordinate with greater celerity than can those of one who has wasted his fiber in dissipation.
As I struck the deck, Tul Axtar heard me and turned away from the controls to face me, recognizing who I was. I don’t think I’ve ever seen such a mix of shock, hatred, and fear on someone’s face. At his feet lay Tavia, so still that I thought she was dead. Then Tul Axtar reached for his pistol, and I did the same, but I’ve lived a cleaner life than he has. My mind and body work together faster than someone whose strength has been wasted on excess.
Point blank I fired at his putrid heart and Tul Axtar, Jeddak and tyrant of Jahar, lunged forward upon the lower deck of the Jhama dead.
Point blank, I shot at his disgusting heart, and Tul Axtar, Jeddak and tyrant of Jahar, lunged forward onto the lower deck of the Jhama dead.
Instantly I sprang to Tavia's side and turned her over. She had been bound and gagged and, for some unaccountable reason, blindfolded as well, but she was not dead. I almost sobbed for joy when I realized that. How my fingers seemed to fumble in their haste to free her; yet it was only a matter of seconds ere it was done and I was crushing her in my arms.
Instantly, I rushed to Tavia's side and turned her over. She had been tied up and gagged, and for some unknown reason, blindfolded as well, but she wasn't dead. I almost cried out in joy when I realized that. My fingers felt clumsy in their haste to free her, yet it only took a few seconds before it was done and I was holding her tightly in my arms.
I know that my tears fell upon her upturned face as our lips were pressed together, but I am not ashamed of that, and Tavia wept too and clung to me and I could feel her dear body tremble. How terrified she must have been, and yet I knew she had never shown it to Tul Axtar. It was the reaction—the mingling of relief and joy at the moment that the despair had been blackest.
I know my tears fell on her upturned face as our lips touched, but I’m not ashamed of that. Tavia cried too and held on to me, and I could feel her body shaking. She must have been so scared, yet I knew she had never let Tul Axtar see it. It was the reaction—the mix of relief and joy at the moment when despair felt the deepest.
In that instant, as our hearts beat together and she drew me closer to her, a great truth dawned upon me. What a stupid fool I had been! How could I ever have thought that the sentiment that I entertained for Sanoma Tora was love? How could I ever believe that my love for Tavia had been such a weak thing as friendship? I drew her closer, if such were possible.
In that moment, as our hearts beat as one and she pulled me closer to her, a big truth hit me. What a complete idiot I had been! How could I have ever thought that what I felt for Sanoma Tora was love? How could I think that my feelings for Tavia were just a weak friendship? I pulled her even closer, if that was possible.
"My princess," I whispered.
"My princess," I whispered.
Upon Barsoom those two words, spoken by man to maid, have a peculiar and unalterable significance, for no man speaks thus to any woman that he does not wish for wife.
Upon Barsoom those two words, said by a man to a woman, carry a unique and unchangeable meaning, for no man uses them with any woman he does not want as his wife.
"No, no," sobbed Tavia. "Take me, I am yours; but I am only a slave girl. Tan Hadron of Hastor cannot mate with such."
"No, no," cried Tavia through her tears. "Take me, I'm yours; but I'm just a slave girl. Tan Hadron of Hastor can't be with someone like me."
Even then she thought only of me and my happiness, and not of herself at all. How different she was from such as Sanoma Tora! I had risked my life to win a clod of dirt and I had found a priceless jewel.
Even then she only thought about me and my happiness, not about herself at all. How different she was from someone like Sanoma Tora! I had risked my life to win a piece of dirt and I had found a priceless jewel.
I looked her in the eyes, those beautiful, fathomless wells of love and understanding. "I love you, Tavia," I said. "Tell me that I may have the right to call you my princess."
I looked her in the eyes, those beautiful, deep pools of love and understanding. "I love you, Tavia," I said. "Please tell me that I can call you my princess."
"Even though I be a slave?" she asked.
"Even though I’m a slave?" she asked.
"Even though you were a thousand times less than a slave," I told her.
"Even though you were a thousand times less than a slave," I said to her.
She sighed and snuggled closer to me. "My chieftain," she whispered in a low, low voice.
She sighed and cuddled closer to me. "My chief," she whispered softly.
That, as far as I, Tan Hadron of Hastor, is concerned, is the end of the story. That instant marked the highest pinnacle to which I may ever hope to achieve, but there is more that may interest those who have come thus far with me upon adventures that have carried me half way around the southern hemisphere of Barsoom.
That, as far as I, Tan Hadron of Hastor, am concerned, is the end of the story. That moment marked the highest point I might ever hope to reach, but there’s more that might interest those who have joined me on adventures that have taken me halfway around the southern hemisphere of Barsoom.
When Tavia and I could tear ourselves apart, which was not soon, I opened the lower hatch and let the corpse of Tul Axtar find its last resting place upon the barren ground below. Then we turned back toward Jhama, where we discovered that earlier in the morning Nur An had come to one of the roofs of the palace and been discovered by Phao.
When Tavia and I finally managed to pull ourselves apart, which took a while, I opened the lower hatch and let Tul Axtar's body find its final resting place on the barren ground below. Then we headed back toward Jhama, where we found out that earlier that morning, Nur An had gone up to one of the palace roofs and had been spotted by Phao.
When Nur An had learned that I had entered the palace just before dawn, he had become apprehensive and instituted a search for me. He had not known of the coming of Tul Axtar and believed that the Jeddak must have arrived after he had retired for the night; nor had he known how close Tavia had been, lying bound in the Jhama close beside the palace wall.
When Nur An found out that I had entered the palace just before dawn, he got worried and started a search for me. He didn't know about Tul Axtar's arrival and thought the Jeddak must have come after he went to bed for the night; he also had no idea how close Tavia was, lying tied up in the Jhama right next to the palace wall.
His search of the palace, however, had revealed the fact that Phor Tak was missing. He had summoned the slaves and a careful search had been made, but no sign of Phor Tak was visible.
His search of the palace, however, had revealed that Phor Tak was missing. He had called in the slaves and a thorough search had been conducted, but there was no sign of Phor Tak.
It occurred to me then that I might solve the question as to the whereabouts of the old scientist. "Come with me," I said to Nur An; "perhaps I can find Phor Tak for you."
It occurred to me then that I might solve the question of where the old scientist was. "Come with me," I said to Nur An; "maybe I can find Phor Tak for you."
I led him to the laboratory. "There is no use searching there," he said, "we have looked in a hundred times today. A glance will reveal the fact that the laboratory is deserted."
I took him to the lab. "There's no point looking there," he said, "we've checked a hundred times today. Just one look will show you that the lab is empty."
"Wait," I said. "Let us not be in too much of a hurry. Come with me; perhaps yet I may disclose the whereabouts of Phor Tak."
"Wait," I said. "Let’s not rush. Come with me; maybe I can reveal where Phor Tak is."
With a shrug he followed me as I entered the vast laboratory and walked toward the bench upon which a disintegrating rifle was mounted. Just back of the bench my foot struck something that I could not see, but that I had rather expected to find there, and stooping I felt a huddled form beneath a covering of soft cloth.
With a shrug, he followed me as I entered the huge lab and walked toward the bench where a broken rifle was set up. Just behind the bench, my foot hit something I couldn't see, but that I'd kind of expected to find there, and bending down, I felt a curled-up shape under a blanket of soft fabric.
My fingers closed upon the invisible fabric and I drew it aside. There, before us on the floor, lay the dead body of Phor Tak, a bullet hole in the center of his breast.
My fingers gripped the invisible fabric, and I pulled it aside. There, on the floor in front of us, was the dead body of Phor Tak, with a bullet hole in the center of his chest.
"Name of Issus!" cried Nur An. "Who did this?"
"Name of Issus!" shouted Nur An. "Who did this?"
"I," I replied, and then I told him what had happened in the laboratory as the last night waned.
"I," I replied, and then I told him what had happened in the lab as the last night faded away.
He looked around hurriedly. "Cover it up quickly," he said. "The slaves must not know. They would destroy us. Let us get out of here quickly."
He glanced around quickly. "Cover it up fast," he said. "The slaves can’t find out. They would annihilate us. Let’s get out of here fast."
I drew the cloak of invisibility over the body of Phor Tak again. "I have work here before I leave," I said.
I pulled the invisibility cloak over Phor Tak's body again. "I have things to do here before I go," I said.
"What?" he demanded.
"What?" he asked.
"Help me gather all of the disintegrating ray shells and rifles into one end of the room."
"Help me collect all the disintegrating ray shells and rifles into one end of the room."
"What are you going to do?" he demanded.
"What are you going to do?" he asked.
"I am going to save a world, Nur An," I said.
"I’m going to save a world, Nur An," I said.
Then he fell to and helped me and when they were all collected in a pile at the far end of the laboratory, I selected a single shell and returning to the rifle mounted upon the bench I inserted it in the chamber, closed the block and turned the muzzle of the weapon upon that frightful aggregation of death and disaster.
Then he got to work and helped me, and when they were all gathered in a pile at the far end of the lab, I picked out a single shell and went back to the rifle on the bench. I loaded it into the chamber, closed the block, and aimed the weapon at that terrifying collection of death and destruction.
As I pressed the button all that remained in Jhama of Phor Tak's dangerous invention disappeared in thin air, with the exception of the single rifle, for which there remained no ammunition. With it had gone his model of The Flying Death and with him the secret had been lost.
As I pressed the button, everything left in Jhama from Phor Tak's dangerous invention vanished into thin air, except for the single rifle, which had no ammo left. Along with it, his model of The Flying Death was gone, taking its secret with him.
Nur An told me that the slaves were becoming suspicious of us and as there was no necessity of risking ourselves further, we embarked upon the flier that John Carter had given me, and, taking the Jhama in tow, set our course toward Helium.
Nur An told me that the slaves were starting to get suspicious of us, and since there was no reason to risk ourselves any further, we got on the flier that John Carter had given me, and, towing the Jhama, we headed toward Helium.
We overtook the fleet shortly before it reached the Twin Cities of Greater Helium and Lesser Helium and upon the deck of John Carter's flagship we received a welcome and a great ovation, and shortly thereafter there occurred one of the most remarkable and dramatic incidents that I have ever beheld. We were holding something of an informal reception upon the forward deck of the great battleship. Officers and nobles were pressing forward to be presented and numerous were the appreciative eyes that admired Tavia.
We caught up with the fleet just before it got to the Twin Cities of Greater Helium and Lesser Helium, and on the deck of John Carter's flagship, we received a warm welcome and a huge ovation. Soon after, one of the most incredible and dramatic incidents I’ve ever seen happened. We were having an informal gathering on the forward deck of the big battleship. Officers and nobles were stepping forward to be introduced, and many appreciative eyes were admiring Tavia.
It was the turn of the Dwar, Kal Tavan, who had been a slave in the palace of Tor Hatan. As he came face to face with Tavia, I saw a look of surprise in his eyes.
It was the turn of the Dwar, Kal Tavan, who had been a slave in the palace of Tor Hatan. As he came face to face with Tavia, I saw a look of surprise in his eyes.
"Your name is Tavia?" he repeated.
"Your name is Tavia?" he said again.
"Yes," she said, "and yours is Tavan. They are similar."
"Yeah," she said, "and yours is Tavan. They’re alike."
"I do not need to ask from what country you are," he said. "You are Tavia of Tjanath."
"I don’t need to ask where you’re from," he said. "You’re Tavia of Tjanath."
"How do you know?" she asked.
"How do you know?" she asked.
"Because you are my daughter," he replied. "Tavia is the name your mother gave you. You look like her. By that alone I should have known my daughter anywhere."
"Because you’re my daughter," he said. "Tavia is the name your mom gave you. You look just like her. Just from that, I should have recognized my daughter anywhere."
Very gently he took her in his arms and I saw tears in his eyes, and hers too, as he pressed his lips against her forehead, and then he turned to me.
Very gently, he took her in his arms, and I saw tears in his eyes, and hers too, as he pressed his lips to her forehead. Then he turned to me.
"They told me that the brave Tan Hadron of Hastor had chosen to mate with a slave girl," he said; "but that is not true. Your princess is in truth a princess—the granddaughter of a jed. She might have been the daughter of a jed had I remained in Tjanath."
"They told me that the brave Tan Hadron of Hastor had chosen to mate with a slave girl," he said; "but that’s not true. Your princess is actually a princess—the granddaughter of a jed. She could have been the daughter of a jed if I had stayed in Tjanath."
How devious are the paths of fate! How strange and unexpected the destinations to which they lead. I had set out upon one of these paths with the intention of marrying Sanoma Tora at the end. Sanoma Tora had set out upon another in the hopes of marrying a Jeddak. At the end of her path, she had found only ignominy and disgrace. At the end of mine I had found a princess.
How twisted are the paths of fate! How odd and surprising the destinations they take us to. I started down one of these paths with the goal of marrying Sanoma Tora at the end. Sanoma Tora chose a different path hoping to marry a Jeddak. In the end, she found only shame and disgrace. As for me, I discovered a princess.

A FIGHTING MAN OF MARS
A Mars Warrior
Here's as exciting a novel as Edgar Rice Burroughs, creator of TARZAN OF THE APES, ever wrote. It's a novel about Barsoom, the Red Planet, whose Warlord, the famous John Carter, is aroused when a strange new weapon attacks his airfleet and a lovely lady disappears.
Here's an exciting novel like those written by Edgar Rice Burroughs, the creator of TARZAN OF THE APES. It's a story about Barsoom, the Red Planet, where the renowned Warlord, John Carter, is awakened when an unfamiliar weapon targets his airfleet and a beautiful woman goes missing.
Hadron of Hastor, one of Carter's finest warriors, takes to the field to avenge Helium and locate the hidden foe. His adventures among the little known ancient cities of Mars, his comradeship with the brave warrior-woman Tavia, and their struggle together against the hordes of a cunning monarch, make A FIGHTING MAN OF MARS a breathtaking science-fiction classic.
Hadron of Hastor, one of Carter's top warriors, heads into battle to take revenge for Helium and find the secret enemy. His journeys through the little-known ancient cities of Mars, his bond with the fearless warrior-woman Tavia, and their fight together against the armies of a clever king make A FIGHTING MAN OF MARS an exciting science-fiction classic.
Edgar Rice Burroughs is renowned for his many novels of fantastic adventure. Unquestionably his best known creation is that of the jungle hero, Tarzan the Ape Man, but almost as well known are his stories of other planets and of Pellucidar beneath the Earth's crust.
Edgar Rice Burroughs is famous for his many adventure novels. Without a doubt, his most recognized character is the jungle hero, Tarzan the Ape Man, but his tales of other planets and of Pellucidar beneath the Earth's surface are almost just as well known.
Born in Chicago in 1875, he tried his hand at many businesses without notable success, until at the age of thirty-five, he turned to writing. With the publication of Tarzan of the Apes and A Princess of Mars, his career was assured. The gratitude of a multitude of readers who found in his imagination exactly the kind of escape reading they loved assured him of a well-earned fortune.
Born in Chicago in 1875, he explored various businesses without much success, until he turned to writing at the age of thirty-five. The release of Tarzan of the Apes and A Princess of Mars secured his career. The appreciation of countless readers who discovered in his creativity the escape they craved guaranteed him a well-deserved fortune.
By the time of his death, in 1950, at his home in a town bearing the name of his brain child, Tarzana, California, his name was a byword in literature. Over 40,000,000 copies of his books have appeared in 58 different languages.
By the time he passed away in 1950 at his home in a town named after his creation, Tarzana, California, his name was synonymous with literature. Over 40 million copies of his books have been published in 58 different languages.
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!